[English]
This white-haired old man is
Naruto the seventh Hokage. During the
battle with the god Osatsuki, the entire
ninja world was completely destroyed.
Before he died, Sasuke teleported the comatose
Naruto to a safe place.
When Naruto woke up, the ninja world had
soon turned into a blackened land.
Naruto helplessly knelt on the ground, crying loudly,
almost dry of tears. He thought
about finding his enemies, but as
time passed, at this late age,
he no longer had enough strength. Naruto sat
in front of his comrades' memorial,
once again immersed in grief.
He sighed, if only time could
turn back. He swore that he would not
regret any price to gain strength
enough to compete with that family. Carrying
feelings of guilt and regret towards his
teammates, old Naruto closed his eyes
forever. But his soul did not disappear
like that, but appeared in a white
space with a youthful appearance.
Appearing before his eyes was a block of golden
chakra. Naruto exclaimed in surprise,
"Is this heaven?" He reached
towards that golden chakra block, and suddenly
the surrounding area radiated a bright light.
Naruto realized his consciousness was sinking
slowly into a tunnel. When he woke up
again, he discovered that he was moving
at high speed. He stopped
in surprise on a nearby tree, looking
at the white robe he was wearing
and the vital state of his
body. Naruto was extremely panicked. At this time
is the time when Sasuke and Itachi
are about to fight. Their main mission
is to find Sasuke's whereabouts. Naruto's
heart was so excited that it almost
jumped out of his chest. Unexpectedly,
his strong belief actually caused
his soul to be reborn at the age of 16.
At this time, Kakashi stepped forward and asked him with
doubt why he suddenly stopped.
The other young ninjas of Konoha also
stopped next to him. Naruto
once again saw his
companions who had passed away many
years into the future, and could not help but feel
bitterness. He tried to hold back tears, pretended
to calmly say nothing, then asked
from Kakashi to determine the exact
current time line. In the immediate future, there are two big
events about to happen. One is the
battle between Itachi and Sasuke. Second,
Jiraia broke into the rain village. Time
was urgent, Naruto didn't have time to explain
much. He decided to temporarily leave the
Sasuke search team because he knew the
fight between Sasuke and Itachi would not
be life-threatening. But
Jiraia's side is different, he must go to the rain village
immediately to save his master. Naruto's
sudden action left Kakashi
confused. He didn't understand what
was more important than finding
Sasuke for Naruto. Kakashi calmly
said that unless Naruto had a strong reason
worth leaving the team, he couldn't
let Naruto go. Because Naruto is the
Jinchuriki of the Nine-Tails, right now it is
the number one target that Akasuki wants to capture.
Letting Naruto act alone is too
dangerous. Naruto had already guessed that a
cautious person like Kakashi would not easily
let him leave the team. So, while saying
just now, he silently absorbed
natural energy. When Naruto reincarnated
, many ninjutsu were engraved
in his memory, so there was absolutely no need
to practice again. He knew that even if
confessed that he came from the future,
people probably wouldn't believe him easily.
So, Naruto decided to rush out one
time. Kakashi realized Naruto's unusual actions and immediately gave orders
...
had Yamato behind him launch four spears
to trap Naruto inside. But
the corner of Naruto's eyes suddenly appeared
orange signs. Kakashi immediately
understood that this was
Jira's fairy mode. He asked in surprise when Naruto learned
. Naruto bowed his head and apologized to
everyone, saying that he had to go
first. Later you will explain
everything clearly. Having finished speaking, he broke the four pillars
of the room in the blink of an eye, then used the
instant body technique to disappear on the spot.
Yamato was next to him and was about to chase after Naruto
but Kakashi called him back. With
his understanding of Naruto, he believes
that Naruto must have suffered
in doing so. Moreover, with the
fairy mode, I'm afraid no one here can stop
from stopping you. Kakashi signaled everyone
to continue searching for Sasuke, and at the same time
ordered a super beast to create
a large bird to report the situation
here to Chunade. After escaping
Team Kakashi, Naruto stopped on a
high place. He uses the
sensing ability of a fairy to sense everything
around him. Not far ahead at 3 o'clock is
's team, Taka's team, and at 6 o'clock is
Itachi's. Even though he was eager to
see Sasuke again, now was not
the time. Naruto turned around and quickly headed
towards 6 hours. He had to get something
from the Itachi people before their
decisive battle, which was the eye of Uiha
Shisui. Naruto deeply
admires Itachi. In his previous life, after becoming
Hokage, he understood more clearly
Itachi's contributions to maintaining
peace in Konoha. In a moment,
found him in the forest. Itachi was
a bit surprised to see Naruto proactively
come to him. Although Naruto wanted to advise
Itachi to give up the fight with Sasuke,
he knew of Itachi's health condition.
actually only has a few days left. Instead of waiting
in vain, Chi Bang finished letting
Sasuke open Mang Kyo. This is the reason
Itachi earnestly wants to fight
Sasuke. Naruto clearly understood that to fight
Osasuki, Sasuke's strength was indispensable. Itachi was someone who could keep
...
secrets, so Naruto used
's touch to tell him the whole truth about the
future. Shock upset this belief
, making Itachi unable to accept it and also
not daring to believe it. But combined with Naruto's
sudden change, he guessed that
of these things were mostly true. After
listening, he was both happy
and sad at the same time. Happy because Sasuke, although
went the wrong way, in the end
protected Konoha and the ninja world as
the famous name Uchi and the other girl's name is
Sarada? Thinking of this, the corner of
Itachi's mouth slightly raised, but he was also
sad because regardless of whether it was Sasuke or Konoha,
in the end had a tragic ending like
. Naruto's eyes darkened, thanks to
fate, he was reborn in this
era, this time he will definitely not let that
outcome happen again. He apologized to Itachi
because he did not want to prevent the decisive battle
of the two cousins. In his heart, Itachi
understood very clearly what Naruto meant. This
battle between him and Sasuke is the most important
turning point in
Sasuke's growth. Therefore, even if Naruto stops
, he will still persevere in the final battle
with Sasuke. Like his previous life,
Itachi eventually gave
Shisui's eye to Naruto, and entrusted
Sasuke and his future to him. He then
returned alone to Uchi's base to
wait for the upcoming concession battle.
Even though Naruto couldn't bear it,
the urgent thing right now was to save master
Jira. He sealed Sisui's eye-bearing crow
into a scroll, then continued
continued to rush towards the rain village. A few hours
later, the battle between Jira and Pin also
came to an end. Due to lack of information, Mr.
was accidentally attacked by Asura Dao and lost an
arm. The party from the sky and water
simultaneously attacked Jira intending to finish
him. But in an instant Naruto appeared
with the lightning technique at
the fastest speed and used Rasengan to destroy
Asura Path. His back made the two
toad fairies and Jira think that
Minato had arrived. Thien Dao couldn't believe that
had help from his master. He
was about to counterattack, but Naruto's Rasenuriken
followed. Looking
at this rotating mass of Chakra with high
density, Thien Dao did not dare to underestimate
but used the god La Thien Trinh to push it
away. Naruto took this opportunity to take Jira to
a safe place nearby. Jira was surprised
shouted Naruto's name. He asked
why Naruto came here, and urged
Naruto to run away. The party is not
an opponent that you can deal with alone.
Naruto's tears couldn't help
falling. This time he finally
arrived on time. He turned his head,
smiled and said, "Master, don't worry, leave the rest
to me." Sage
Fukasaku noticed the orange mark in
the corner of Naruto's eyes. He was surprised and asked
why Naruto also knew the senjutsu of mountain
Mioboku. Naruto reflexively intended to greet
the fairy Fukasaku, but just as he was about to open
his mouth, he remembered that he did not
know him yet. Jira also noticed Naruto's
change. His appearance is
without a doubt the immortal mode and
his transformation into an immortal is even more perfect than his
master. At this time, the side has
re-arranged into a position to prepare for
battle. Seeing that, Naruto immediately told Jira and
everyone to rest first, wait for him to solve
the problem at hand and then solve it.
likes everyone. At this moment, he saw that monk
had been devastated by Pen like this. Even though
had forgiven Nagato in his previous life,
at this moment he could not suppress
the anger in his heart. But Fukasaku
told Naruto not to want to fight. The smart
thing to do now is to return to Mount Mioboku to
treat Jira Chan first. Hearing
his master's heavy cough,
Naruto suppressed the anger in his heart. He
split into a shadow clone to pick up Jiraia from under
the ground, while the main body
used one hand to create a Rasenuriken. After two
lifetimes, the Naruto created no longer needed
's clone's help. He said with a serious
face to Pen, "Wait until I take master to
a safe place, I will come back to show you
how ridiculous
your so-called peace is." Having finished speaking, he threw
Rasensuri Ken forward with
the explosion of the white storm, Fuka took the opportunity
to use reverse spiritual magic to bring everyone
back to Mount Mioboku. The party looked into
the deep hole created by the Rasenuri, sinking into
contemplation. "Is the fairy mode exactly like teacher
Jira? No wonder it can save you from
my hands?" At this time, pieces of paper
gathered together to form the shape of Miss
Nan. She reported to Pen that that young man
was the Jinchuriki of the Nine-Tails, did
need to be chased? The Six Paths Pen appeared
because he had lost contact with the life path and the asura path.
Nagato had poor mobility, so he was in no hurry
to pursue. They decided that after
getting things sorted out, they would go straight to Konoha to hunt
sheep. No matter who the opponent is, in front of me
all resistance is useless. At this time
at the holy land of Mount Mioboku, the fairy
Shima urgently bandaged
Jiraia's wound. Jira's wound looked
serious, but did not damage
vital areas. In addition to the broken arm
that cannot be recovered, other injuries
will recover after resting.
Fukasaku breathed a sigh of relief hearing that. If
this time, this blond boy
hadn't appeared in time, perhaps he and Jira
Chan would have perished there. Compared to the wound
on his body, Jira is more concerned about
why Naruto suddenly appeared
in the rain village and why he mastered
sage mode. He asked Naruto what
was all about? Naruto's back felt
cold. In his previous life, he had heard Sasuke
say it. When Sasuke and Boruto traveled back to the past
of Konoha, Jiraya easily recognized
their future identities. Naruto
knew that in front of Jiraia he certainly
couldn't hide it for long, but
now was not the time to tell the truth. Because
because what he's about to do next may
go against the fire wisdom that
Konoha worships. He apologized to Jira, telling
that when the time was right, he most
intended to tell everything. Jiraia looked at
Naruto thoughtfully for a moment, then he laughed
loudly to break the
awkward atmosphere. He knows that Naruto must have
suffering, he will wait until the day Naruto wants
to confess to him. Whatever the reason, it was at least
thanks to Naruto that he was able to
return safely. Thinking of the promise he made with
Chunade before coming to the rainy village,
's laughter became even louder. After a few
days of rest, Naruto thanked the two fairies
Shima and Fukasaku, then took Jira
back to Konoha. After returning to the village, Chunade
carefully examined Jira's body
again, discovering that other than the arm,
had nothing to worry about. Chunade couldn't hold back
's tears and said, "This time if it weren't for
Naruto, you wouldn't have been able to return."
What a reckless person. Jira heard that
laughed loudly and told Chunade not to forget the promise
made earlier. Because Naruto was instrumental in saving Jira
, the fact that he voluntarily left the team before
Chunade will no longer pursue him. See
Jira and Chunade still have important things to do
rather than having to do it, Naruto very thoughtfully
left the office, creating some private time
for Jira and Chunade. Once outside, he quickly
ran to the Ichiraku noodle shop. After
devouring several bowls of noodles, he let out a
sigh of satisfaction. Indeed, in this
world, only Ichiraku noodles can make
people temporarily forget the painful
memories brought by Satsuki. That night,
Naruto lay in bed looking up at the ceiling
having an afternoon conversation. The experience from the moment he was close to
death until he was reborn as a
year old boy was still a bit unreal to him,
even though this was the truth, so he needed to use
at night to calm down, so that his body, mind and
reality were in harmony. There are currently 20 years
left until the god Satsuki invades
the ninja world. Naruto must become
stronger than his opponent during this
period of time, and at the same time must completely change
the entire rules of the current
ninja world. It's time to start practicing. In his
previous life, after losing his Nine-Tails to compensate for
's fighting strength, Naruto whenever he had free
time, he would re-read the book of seals that
he had seen when he was a child. Now he
can be said to have mastered many ninjutsu
, but in the book of releasing seals there are still
many ninjutsu that
he never learned in his previous life . Especially Minato's Flying
Thunder God Technique wants to restrain
this ninja world, Flying Thunder God is
indispensable. Naruto decided to
do what he did as a child. At
this time, after the incident 3 years ago, the
sealed book was hidden in an extremely
secret place. Normal people absolutely cannot
know this secret, but Naruto
as the Seventh Hokage can say
knows all the secrets of Konoha. Based
on his memories of when he was Hokage in his previous
life, he quickly found the hidden
sealing book. This sealed book
can be said to be a bloody history
Tobirama's tears. Most of the forbidden
techniques inside were invented by him.
In his previous life, Naruto was too dependent on the
strength of the Nine-Tails. It wasn't until he faced
a very strong enemy that he understood how
knew many techniques that were never redundant. A typical
number of ninjutsu often has
surprising results, and can even turn
the situation. So, this time Naruto decided
to master it all. He copied a
copy of the book of sealing, then quickly
went to the outskirts of Konoha and began practicing
day and night. Based on extensive
actual combat experience and synchronous training with multiple
heavy shadow clones, Naruto quickly
mastered the flying thunder god technique as well as other
forbidden techniques such as filthy earth reincarnation.
A few days later, Naruto asked Jira, who
was in love, out because he
wanted to get the key to the Eight Trigrams
seal of the Nine-Tails. Although Jira believed
thought he was his student, Naruto's
sudden change made him
a little worried. Naruto said in a deep
voice, "When the Nine-Tails went crazy, you
met Minato. From Minato, you learned
your identity and the mission on your shoulders.
Even though you can't tell everything
now, you will definitely not disappoint
your father." Naruto swears
on behalf of the Hokage that everything he does is for the future
of the ninja world. After hearing
Naruto's words, Jira remained silent. Minato's far-sighted
arrangements might have predicted
today. He didn't ask any more questions,
summoned the scroll toad and handed over the key
of the Eight Trigrams seal to Naruto. He
believes that if he were the current Naruto,
would definitely be able to control
the power of the Nine-Tails. Naruto was extremely touched. After
saying goodbye to Jira, he returned home. After
a moment of hesitation, he placed his hand on his stomach,
the eight trigram sealing technique appeared.
After many years, Naruto finally met
Nine-Tails again. As soon as Naruto saw the Nine-Tails
, he called out its name intimately, but the Nine-Tails
aggressively said, "Don't get close to
." The Nine-Tails is still not
willing to communicate with Naruto, so even if
senses Naruto's change, it is difficult to
immediately accept it. Naruto tried
to convince the Nine-Tails, hoping they could
fight side by side like in their previous lives. But the arrogant Nine-Tails completely refused to acknowledge
...
its friendship with Naruto in the
future. Because he is the embodiment of evil, how can
bow to a
boy who lives like a Huskiy dog?
Naruto continued helplessly, "I know you
like to act stubborn, but that's obviously
you."
Hearing that, the Nine-Tails became angry and immediately
disconnected the chakra. Naruto stood in
the dim space, shaking his head, he could
understand the Nine-Tails' attitude right now. Tailed
animals also need experience to grow
. The Nine-Tails in his previous life also took
step by step with Naruto to untie the knot
in his heart. The Nine-Tails has not yet experienced
maturity, so even seeing
those memories of Naruto, even feeling
the deep pain in
Naruto's heart, he still cannot reasonably
reach an agreement with
Naruto. But Naruto firmly believes that
he and the Nine-Tails will fight side by side again
will come. At this moment Naruto suddenly
felt someone calling him. When he
opened his eyes, he discovered that it was teacher Jira.
It turns out that when Naruto and the Nine-Tails met
earlier, the Nine-Tails was angry, so Chakra was
leaked, attracting Jira's attention.
Seeing that Naruto had finally woken up,
Jira breathed a sigh of relief. If Naruto gets
crazy in the village, it will be a big trouble.
Naruto thanked his master, then used
fairy mode to feel his surroundings. At this time
his house was surrounded
by experts due to the leak of the Nine-Tails Chakra.
not only has Anbu members, but also
has members of Danzo's Ne. Naruto
clearly understands that Danzo is always a hidden threat.
Since Jiraia broke his arm,
's strength has decreased, Danzo has become increasingly
active. He told Jira to be very careful
of the opponent, not to let Dan Danzo grasp any
weakness.
Naruto's young face now exuded a maturity
that did not belong to his age.
At this moment, it seemed that the silhouettes of
teenage Naruto and seventh Naruto had
coincided. Seeing this scene, Jira couldn't
help but smile with satisfaction, but Naruto was still
uneasy about Danzo. He decided that
before leaving Konoha, he would replace Chunade and
his master in removing this obstacle. After
learning from Kakashi that Sasuke had completed
his revenge, Naruto prepared
to leave the village. Even though he couldn't bear to leave
his master, the things he was about to do if
still acted as a
Konoha ninja, he feared would have a big impact on
Konoha. The next day, Naruto went to the Hokage's
office to find Chunade and used
as an excuse to reveal the secret of the Nine-Tails so that Chunade invited
two advisors of Konoha and Danzo to come
here. Danzo has always wanted
to use his Saron to control the Nine
Tails, so he was very interested in going to the Hokage's
office because it was in his village, he
only brought two guards. As Danzo approached
, Naruto smiled softly, "It's about time."
He dispelled the shadow clone that was collecting
natural energy at home. The chakra fairy
technique transmitted, Naruto immediately
entered fairy mode. Jira immediately
realized something was wrong. With
's ability to use senjutsu, he was the first
person to discover
Naruto's abnormality. He knew something
was about to happen. The next second, Naruto with
lightning speed turned around and grabbed Danzo's right
eye. This eye is you
Siis Xui's remaining eye. Everyone
present was extremely surprised.
Danzo held his eyes in pain and knelt to the ground. His guards
rushed up to attack Naruto,
but Naruto used a flying lightning move
to appear on the opposite roof.
Danzo and the two advisors roared at Chunade,
what is the meaning of this? Chunade at this time
was also confused, no one expected
that Naruto, who always said he wanted
to be Hokage, would attack Danzô in front of
all the senior leaders of Konoha.
This is no different than betraying Konoha.
But Naruto took advantage of this point
because Danzo acted too carefully, wanting to win
Sisui's eye and could only do
when he let his guard down in Konoha. He coldly
told Danzo, "I took Sisui
's eye, one day I will return
it back to its original owner." When Chunade learned that
got that eye from Danzo's sneak attack on Siis that
got, she asked Danzo what
was all about. Just as Danzo was about to refute,
Naruto used the instant body technique
to appear behind him, taking
's right arm full of Sarà. Just now when
took Shisui's eye, he took the
opportunity to leave a flying lightning god mark on
Dan Danzo's body. Jira stood
stunned in place. This time he finally
clearly saw Naruto use Minato's flying thunder god
technique. It happened so
so fast, the person most heartbroken right now is
none other than him. Previously, Nagato was
the leader of Akasuki, this time is it
the turn of his most beloved student
to betray Konoha? He stepped forward and asked
what Naruto was going to do. Naruto
was silent for a moment then told Jira that
he would betray Konoha. There's no special reason
, if I had to say a reason it would
be that there are some things that being a renegade
ninja is easier to do. Jira heard
and his face stiffened. Since Naruto
appeared in the rain village, his appearance
was always strange. Although Naruto spoke very
gently, inside his heart was actually
bleeding. As the most faithful
fire wisdom practitioner, he had to endure
great pain to be able to say
these words. But he can't show
too much emotion to his master, this
can easily make Danzo grasp his weakness.
Jira calmly looked at Naruto. He discovered
that recently Naruto seemed to be
always collecting all kinds of power, first he was looking for
himself to get the key to seal the sheep-tail, now
now he took
Danzo's right eye and right hand. He asked Naruto how he was going to deal with
the enemy that he had to go crazy
to gather power like that?
Naruto's heart was deeply moved. Indeed, the person
who understood him best was none other than master
Jira. He promised Jira that he was still
Uzumaki Naruto said if he could do it, he would
never change. Wait until the time
is ripe, then he will return to ask his master
for forgiveness. Hearing these words, Jira knew
that whatever he said was useless. Naruto glanced
at Danzo whose fangs and claws had been broken, after
he felt secure and used the Flying Thunder God to disappear
on the spot. Danzo roared that no matter where Naruto
runs, this organization will not
forgive him. After all, Danzo is also a
high-ranking leader of Konoha. Chunade ordered
the 10 young ninja of Konoha and
Kakashi to go chase the traitorous Ninja
Naruto. Kakashi summoned a ring dog,
then followed Naruto's scent to chase
away. Right now Naruto was moving
quickly through the forest of the Republic of Peace.
Because he always maintained his fairy mode,
could clearly feel behind him more than
10 familiar chakra streams were quickly
moving towards him. Naruto intentionally walked
slowly because he still had something to say to
his old friends. The group of people led by
Kakashi were now frowning
chased Naruto. Sasuke, out of hatred,
betrayed Konoha. Unexpectedly,
even the most brilliant Naruto at this time
would be completely defeated. The
appearance of the two traitorous ninjas was a
heavy blow to their
teachers and their
contemporaries. The always weak Hinata
was unusually the first to rush forward this time.
Because no matter what, she did not believe that Naruto
would betray Konoha. She hopes to
clarify the reason why Naruto left without
saying goodbye. At this time, the ring dog Parkun reminded
everyone, Naruto seemed to intentionally
slow down, he told everyone to pay attention, he
was not far ahead. Moments later,
and Kakashi discovered Naruto standing
in a tree. Naruto looked at Hinata who was
panting and sweating profusely in front of him,
feeling extremely sorry. You don't
know how long Hinata ran to get
here. After many years of separation, meeting again,
should have been a big reunion, but because of
the tragedy of our previous lives, we had to separate
again. Hinata couldn't hold back the
worry in her heart and was about to move forward, but
the most alert Kakashi stopped her
. He rearranged his thoughts and asked
Naruto, "Anyway, Danzo is
a high-ranking leader of Konoha. You attacking
Danzo means you are completely
on the opposite side of Konoha,
right, Naruto?" A strange glint flashed in Naruto
's eyes, then
callously said, "That's true." As soon as these words
were uttered, Sakura could no longer suppress
the anger in her heart and threw a strong
punch at Naruto. Naruto could have
easily dodged, but he stood still
without moving, and was punched to the beam.
Sakura rushed forward, grabbed Naruto by the collar and
shouted, "You're a fraud." Where is Naruto
courageously moving forward, saying yes
can do it, wanting to become Hokage?
Facing his old friends,
Naruto swallowed the bitterness in
's heart. He said coldly, "Times are
different." Sakura tried to use
's way to hold Naruto back, but Naruto
flatly rejected her. He told
Sakura that there are too many
things in this world that neither she nor he can force
to force. Don't forget that we are ninjas,
people who know how to be patient, there are things I
cannot help but do." Sakura was stunned,
the sudden distance and strangeness from Naruto
made her confused. At this time, Naruto took
a deep breath, then walked towards
Hinata. Although Naruto still wanted to continue,
deliberately acted cold to hide,
but facing with Hinata, he finally
turned his coldness into gentleness and
guilt. In Naruto's eyes, Hinata was the
wife who had experienced bittersweet
in his previous life, and was also the mother of
Boruto and Himawari understood what Naruto meant, but she could
...
...
...
feel the deep helplessness
in his words. After meeting
Naruto, she understood a few things.
Naruto was definitely trying to
bear something alone, so he deliberately distanced
from them. She
...
...
sees Naruto's every action almost every day.
can say that no one understands Naruto better than her. She believes that the current
...
Naruto always masters
's ninja way. He told
Hinata to stay in Konoha and wait for him to
return home His emotions
...
had the biggest fluctuation since returning to the past. Naruto
closed his eyes tightly to calm his mind. Then
he opened his eyes and looked at Neji, silently in his heart
vowed this time to never let Tragedy
at that time happen again. He asked Neji to
take good care of Hinata in the future. Neji happily
agreed to Naruto's request because the answer
he wanted was written in Naruto's
shining eyes. Naruto
then reminded Kakashi to be careful with Danzo.
After Danzo was seriously injured, there was no way
would do anything too outrageous.
Kakashi was silent for a moment then seriously
asked, "Are you our
ally or enemy now?" Hearing that, Naruto
adjusted
's Konoha headband. If we meet each other on the
battlefield in the future, you ninjas of Konoha
don't need to hold back. Having finished speaking,
Naruto used the Flying Thunder God to disappear in
place, leaving only the troublesome
people standing in the wind. Shikamaru smiled
helplessly and said, "You ninjas of Konoha
? This is so
troublesome." After regaining his composure,
Naruto began his
post-reincarnation plan. He knew clearly that
's Chakra was not strong enough at this time. Previously, he
was too dependent on the power of the Nine-Tails,
even maintaining his fairy mode
quickly was thanks to the
cooperation of the Nine-Tails. So, this time Naruto decided
to use a different way to get truly
strong. The first thing you need to do
is find Mitarias Anko, because you want to
give birth to that man who is as fast as the wind. At
this time in the Fire Nation, Anko's team is
investigating the whereabouts of Yakusi Kabuto in the
forest. Suddenly, a large bird in
the sky sent down an urgent
order, the content of which was to temporarily give up searching for
the Kabuto sword, and give priority to finding the
whereabouts of the traitorous ninja Naruto. An felt extremely surprised when she saw this news
, that passionate Naruto
had betrayed Konoha,
she wouldn't believe it even if she fought, now only
can find Naruto and ask clearly.
Anco ordered everyone to start searching
for Naruto, but at this time on a tall
tree, Naruto's
teasing voice suddenly rang out. "Miss Anko is
looking for me?" An Can
's team of four carefully observed Naruto. At this time, on Naruto's
band there was an additional
mark symbolizing the traitor ninja. Anco
was surprised and asked Naruto what
was all about. Facing his compatriots,
Naruto was worried, but he
didn't explain much, just
said leisurely, "Everything is as you see it."
When An Co heard that, her heart couldn't help but
tighten. She vaguely remembered during the
Chunin exams,
Naruto's daring appearance, but did not expect
to change so much now. Naruto, as the target
of being captured, took the initiative to surrender
himself. What is the purpose of item
? Naruto said seriously, "For
the future of the ninja world, I must
get Orochimaru's help. And to
revive him, you are one of the
indispensable conditions." As soon as she heard
the three words Orochimaru, Anko immediately showed
a frightened expression. She scolded Naruto for
becoming depraved, and at the same time held
's head in seals with both hands, launching the fire release dragon fire
technique, a large amount of fire condensed
into a dragon shape and rushed towards Naruto.
Naruto saw that, his hands also began to
quickly form seals. The water dragon fleet
magic bullets were launched. The violent
collision of water and fire immediately created
a large amount of steam. In the white
mist, a large snake tens of
meters long curled up and stood up. After Huya
Tokuma used his white eyes to lock
Naruto's position, Anko controlled the large snake to rush
down to attack. Naruto has fairy
mode. Even though his eyes cannot clearly see around
, he can still feel
clearly the actions of Anco and his teammates. Uncle
quickly jumped back to avoid it,
simultaneously sealed it again, launching
's release. Hoang Tuyen suddenly appeared in a swamp
, causing the big snake
to immediately sink inside. An saw
's face filled with surprise, isn't Naruto's
chakra attribute wind?
But in fact, besides Naruto's lack of
negative attributes, he can use other
chakra attributes. It's just that
among these chakra transformations, he
is best at the wind attribute. In his
previous life, after becoming Hokage, he also
developed other
attribute transformations. Now you are no longer Naruto
who only knows how to clone and create Senga
. Suddenly Aburemuta opened the can
behind his back. A black screen was created
from thousands of Kikachu surrounding
around Naruto. The Abu family's jutsu has
unknown effects. Naruto did not
dare to underestimate the enemy, so he sealed again, and released
a large fire release bullet. A ferocious ball of
fire consumed all of Kikachu.
Anco saw this and immediately used hidden shadow
snake hand on Naruto, but
Naruto's body suddenly disappeared. When
reappeared, he was behind An Co, with a
chop on the opponent's neck. An Co
immediately collapsed to the ground. Before
she woke up, she saw that Thanh Kunai had a strange
drawing on the ground, and
couldn't help but break out in a cold sweat. She
was certain that this was the flying thunder god
technique of the Fourth Hokage. Naruto, finally
you, before the words were finished, An fainted
. Naruto said in a deep voice three words of apology
, then picked up Anko from the ground and disappeared
on the spot. Huyu Tokuma immediately used
his white eyes to scan around, but within
a few kilometers there was no trace of
Naruto. I didn't expect that Naruto would actually
betray Konoha. Knowing that it was difficult to protect
their lives, Muta and Tokuma decided
to retreat first and report honestly.
everything happened here for the village. At this
time, Naruto brought the unconscious An to a
deserted cave. He did the opposite of
with the sealing technique of the left wind seal, removing
except the seal on An Co's curse seal. Along
with the infusion of fairy
energy, a white snake emerged from Ano's
seal. As soon as the snake's mouth opened, Orochimaru's
octopus body slowly emerged
. Didn't expect that the one who revived me was
you? Blunt Naruto. Naruto went straight to
the problem. Orochimaru, I Naruto don't talk around
, I want to have immense
power, build the strongest, most united
ninja world ever.
So I need your knowledge and ninjutsu
to help me. Orochimaru listened
to Naruto's words and carefully observed
him. There was no longer any
disdain in his eyes like before. After all, he
also witnessed Naruto
's abilities currently in Ancol's body. However
Naruto's attraction to him
is still far inferior to the strength of the old Uchi.
One glance from Itachi defeated
Orochimaru. That shock for Orochimaru
was too profound. At this time, because he was
born before witnessing the end of
Yakusi Kabuto, he still plotted
to take over Sasuke's body. He
smiled evilly at Naruto. No
expected your taste to be so great. If
is just something that can be
done like bringing someone back to life, I'm
happy to help. Naruto is no longer
the innocent teenager he once was. After
many years as Hokage, his
magic can be said to have reached
high peak. He knows that Orochimaru is not the
type of person who is afraid of strength, wanting to conquer
the opponent solely by relying on force is
impossible. Orochimaru's purpose is
to decode all truths in the world. So
Naruto smiled and asked if he had heard about it
Osatsuki yet, do you know the secret to opening
Rinegan? Orochimaru heard that,
in his eyes flashed a different
light, then smiled and said, "Osatsuki
Kawya, the kind of myths passed down
among the people to comfort children, I'm afraid only
children believe it. Although he was very
grateful to Naruto for letting him see the
sunlight again, right now the thing he
was most interested in was Sasuke's body. His two
legs suddenly turned into
snake tails, quickly rushing towards the exit of
cave, intending to escape. But Naruto emitted
a golden light, and in the blink of an eye
appeared at the cave entrance, blocking Orochimaru's path.
Because Orochimaru was still aiming for
Sasuke's body, no matter what Naruto said,
couldn't let him go
easily escaped, Orochimaru
's neck suddenly lengthened, two sharp
fangs stabbed precisely into Naruto's neck.
Black seal lines spread out
on Naruto's body. Orochimaru intended to use
the seal's power to temporarily block
's movements. But he
did not know that this black seal actually had it
can accelerate the absorption of natural
energy. For people who do not know the
technique, it does have a confining effect,
but for Naruto, it has no
effect. Naruto used his elbow to hold
tightly on Orochimaru's head, while
he collected natural energy in
an immobile state. A large amount of natural energy poured in, Naruto
...
let the senjutsu Chakra flow back into the opponent's
body along the connection between
himself and Orochimaru. Orochimaru did not know
senjutsu, his face immediately became
painful, his legs began to turn into
frog legs. Reluctantly, Orochimaru had to abandon
his current body, an essence
suddenly emerged from his back. Then,
he immediately activated Van Xa La
Chi battle. Tens of thousands of sword-holding snakes
Kusanagi rushed towards Naruto. Seeing
a group of snakes on such a scale, Naruto
smiled softly, "There's a jutsu you've always wanted to
try." Naruto created a shadow clone
to carry the unconscious An, then made a seal with his
hands, launching the fire release magic, using
fire to destroy it. An earth-shattering
sea of fire instantly engulfed the oncoming
snakes. Orochimaru couldn't believe
that Naruto was not from the
Uchi clan but could use fire release
on such a large scale. In the smoke
a deafening noise rang out.
Naruto's Rasensuriken suddenly rushed
out of the smoke, flying towards Orochimaru.
Orochimaru couldn't help but feel
startled, Mch's woman's intuition told him
this move was extremely dangerous. He
immediately bit his finger, pressed it on the ground, and made
the third La Sinh Mon cave. But this La
Sinh Gate absolutely cannot block
Naruto's Rasenuriken.
Orochimaru's body was eventually
unable to avoid being caught up in it. Waiting until
the white storm passed, he lay miserably on
the ground. Naruto used his lightning
body technique to come to his side, smiled
and said, "Mr. Orochimaru, can
please stop aiming for Sasuke
's body now?" Compared to Orochimaru's
submission, Naruto is more concerned about Sasuke's
safety. Orochimaru stood up,
unable to calm down for a long time. After
the recent series of battles, Naruto's breathing
frequency did not change, because
Naruto had not used all his strength and easily
overwhelmed Orochimaru. Naruto's
current strength made Orochimaru think for the
first time in his life that he had
mistakenly looked at someone. He laughed and said that
would later abandon Sasuke because the direction of
the ninja world had changed. Naruto's strong
wind will blow somewhere
became the thing he was most interested in.
Orochimaru has now been captured.
The first thing Naruto needs to do is help Mr.
get his hands and all his
rings back. He captured a white Jessu who was
spying on intelligence outside the village, then
snuck into the Uzumaki clan's ruins in
Konoha to get the Feng
Tan demon mask. After completing his preparations, Orochimaru
put the mask on his face. With a passing
wind, Orochimaru released the
soul of his hands, and four other
souls were also released.
Naruto opened White Jessu's mouth, and Orochimaru's
body immediately flew into
. He finally got his
hands and jutsu back that he had always
wished for. At this time, Naruto quietly looked at the four
souls in front of him, sinking into thought. This
is the soul of the previous
Hokage. If left alone, they will automatically
return to the Pure Land. But then there is a possibility that
will be reincarnated by Kabuto Yakushi and other
people, and
will then become enemies. Naruto took
out a scroll, apologized to the
Hokage that now was not the time to meet
face to face, then used the spirit transformation technique
to temporarily seal the souls of the four Hokage.
Orochimaru watched Naruto perform the technique
smoothly, and couldn't help but stick out his snake
tongue. He asked Naruto what
's next plan was and that the place Naruto was going to was
the rain village. For the rain village, Naruto has
an unusual feeling. That place was
where the master he loved the most gave
his life, and was also the place he promised Konan
he would protect. But in his previous life, after
became Hokage, Naruto did not
keep his promise to Konan. That year, the rain village
not only did not have peace, but
ended up becoming the base of the
Kara organization. Naruto swore in his heart that
would definitely return everything this time
what was owed in the previous life. But
it's too early to say this now because Pen is currently
still the biggest enemy. As soon as
Naruto and Orochimaru set foot in
the rain village, Nagato sensed
intruders through the martial fox's free branch
technique. Conan stepped forward and asked with
suspicion, could it be that Teacher Jira has returned
again? Nagato denied Conan
's thoughts because there were two intruders and one of the
chakra auras was probably stronger than his sensei.
He dispelled the martial arts technique,
then let Conan turn into paper to
scout the village like last time. Naruto
looked up at the sky and suddenly
stopped raining. He reminded Orochimaru to be alert
, this was definitely Nagato who had detected
the intruder. Naruto splits two
shadow clones to collect natural
energy. After preparing, he caught
a paper butterfly to proactively reveal
's location. Very quickly, pieces of paper gathered
next to Pen into the shape of
Conan. She reported to Pen that the people who came
were Naruto and Orochimaru. Faced
with the Nine-Tails Jinchuriki coming to surrender,
Nagato told Konan to hold off the opponent
first. After preparations are complete, he will send
the entire army to attack. Very
quickly, the pieces of paper gathered in front of
Naruto and Orochimaru into the shape of
Konan. Conan asked Naruto three times seven
times, what was the purpose of coming here? Naruto smiled
and said that he came to fulfill the promise
he made to his senior brother last time. Knowing that the person
did not have good intentions, Conan immediately used the
pieces of paper behind his back to attack. Naruto
did not dodge, creating a great gem
rasengan in his hand to block in front of him.
He blocked the pieces of paper while pushing
Rasengan towards Konan. Seeing Naruto
getting closer, Konan's body suddenly turned
into countless pieces of paper. Pieces of paper
flew into the sky and quickly rushed towards him
Naruto. Naruto was always alert, he discovered
that many pieces of paper had the
technique of the explosive charm. With a scream,
the talismans exploded right on Naruto's body.
But Naruto has the flying thunder god, this type of
attack clearly cannot hurt
him. After the explosion ended, in
the smoke, there was no sign of
Naruto. Konan couldn't help but
startled, Naruto's voice suddenly
rang out behind Can. Konan's
technique is still as skillful as before.
Just as Naruto's chop was about to
hit Kan's neck, suddenly a
black stick attacked
Naruto's head from behind. Naruto reacted extremely quickly, turned
around and grabbed the side's black stick.
The two monk brothers after the last Jira incident
finally met again. The side tells you to retreat
, and at the same time activate the Than La Thien
process. A strong thrust suddenly
came. Naruto used the Flying Thunder God to fly out
behind him before the thrust reached
himself. He went straight to the point, telling Thien
Dao to take him to meet Nagato's body.
Thien Dao was a bit surprised when he heard that, indeed
at that moment Jira saw the
truth of the party. While claiming to be
god, he naturally refused
Naruto's request. Naruto carefully observed the six coins
in front of him. These six people were the six
people he had fought in Konoha.
You can say
has the ability of each pen in the palm of your hand. Suddenly, the
animal path summoned a rhinoceros and a large
bird to attack Naruto. Naruto jumped
up and used the great gem Rasengan to easily solve
the spirit beasts. But at this
moment his body was suddenly fixed
in the air,
Party's invisible chameleon used its tongue to wrap tightly around Naruto.
The next second, a black stick accelerated by
by Than La Thien Trinh attacked
at Naruto's face. Naruto had to use it
cast lightning to dodge attacks. Side
looked at the kunai in Naruto's mouth
fell into contemplation. It turns out that's it. The flying thunder
magical art of the legendary Konoha golden lightning
? No wonder
was able to dodge that attack just now? Orochimaru observed
from above uttering
snapping sounds. Jira's students are all excellent.
At this time, the side raised its hand to launch Vientiane
Thien Duc attracted Naruto towards him. Asura
Dao simultaneously stepped forward, intending to give Naruto
a stab through the heart. Naruto saw that and
formed a seal with his hands, and in turn used
's suction power to launch a large inflammation bullet. The bullet inflammation was
increased by gravity, the scale
quickly expanded, but the heavenly path was not
afraid. While maintaining Van Tuong Thien Duong,
raised his other hand to open a protective
shield. He isolated the fire while
continued to attract Naruto towards him. Seeing that
Naruto was about to be pierced by Asura Dao,
Naruto activated the Flying Thunder Spirit to dodge
the attack. But Thien Dao had already
guessed that Naruto would use the Flying Thunder God to
escape. So when Naruto first
used the Flying God, he took advantage of Rinegan's
ability to share vision, recording
all of
Naruto's Flying God Kunai locations nearby. Naruto's body just
used the instant body technique to appear,
the black stick accelerated by Pen's Than La
Thien Trinh attacked again.
Naruto was surprised, luckily he had the
sensing ability of the immortal mode, an extreme
tilt dodged the
attack. After a while of fighting, Naruto couldn't
help but exclaim, the side here was indeed much stronger
than the one he fought
with in his previous life. That's natural because
in his previous life before Naruto fought
Pen, Pen was in a state of loss
after destroying Konoha. At this time,
Thien Dao told Naruto not to say that six
fighting him was cowardly, anyway, Naruto
is a student of teacher Jira. Naruto heard
, the corner of his mouth curled up in a smile.
At this time, of course he was not
Naruto had just learned fairy mode
that year. He formed a seal with both hands to create
36 shadow clones surrounding Pen, then
teased and told Pen not to say that hitting
one was despicable, after all, senior brother was
a god. All of Naruto
's shadow clones are in fairy mode, other
parties outside of Heaven's Path are completely
unable to resist the attack of the defenseless ancestor
. Very soon, only
was left on the battlefield. Naruto's remaining
clones immediately rushed forward to attack
. In an instant, the Heavenly Path used
the god La Thien Trinh to push away all of Naruto's
clones. But a
flying thunder god kunai suddenly shot
in front of him. The next second, Naruto's
self, holding the Rasengan, used the lightning
body technique to arrive. Rasengan hits
straight into the chest of the heavenly path. Just like
, Naruto defeated six parties. He
used the black stick on his body
to trace back Nagato's location. After
a lifetime, the two children of prophecy
are finally about to meet again. Nagato
, just like in his previous life, told Naruto
about his two pains. After
finished listening, Naruto expressed his
sympathy and understanding for
Nagato's actions in a low voice. The only thing is, the pain that monk
you have to endure is actually the plot
of one person. Rinegan is actually
not an eye opened by the elder brother
, its true owner is the founder
of Konoha Uchi Madara. The shock
turned this three-view upside down, Nagato and Konan
were both surprised and naturally unable to
accept and disbelieve. Naruto continued to
explain, the Uchi Madara he said no
must be the masked man. That person
called himself Madara. but actually
is just a scammer. Hearing that, Nagato
immediately scolded Naruto that there must be
limits when joking. A black stick
suddenly shot out from the machine he was sitting on. Naruto
did not use his body to receive the attack
like in his previous life, but leaned forward to dodge
. He tried to think in his mind
of information that could move Nagato
and Konan. After thinking three times, Naruto
produced a bouquet of confetti from an extra
scroll and explained that this was the
flower of never-ending hope that Conan
once gave him. Seeing this bouquet,
Nagato and Konan immediately showed surprise.
Because the Chakra on this confetti
is without a doubt
Conan's. But even so, Konan and everyone
still had difficulty believing that what Naruto said about
Madara was true. In any case, the ideal
and the belief that has persisted for many years
are just lies fabricated by others
. No one can
easily accept such reality. Seeing
that, Naruto stepped forward and held out his fist and
said, "Clash fists with me, and
you will know everything." Looking into Naruto's
eyes full of vicissitudes and steadfastness,
Nagato for a moment seemed to see
the shadow of Yahiko. At the moment the three
people clashed fists,
Naruto's past life memories rushed into
Nagato and Konan's minds like a tsunami. The
Fourth Great Ninja War, the resurrection of Osasuki Kawya,
the multiple shadow clone battle with
Hinata and finally the
quiet end of the whole world. Countless images from previous lives
continuously streamed in. After
finished watching everything, Nagato and
Conan's hearts could not calm down. They
used trembling voices to ask Naruto if
these things were true?
Naruto said in a deep voice, "It's completely
true, the future is really dire and bad
that bad. The me that year was lucky
goes back to this era right before
Lin Zhong." Looking at the bouquet of confetti in
's hand Naruto, Nagato and everyone could basically
be sure that what Naruto showed them
was all true. Because even though memories could be
faked, Konan's chakra would not
mess with the memories. This bouquet of confetti
was always placed next to Jira sensei's grave.
Unexpectedly, his junior brother would shoulder
such a future alone. After accepting these
...
truths, Conan asked Naruto what
's future plan was. What Naruto wanted to do was to use every
way to become stronger to defeat
's future people and protect this
world The
kekkei genkai of the major
ninja villages and the gathering of the power of all the
tailed beasts. These powers could
be said to be the ultimate secret of each village
Nagato clearly understood that Naruto doing something like
would definitely become the enemy of
the entire ninja world. Naruto first clenched his fists, then opened his mouth
...
calmly said, "With the current situation of the
ninja world being divided, wanting everyone
to truly unite can be said to be
a rainbow story. When people encounter
common enemies, they always stand
together. Therefore, the only way to become
the enemy of the whole world first can save
this world." This is also the reason
Naruto wants to escape from Konoha. Because
because if he acts as a
ninja of Konoha, every action
of him will bring disaster to Konoha.
After listening to Naruto's great plan,
Nagato knows very well that these
things are not something Naruto can do
alone. He has decisively chosen
like in his previous life, which is to trust
Naruto. He hopes that Naruto will
be able to stay in the rain village in the future
...
is the most solid for Naruto. Naruto listened
to Nagato's words, his heart was deeply
moved, thousands of words turned into a sentence
of immense gratitude. At this time, in a dark
cave in the Fire Nation, White Jessu suddenly
suddenly brought shocking news to
Obito. According to the information that
's clone discovered, the Nine-Tails Jinchuriki
escaped from Konoha and together with
Orochimaru sneaked into the neighboring rain village. The
person known as the god was defeated by the Nine-Tails Jin Churiki
and spoke to the
opponent. After hearing this, Obito's eyes couldn't help
stop. According to previous
reconnaissance by the white Jessu, although Naruto has improved
in strength after 3 years of traveling outside,
is at most only on par with
Sasuke. Being able to defeat Pen possessing
Rinegan was something he completely
did not expect. What surprised him even more was
Naruto's motives, an impulsive
brat who became a fugitive ninja,
really made it
impossible to guess. Obito asked the white Jetsu if he heard
the conversation between Naruto and Nagato at
that time? White Jetsu's answer was
no. Because Naruto seems to have
human magic, extremely
sensitive sensing abilities. If he ventures closer,
his whereabouts will definitely
be discovered. Hearing that, Obito couldn't help but ponder.
The worst situation now is that Nagato
may have betrayed them. To prevent the strange
demon statue from suddenly being summoned
by Nagato, Obito used his right eye to temporarily suck
all the strange demon statue into
Camui space, then told the White Jessu to continue
dooming and reporting. At this time in the rainy
village, Naruto stood in front of the mirror looking at
himself in his fire cloud costume. He
exclaimed that he would one day wear
this outfit. Ms. Na saw Naruto's appearance
, her beautiful eyes lit up, she smiled
and said, "This outfit suits you very well."
you." Naruto helplessly shook his head and told Ms.
Nan, stop teasing him. From
his sleeve, Conan took out a ring with the
code name Linh. This was Yahiko's previous code name
. Representing Akasuki's
original idea of creating a
world without war and pain
suffering. She hoped Naruto could inherit
secret. Naruto solemnly accepted
the ring and put it on
's right thumb. From now on,
...
Naruto and Konan went to the meeting room
of the rain village, who
had been waiting there for a long time
...
the first thing they have to do is strengthen
's manpower for the Akasuki organization. Ms. Anan first
analyzed, currently the only surviving member
of Akasuki is Kisame, but
Kisame is completely loyal to Obito,
wanting the other person to betray is not
an easy thing. Naruto did not express his opinion,
the image of Kisame from his previous life Letting the shark eat
his flesh to protect his teammates,
is still hard to forget. But he has a way to subdue
the opponent. After speaking, Naruto
took out the fruit with Koto
Amasukami eyes. As long as these
eyes exist, subduing the opponent is not
difficult Akasuki member
...
is still alive, that is the immortal Hidan. Although
Hidan is the one who killed Asuma, it must be
admitted that his ability
can have a great effect at a crucial
moment. They decided to dig out Hidan
first, waiting for the opportunity to revive
Asuma later, you will apologize to the other person. Some
of them went together to the dense forest of
the Nara clan. Very quickly they found
a hole in the ground buried with a lot of rocks. After
after digging out all the rocks, inside a gray
head with eyes closed tightly, that was
Hidan. Thien Dao uses Thien Tuong Thien
sucked Hidan's head into his hand. Hidan
suddenly opened his eyes wide and glared at
in front, his mouth kept screaming
. Even if I only have my mouth left, I
intend to bite that brat to death. Ms.
An hated leaving Hy's mouth open, it was true that only
and her head was restless. As soon as Hidan
saw that the leader saved him,
continued to laugh frankly. He immediately knew that
the leader would not forget him, but when
saw Naruto's unfamiliar face,
he was surprised and asked Conan who this was? Konan
simply replied that Naruto was a new member
who had joined Akasuki. Naruto tried to suppress the
urge to crush Hidan's head. He told
Orochimaru to take Hidan to the rain village first,
and asked the other person to help Hidan create
a body. Hearing that, Orochimaru revealed a
smile full of meaning. Because of Hidan's
principle of immortality, he had always wanted to research
to save him. At this moment, Naruto could clearly feel
that Sasuke's Taka team was
not far away. Since he was reborn, he had
no chance to meet Sasuke, so Naruto decided to
meet him once. Very quickly, he
found Team Taka who was moving
quickly. Seeing his old friend
again, Naruto's eyes shook violently. No matter
, Sasuke in his future world
has long since passed away, but Sasuke
at this time is still a vengeful
person. Seeing Naruto wearing the same
fire cloud outfit as him, Sasuke was extremely
surprised. He asked Naruto what
was all about? Naruto retracted his
thoughts and smiled and said, "As you can see,
I am now also a member of
Akasuki. The few people next to me are my senior brother
and senior sister." Sasuke listened
Naruto couldn't help but look up to the sky and laugh
loudly. Unexpectedly, even the guy from team
has now become a fugitive ninja.
Falsehood. Indeed, everything
in this world is a lie. Under the guise of a big smile
of Sasuke, his heart is actually filled with
bitterness. Because Naruto has always been the only tie
that he cannot break
in the village, but now he has also become
a ninja of the fugitive clan. Naruto saw through
Sasuke's thoughts, but right now he
didn't want to be frank with
Sasuke because hatred was the best
and fastest way for the Uchiha to grow up.
Furthermore, even if Naruto explains everything
to Sasuke, the current Sasuke
will only think that it is a lie
because Naruto was fake. Although I'm sorry Sasuke,
but if you want to defeat that family, it's
use some special tricks. Naruto has gone through many
impossible to
ups and downs, and is no longer the naive
teenager he once was. At this time, Sasuke with
extremely fast body approached Naruto, sword
Kusanagi slashed downwards, today he vowed
would be here to completely cut off the past.
Naruto quickly pulled out a
Kunai to fight. The swords of the two
people collided violently, the blades intersecting
each other. The more Sasuke fought, the more surprised he became.
Naruto, you only know how to rely on
chakra to use brute force, when
did you learn such exquisite and
sword techniques? Naruto was also
extremely emotional. Saringan combined with
the swordsmanship taught by Orochimaru is indeed
superb. If it weren't for
that year, you had worked hard for many years practicing basic
ninja skills, today in terms of sword
techniques, I'm afraid you wouldn't be
Sasuke's opponent. At this time, Naruto leaned forward to dodge,
at the same time swinging his fist at
Sasuke. Sasuke easily dodged Naruto's
attack, but in the next second,
his face suddenly rippled and
flew back out. He looked like he couldn't
believe it, because just now he had clearly
dodged Naruto's attack. Naruto
smiled and asked, "Do you know what senjutsu is?
?" Stimulated by Naruto, Sasuke bit
and clenched his teeth, condensing Chidori
in his hand and once again rushed towards Naruto. Naruto
did not give in, using Rasengan to fight
. Their two special moves
collided violently in the air, and in the end
each person's body flew
backwards. After a short exchange, Naruto
told Sasuke not to be too hasty. If he
didn't want those eyes to go blind so soon,
Sasuke took back
's Kusanagi sword and said, "That's not
important anymore. Even though Naruto had become
a fugitive ninja, he told Sasuke
that if he wanted to destroy Konoha, he would not
spare any effort to stop him." Sasuke
immediately got angry, "You mean you can
easily stop me?" Naruto confidently
smiled and said, "At least for now."
Sasuke looked up to the sky and laughed loudly, he
Although
the short fight just now, he clearly knew that Naruto's current strength
...
was beyond measure. He admitted that Naruto
was indeed stronger, but so what?
Do you know the real reason why I attacked Konoha
? Naruto said without expression,
"I know the truth about Itachi. If Itachi
were still alive, he certainly wouldn't
expect you to attack Konoha." Sasuke was immediately
surprised, although he didn't know
where Naruto got the information from, but Ichi
is his inverted scale, touching it makes
angry. Purple chakra burst
out from his body, the anger caused Sasuke
to soon open his skeleton form. of Susanu.
He scolded Naruto for not having the right to
criticize Itachi. Naruto's eyes couldn't help but
...
stop at Susanu's most elementary form, but he still couldn't help but remember
...
the glorious years of fighting with Sasuke
in the future
...
Naruto's clone left behind in the rain village suddenly
suddenly disappeared. The information from
's shadow reflected back, and the person
who reappeared was Obito. Realizing that the situation was not good,
Naruto immediately hurriedly said goodbye to Sasuke,
then took Conan and everyone back to
the rain village. Seeing that Naruto had even learned the lightning magic, Sasuke
...
angrily punched the ground.
Naruto, how much
have you grown? In the rainy village, Naruto used
his immortal sense to quickly find
and saw Obito intruding. Obito saw
Naruto and everyone was extremely surprised,
he coldly said to Nagato, "Your bravery
is already great, you dare to befriend
with the Nine-Tails' Jinchuriki." Discovering that
Nagato had betrayed him, Obito advanced
to take back his Rinegan, but
Naruto blocked him. Obito was
a bit surprised, because the feeling Naruto
gave him was exactly the same as Minato from
. He said coldly, "Naruto, a
person who has targeted the Hokage since childhood,
why did you escape from Konoha to become a
fugitive ninja?" Hearing that, Naruto disdainfully
often laughed and said, "Aren't you
the same? But what makes it harder for me
to understand is that a person who has been loved and cared for by his master
and his master since childhood, why
one day, when his master
gave birth, took
's newly born son as a hostage to kidnap her and release Sheep
Wei?" Obito heard that, his face under the
mask couldn't help but break into a cold sweat. He
clenched his fists, unable to believe
was asked what Naruto meant. Naruto meaningfully
said, "This is a long story, but
before talking to others,
should at least take off
's fake mask." Uchi Obito. Obito's pupils
twitched, he asked Naruto how
knew his true identity. Regarding
keeping his identity a secret,
Obito considered himself to have done quite well.
Naruto naturally won't answer truthfully
let go. He divided into dozens of images
of his body, taking a stance to prepare for battle.
Seeing that Naruto had just used his shadow
body, Obito speculated that Naruto must be very
knowledgeable about his abilities. He
became more and more curious about what kind of god
Naruto was. Naruto let the clones
hold the Rasengan to attack. The
human sea technique can not only increase
the chance of touching Obito, but also
reduce the probability of being absorbed by the opponent.
Obito timed the opportunity to continuously
destroy Naruto's shadow clones, but
Naruto immediately added new
shadow clones. This was no
way, Obito decided to destroy
all of Naruto's clones in one breath. His right
eye shot out an orange force field
that twisted violently, then combined with
's fire release to unleash a violent burst of wind.
Naruto exclaimed, "This move is so
nostalgic." He also formed a seal to launch
fire squad's fire bullets. The two seas of fire collided violently, in the end Naruto, possessing
...
a huge amount of chakra, had the
upper hand. However, because of the
fire release, he also revealed his true self.
A vortex of spacetime rolled up
behind Naruto. Obito came out of the
vortex and tried to suck Naruto in, but Naruto had
the ability to sense the senjutsu.
He condensed a large Rasengan
in his hand, while smashing it backwards.
Obito had to give up absorbing, turned on
penetration mode and passed by Naruto.
After a short exchange, he was completely
certain that Naruto knew his
abilities like the back of his hand. Countless
mists made him confused,
a cautious person like him decided
to retreat first. After leaving
threatening words, Obito sucked himself away and disappeared
rainy village. Naruto breathed a sigh of relief, no matter
, the battle with Obito really
couldn't be ignored. At this time,
Nagato and Konan came over and asked Naruto if
was injured. Naruto shook his head and said, "No
okay, just consuming a little chakra."
Ever since he saw the truth of the
future, Nagato has always had a
thought in his heart. He hopes Naruto can inherit his
Rinegan. Anyway, these eyes
are related to the safety of the whole world
ninja Obito to carry out the lunar plan
eye will definitely still find ways to
take over the eyes only a tree grafted onto
Naruto is the safest and
Naruto at the same time showed surprise Naruto
although very opposed but he knew he wanted
to fight against the Osatsuki clan's power
Rinegan is indispensable. In the end
under Nagato's repeated persistence,
Naruto finally agreed to temporarily transplant a Linegon eye
. Anyway, when
you're not here, the rain village still needs
Nagato to guard it. With
Orochimaru's help, the two successfully exchanged
an eye. Naruto and Nagato both
belong to the Uzumaki clan, moreover he is
a reincarnation of Asura, wanting to adapt
to this Linegan eye is naturally
not a problem. In just a few days,
Naruto had mastered the basic application
of Rinegan's six abilities. Nagato
felt
Naruto's growth and felt relieved. Now that Naruto
has shared it, the burden on his shoulders has
decreased a lot. Looking at Nagato's legs
was uncomfortable, Naruto suddenly had an idea
. In his previous life, during the fourth
Great Ninja War, he lost an arm in
the valley at the end. Later, under Chunade's care, Konoha improved Hasirama's cells and successfully fitted
...
...
him with an artificial limb. That prosthetic limb does not
affect the gathering experience at all
Your Rasengan later. Perhaps through
the method at that time could also help
Nagato recover his legs. Naruto quickly brought
Nagato to Orochimaru's side and
told Orochimaru the
treatment plan for Chunade at that time. Orochimaru heard
and immediately understood. According to
Chunade's plan, he finally knows how to
solve the rejection problem of
Hasirama cells. He told Naruto to rest assured, he had
confidence in helping Nagato recover his legs.
Nagato heard that and was extremely excited, thinking
about being able to run
and jump after a new world with his junior brother, he revealed
a smile he hadn't seen for a long time. At this time
at Van Loi Hap, Sasuke, like
in his previous life, captured Killer B and handed
over to Obito. When Jikage learned that Killer B
Sasuke had taken him away, he immediately became angry,
immediately sent a letter asking Konoha to give the village
an explanation. In the previous life,
was also this letter, Samu gave it to Danzo,
and this time the recipient of the letter was Chunade.
The content of the letter was to organize a
meeting of the five kage and request Konoha to pursue
and expel Sasuke. Chunade immediately summoned
Jira and Shikaku. She told Shikaku to take
's place as Hokage to handle work in village
when she was not present, and let Jiraia
be her bodyguard, accompanying her to the Land of Iron
to attend the five Kage conference. The
story involves the Akasuki organization and Sasuke,
maybe Naruto will also appear in
there. After receiving
letters, other large villages also prepared to go to
Thich Quoc. A few days later, in a
dense forest, Obito suddenly stopped Taka
's team on their way to Konoha. Because of Ko B,
Sasuke caught only a white-legged
octopus. Obito asked Sasuke to help him do
one more thing. Sasuke was both surprised
and naturally disagreed, but Obito
took advantage of
Sasuke's eagerness to retaliate. As long as Sasuke agrees to work
hey, he'll help Sasuke attack Konoha.
And what Obito wanted him to do was attack
the meeting of the five Kage. At this time, the
ninja world is holding a meeting of the five Kage.
This time Konoha's representative is no longer
Danzo but Chunade and Jiraia. The
content of the meeting was also a discussion about
dealing with the Akasuki organization. After a
discussion, they decided to form a
Ninja alliance. But who will lead the
alliance becomes a problem?
Mifun nominated Chunade to be the leader of this
alliance, but Jikage firmly
disagreed. He believes that the
leader of the alliance should be the strongest
cloud village leader. Just as the kage were
arguing endlessly, Jessu suddenly
appeared shouting Hello and revealed
to everyone Sasuke's whereabouts.
As soon as Jaikage heard Sasuke's name,
had no place to be angry and immediately broke
White Jetsu's neck, then called Sii and Darui to start
searching for Sasuke's shadow.
Chunade glanced at Jira, Jira immediately
understood and followed. At this time, Sasuke killed
red eyes of the fighters of the hall. Suddenly
Jikage and his subordinates broke through the ceiling
and appeared in front of Sasuke. Sasuke
completely lost his composure at this time. He
and Jika Kage, just like their previous life
, launched a fierce duel
. Just as the two of them were about to
surrender, Jira promptly appeared and
neutralized the attacks of both sides. Looking at
and seeing Tam Nin Jira, this somewhat creepy Jika
still has to respect him. He suppressed the
anger in his heart and asked Konoha to give him an
explanation, and at the same time intended to cut off
his
left arm, which was corroded by black inflammation. Jira saw that and quickly called Mr.
over, then took out a roll of paper and pen
quickly wrote. He used the wind and fire
method to seal the black inflammation on his arm
into the scroll. Jika sees that huh
was cold, he wouldn't spare
kept him an arm. At this moment Sasuke slowly stood up.
Sasuke because Konoha
Jira saw
's pathetic appearance, his expression serious. He advised
Sasuke to give up revenge. Hearing that,
couldn't help but laugh coldly, "As
Naruto's master, you should teach your pipe-drinking disciple
well first and then teach him." Having said
, Ameter Terasu suddenly activated.
Jira saw this and was about to use
the lion chaos technique to defend, but at this time
a stream of golden sand suddenly blocked
Amerasu. Gara and Chunade also appeared here at the same time. Chunade tries
...
to convince Sasuke to give up his resistance
and return to Konoha to face trial. Sasuke smiled
coldly and said, "If you want him back, it's not
okay, just return his parents,
return his family, he will obediently
give up and return." Konoha looked at
Sasuke like that, Jira understood clearly in his heart.
He knew Sasuke was not like Orochimaru.
Orochimaru became a fugitive ninja because he pursued
the truth, and Sasuke was a true
enemy. He told Chunade not to
waste any more words, using force to
coerce the opponent back was
the best policy. Chunade took off her coat,
and signaled Jira to help.
Vira immediately understood the opponent's intention to quickly
win, quickly defeated
Sasuke and took him away, otherwise Jika Kage
would definitely not forgive him. Chunade
rushed forward, with a powerful slash from the Heaven
kick, the ground of the
arena immediately cracked, but after
the smoke cleared, only Sasuke opened Susanu standing
in place, clearly such an attack
had not yet broken through his defense.
Chunade was a bit surprised, is this the legendary Susanu
? Bao gave another powerful
punch to hit Sasuke's Susanu.
The tough Susanu armor appears again
cracks. Sasuke and Jikage who were standing next to
were both surprised. The destructive power
of Chunade
's monster punch is not inferior to Jage. Sasuke resisted
's force and pushed it back, and at the same time
intended to use Susanu's bone fist to attack
against Chunade, but at this moment the ground he
was standing on suddenly turned into a swamp
. This is the earth release yellow spring
trieu launched by Jira. lose balance.
Sasuke and Susanu began to sink
. He was surprised and
summoned a new summoned beast, a small
hawk. As soon as he dispelled Susanu,
he grabbed the hawk's leg and flew
towards the ceiling broken by Jika Kage, after which
immediately broke the wall and flew out.
Chunade and Jira saw this and immediately chased after them.
Continuously fight Kage-level
characters. Sasuke was now gradually exhausted
. Chunade advised him to stop.
Following them back to the village there was at least a glimmer of
hope. At this time, Jikage also chased after him.
He told Chunade to get away, and at the same time swung
a strong fist and rushed towards Sasuke. But
Chunade blocked Jakage's
attack. Jikage was furious,
asked her what she meant. Chunade said with a serious face
that even if she kills Sasuke, hatred will
not disappear because of that. But she didn't
know that doing so actually
saved the Kage. At this time, on a high point
not far from the battlefield, Naruto secretly
looked at the pathetic appearance of
Sasuke confronting the Five Kage,
he felt very uncomfortable in his heart. Compared to Sasuke, in his previous
life he was the son of the Hokage, with
help from Kurama and his friends. Although the
front is hard, the
side can be said to live a happy life. But
Sasuke is different, today he saw with his own eyes
how miserable Sasuke
's situation that year was. In his previous life, he was
friends, he didn't come in at all
understands Sasuke's true feelings but
only uses his so-called justice
to pursue Sasuke. Thinking of
here, Naruto clenched his fists. At this
moment, Sasuke was surrounded by five kage, and
was lying on the ground. Jira stepped forward to
take the other person away, but Obito suddenly
jumped up from the ground and hugged
Sasuke. He said coldly, "Sasuke can't
hand it over to them." Everyone was
amazed. Jika reacted the fastest,
he directly attacked but passed through
Obito's body. Obito told Jikage not to be so noisy
, since it's a meeting of the five Kage, why don't
let him also join in the conversation?
Having finished speaking, Obito sucked Sasuke into Camu and
, just like in his previous life, announced his plan
to plan the moon's eye to everyone
. Uchi Madara, Sage of the Six Paths,
Ten-Tails. These words surprised every
person. To collect all
of the tailed beasts, Obito as
Madara told the ninjas to obediently hand over
the eight-tailed and nine-tailed beasts. People naturally
disagree and obediently compromise.
Seeing this, Obito directly announced the capture of
at the beginning of the fourth great ninja war. After the battle, Xuan
took Sasuke out of the
school. But as soon as Obito left, Naruto
suddenly appeared in front of everyone.
Everyone was once again surprised.
Seeing that Naruto had Rinegan again, Jira went
up and asked him what the matter was.
Naruto smiled and said, "After leaving
Konoha, you joined Nagato's Akasuki
organization. Your Rinegan is also the monk
Nagato brother volunteered to implant for
you." Looking at Naruto like that,
Jiraia's heart almost broke. Could it be that even
Naruto has become corrupt?
Naruto's heart is right now
is bleeding, but before completing
his goal, he must completely cut off
ties with his master and Konoha to avoid
getting involved with them. Onoki just saw again
was a member of Akasuki, immediately flew
into the air, taking an attack stance.
Naruto saw that and calmly told Onoki to wait
for him to finish speaking. The purpose of his visit
this time was to hope to obtain the secret techniques of the major
ninja villages. The Lightning Ninjutsu of
Kumogakure, the Lightening Rock Technique of
Stone Village, and other secret techniques of
Mist Village and Sand Village were all things he wanted
to have. These secret techniques are the
foundation for the five great sand villages in each direction
in the ninja world. Other kage
besides Chunade and Gara naturally will not
agree to obediently hand them over. Jika on duty
continued the storm, scolding the ninjas of
Konoha for not knowing how high and wide the sky and earth
were. Seeing that she was about to attack, Chunade quickly
stood in front of him and said, "Naruto is the
nine-tailed Jinchuriki of Konoha. Killing the
opponent would ruin the big deal." But Jikage
did not care at all, because killing
Naruto could in turn prevent Madara
from gathering all nine tailed beasts. He rushed
towards Naruto, swinging a powerful punch.
Naruto did not dodge or avoid, turning on his
human magic to accept Jikage's attack
like a cannonball. He felt
admired that Uncle Jikage's speed was still as fast as
before. Having finished speaking, behind Naruto
suddenly appeared several mechanical arms. While
was controlling the kage,
's mechanical arm quickly turned into a cannon to fire. This
is the power of Rinegan's asura path.
Jikage was surprised to see this,
used brute force to escape the
binding, quickly opening the distance.
Onoki above immediately launched a ceiling
to hit Naruto, a white light with no defense
shot diagonally down, but
Naruto just raised his hand, the white light
was immediately absorbed by the Hungry Ghost Path.
Onoki was immediately surprised, "You didn't expect that
there was someone who could resist Tran Don.
Is this the power of Rinegon? Love
in this scene, Konoha is also one of the five
major villages, so if you don't take action, it won't work.
Jira launched a chaotic lion technique
to capture Naruto, but Naruto used
lightning magic to dodge
's attack. Chunade stepped forward and told Naruto to quickly
follow her back to Konoha. With her as Hokage, no one in
Konoha dares to cause trouble with Naruto.
Naruto sincerely thanked Chunade for still
protecting him until now, but now
is not the time for him to return to Konoha. This time, the reason
he openly stated his purpose
to the five great villages was to take advantage of his
foresight about the future to
promote the entire ninja world, thereby
strengthening the overall strength of the
ninja world. Naruto told the Kageês to prepare
the secret scroll he wanted, three
days later he would go to the villages to get it. After saying
, he used the flying thunder spell to disappear
on the spot. Just now there was Uchi Madara's declaration of war
, now in the middle of the street
jumped out an incomprehensible Uzumaki Naruto. After
a period of discussion, the Five Kage immediately decided
to form a Ninja Alliance. Currently
is the only cloud village left with tailed beasts, so
they decided to let Jikage be the
leader of the alliance. Chunade is the
deputy commander. Naruto currently has the
immortal jutsu, Rinegan and Flying Thunder divine jutsu. Whether
has the power of the Nine-Tails or not is still
unknown. If you want to capture the opponent, I'm afraid even
Madara just now will be difficult. Therefore, the
alliance will set the top task of finding
the Eight-Tailed Jinchuriki Killer B, and at the same time let
the villages increase their vigilance, preventing
from taking over the scroll from Naruto. At this time,
Killer B was facing
's nemesis, Kisame. The two, like
in their previous lives, fought a fierce
battle. Killer B was eventually drained of Chakra by Sam
Eada. But just as
Kisame was about to take his opponent away,
Naruto suddenly appeared and kicked him away.
Kisame. Kisame slammed into the giant tree
behind him, he looked incredulous,
because Naruto's movements made him
completely unable to react. If
isn't mistaken, the blond-haired boy in front of him must be
the Nine-Tails Jinchuriki. The last time we met was
three years ago in Konoha. At that time, the vulnerable
kid unexpectedly had grown to
this level. Naruto went up to greet Killer
B who was lying on the ground. But Killer B at this time
does not know Naruto. The Eight-Tails looked
at Naruto's Rinegan and was extremely
surprised. Those eyes were identical to those of Master Luc
Dao Master, and moreover, the Jinchuriki
of the Nine-Tails. Naruto squatted down and placed
his hands on Killer B's body, transferring a bit of
chakra to him. The two had a
brief spiritual exchange. Killer B
and the Eight-Tails were a bit confused
at Naruto's confusing closeness.
Naruto told Killer B to wait a moment, wait for him
to overpower Kisame first and then explain. At this
moment, Sam Eada had absorbed K B's chakra.
huddled close to Kisame. Kisame holding
Sam Eada, who had become extremely large, smiled
and said, "Overpowering me? It seems that compared to three
years ago, your braggart
is far greater than your improvement
." He quickly formed a seal to launch
a massive water burst, dozens of
water sharks simultaneously attacked
Naruto. Naruto's left eye slightly condensed,
Than La Thien Trinh's powerful thrust caused
to shatter all the water sharks. It was at
that Kisame discovered that Naruto had the same
eyes as the leader. At this moment, Naruto told
his purpose. He hopes Kisame
can work under him in the future.
Although he was curious as to why Naruto had
the Rinegan, Kisame would
not betray Obito no matter what. This is what
Naruto admires most about him. Naruto turned
to face Kisame and said, "I know
clearly you won't give up no matter what."
my stance, so please forgive
for my presumptuousness." After saying that,
Naruto quickly turned into a fruit with a pair of
eyes Koto Amatsukami in the scroll.
Along with Koto
Amasukami's move, Kisame's attitude immediately
changed 180 degrees. Naruto stepped forward and tried to shake
's hand with the other person, later looking forward to
being taught more. Kisame politely
replied, "No, I'm the one who needs
to be taught." From then on, Kisame completely
joined Naruto's command. Killer B next to him almost couldn't believe his eyes,
...
why did that shark's attitude
suddenly change? Naruto smiled and said,
"This is it is the power of Koto
Amasukami." Hearing that, Killer B was immediately
on guard. Seeing this, Naruto told him to rest
in mind, this technique is not a technique that
can be used multiple times in a
short period of time. Although Killer B was very grateful that Naruto suddenly
appeared to save him, Konoha has never been on good terms with the
...
cloud village. He questioned Naruto. What is the purpose of
? Naruto told Kisame to return all the
chakra that Sam Eada had just absorbed to
Killer B, then smiled and told
Killer B to touch fists with him. Although Killer B
was a bit surprised, he still did
as Naruto said, holding out his fists in Naruto's
...
previous life The past of the two
of them, the invasion of the ukiê
family who died in battle, a series of images
continuously appeared in Killer B's head. He was startled
and asked Naruto, "What exactly is this?
Is all of this true?" Bat
Vi saw the Sage of the Six Paths appear
in Naruto's memory, he was convinced that
Naruto must not be lying, because
of the Six Paths master's chakra he was
most familiar with. Two hot tears
could not help but flow down Ko B's cheeks in
memories of the kage finally saving him. suffer
Osatsuki killed with one blow
did not expect such a future to be arranged
thought again Ko B asked Naruto what the next
plan was, witnessing the tragic death
of his brother in the future. At this time
he, like Naruto, has the same
goal of changing the future. Naruto hopes
that Killer B can go back to
village with him in the rain. He needs Killer B's power to
help him. But before Killer B could answer
, suddenly three figures quickly
landed. Jaikage and his subordinate
also appeared here at this time. Jaikage
scanned his surroundings
for signs of battle. When he saw Naruto next to
Killer B, he looked surprised, immediately
told Killer B to leave Naruto quickly. But
Killer B suddenly apologized to Jikage and
said that from today he will no longer return to village
. Hearing that, Jika immediately became
angry and rushed forward, intending to force B
to go home. But at this moment Kisame blocked
in front of Jaikage. He calmly said,
"They told me not to go with you anymore
." Jika didn't have so much control,
a powerful lightning strike directly hit
back dozens of meters. Kisame stood
up and couldn't help but exclaim, his magic
and destructive power were more difficult to deal with than
's precious beast of Konoha. Jai Kage in
is a famous legend about taijutsu,
is truly famous. He made a
seal, creating a three-wave burst of water, water spewed out
from his mouth, immediately forming a lake blocking
Jag's path. Killer B saw that and
signaled Naruto to quickly take him away. Naruto immediately
used flying thunder magic to take him and
Kisame away from there. Jaikage's face was full of doubt
or, with such an unusually careless call,
he saw for the first time what
had happened. At this time, Naruto and everyone
appeared at a flying lightning god
seal on the outskirts of the cloud village. After viewing Naruto's
memories, Killer B always had one question
expensive. He asked Naruto why
still hasn't mastered the power of the Nine-Tails.
Naruto heard that, his eyes darkened. Since
he was reincarnated in this era, he
has only met the Nine-Tails once. The Nine-Tails then
closed the chakra link between
the two. He was completely unable to
make contact with the Nine-Tails. Killer B pondered
for a moment and then continued, "Naruto,
have you ever thought about where the Naruto who belongs to
this era has gone?" Hearing that, Naruto
couldn't help but swallow
in surprise, because he had absolutely
never thought of this question, nor did he dare to
think about it. A person's marriage cannot just
suddenly disappear. To help Naruto gain
the power of the Nine-Tails, Killer B suggested that
Naruto take a
trip with him to the real waterfall. Naruto told Kisame to return to the
rain village alone first, then followed Killer B to sneak
into the turtle island of the cloud village. Because he experienced
in his previous life, Naruto got used to
sitting on a stone pedestal in front of
for real. Not long after, a figure of
Naruto was indeed the same as before
, slowly walking out of the waterfall. But
this time it turns out it's not the dark Naruto
of his previous life, but the little Naruto of this
era. Little Naruto said sarcastically, "The fake
pretended to take over my body,
you finally dare to come face me
?" Having finished speaking,
the golden cloak of the nine-tailed regime rose from his body.
Naruto saw that, his expression solemn, this
is a mode that can only be opened after
reaches agreement with the Nine-Tails.
Little Naruto raised his hands to condense the
beast jade tail, and at the same time roared, "Quickly return
my body, I don't recognize
someone like you as me." Having finished speaking,
Tailed Beast Ball shot towards Naruto. Naruto
immediately jumped out of the illusion, opened his eyes,
cold sweat trickled down his back. He
breathlessly told Killer B the story
just happened. It seems that before actually taking
back the power of the Nine-Tails, we need to
carefully prepare. Now without the
strength of the Nine-Tails, he decided to master the
secret techniques of the major ninja villages first.
The first thing he wants to learn is lightning, the
lightning chakra mode of Kumogakure. With
's help from Killer B, Naruto quickly got
the lightning scroll armor of
Kumogakure. Lightning armor mode and
shadow clone mode are basically the same, both
are B-level ninjutsu, the strength and weakness depends
on the amount of chakra of the user
using it. The greater the chakra a person uses
, the greater the increase in speed and defense
. Currently, although
Naruto himself has the lightning attribute, he is not
good at using lightning release. So Naruto
decided to learn Sasuke's Chidori first
to practice changing the properties of lightning
release. In just a few hours, relying on his rich combat experience and the accumulation of thousands of shadow clones practicing intense training, he was able to quickly
...
...
...
manifest Chidori without the need for seals.
But that's not all, Naruto remembered the electronic electricity
that Kakashi often used in Boruto.
That is the result after fusing Chakra
with negative attributes into Rikiri, creating a change in
's properties, its power far surpassing Rikiri's.
However, Naruto did not have negative
chakra, so he decisively infused
positive chakra into Chidori. After
many trials and errors,
Naruto's right hand was covered in scars, but he
finally grasped the secret. At this moment, orange
lightning surrounded his right hand.
Naruto let dozens of shadow clones attack
at him, he just lightly swung his right hand
which was covered in orange lightning. Those dozens of
clones were immediately smashed by
lightning and disappeared. Naruto collapsed
to the ground, panting, an excited smile
showing on his face. Mr. Kakashi is right
is a genius among geniuses, and
was able to invent such a skillful technique
. The power of the orange lightning that
fuses with the positive attribute chakra is
feared to be even greater than purple electricity. Resting for a moment,
Naruto took advantage of the victory, and with one breath,
was able to pull out an orange version of
's chakra mode. Killer B looked at Naruto in front of
and smiled with satisfaction. He raised his hand in
position to launch the lightning sword, then
told Naruto to also use all his strength to launch the
lightning sword to confront him once.
One green and one orange rushed towards each other.
As soon as the two people
's heat blades collided, a terrifying
pressure erupted on the field. In the end, it was still Naruto
who was a little better, his body screaming
flew backwards. Naruto clenched his fist
and punched with a feeling of power. Apparently this level
was stronger than he expected. So
even if Kurama temporarily does not acknowledge him
these days, at least
will not cause a gap in combat power.
Killer B was also extremely surprised. He
did not expect that in just a few days Naruto would
develop an enhanced version
of Chakrai mode. Furthermore,
's power is no less than
's older brother Jik Kage. Naruto stepped forward to help Killer B up.
When he canceled the lightning chakra mode on
himself, his body
fell down uncontrollably. The feeling of tearing his muscles made
Naruto scream in pain. That's because Naruto's
body's current intensity has not yet
kept up with this mode. Killer B suggested that he
need to focus more on
physical training after this. After a short
rest, Naruto took Killer B back to
the previous rain village and introduced the rain village
as his base for the
time to come. Killer B looked around, seeing
that this is also my new starting point
later. At this time, Konan and Nagato felt
received strange Chakra and walked out. Naruto
immediately introduced them to the new member
later known as the Eight-Tails Killer B. After a short
greeting, Nagato recounted the
things that happened in the ninja world during this
time. According to information spied by intelligence
members of the rain village, Yakusi
Kabuto, like his previous life, led
the reincarnated army of the filthy earth and allied
with Obito. Sasuke prepares to cooperate
with Obito to destroy Konoha. After hearing
, Naruto couldn't help but admire Obito's cunning
. Konoha and Sasuke are
his biggest weaknesses, so if the two
sides are in love with each other, they can definitely force
Naruto to reveal himself. It seems that there will be
many great battles in the near future. At this time, Ms. Nan
observantly noticed the worried look on Naruto's
face. She asked Naruto if anything
happened? Naruto sighed, then
told the story he encountered in Thac Chan
Thuc. He discovered that the self in
of the past had not disappeared but was more like
imprisoned somewhere deep
inside his heart. Thinking of this, Naruto
couldn't help but hesitate about whether his reincarnation
was right or wrong. Hearing that,
Conan told Naruto not to think too much anymore, whether
was his junior brother in the past or his current
junior brother, there is no doubt that they are all
Naruto bravely moving forward.
Growing up always comes with pain,
one day my past junior brother will
understand him. Present. After listening to Ms. Nan's
words, Naruto felt
a little better. Now is not the
time to worry about this. Naruto must
go inform Konoha about Obito
's impending invasion. According to initial developments,
at this time the Great Ninja War must have almost
ended. But for the current
Ninja world, Naruto's challenge has only
begun. To inform Konoha of
Obito's impending attack, Naruto brought Killer B
back to Konoha once again. After entering
village, they use body transformation to disguise
. The first thing Naruto did was
eat a bowl of Ichiraku noodles. But halfway through eating
, he discovered that the person sitting
not far away was Mr. Airuka. Just saw
Airuka was drunk and arguing
with other ninjas about Naruto not
being a fugitive ninja. Currently in
Konoha, the people still protecting Naruto can be
counted on the fingers of one hand. But
Airuka will forever be one of them. A
student with great expectations turns out to be
a fugitive ninja that everyone
criticizes. His insides must also be very
miserable. Naruto couldn't bear to see Airuka sad
become more depressed. The boy called out
and quickly left. Boss Ichiraku's magic eyes
couldn't help but show
that the leaving figure seemed to be
Naruto. At this time, the streets of Konoha were still
crowded and bustling, but Naruto was just silently
immersed in his thoughts. He
suddenly went to his old house
but that place has now been destroyed into a
pile of rubble. On the surrounding
ruined walls, words like demon fox
and ninja run away were written. This was probably done by Danzo
to take revenge on Naruto. Naruto helplessly
shook his head, turned around and left. Having gone through
many ups and downs, this bit of self-pity was nothing to
anymore. While passing
the Nara clan's residence, Naruto discovered
Shikamaru lazily lying on the roof of
's house. Since Naruto escaped
from Konoha, the most depressed person has to be
Shikamaru. Because he relied on his
extremely high IQ and could not
figure out why Naruto, who always took
the Hokage as his target, would escape from
Konoha. He firmly believes that behind this
action of Naruto, there must be a reason
that no one knows. Suddenly a
sound that he hadn't heard in a long time interrupted
his thoughts. Shikamaru looked towards
later, was surprised to discover that it was Naruto.
Naruto signaled Shikamaru not to make a fuss
. He told Shikamaru to rest assured, this time
he only came to convey that the masked man
was about to attack Konoha. Having said
, he gave a scroll filled with
information about the enemy to Shikamaru. But compared
with this information, Shikamaru cares
more about why Naruto escaped from
Konoha and what
Naruto's left Linegon eye is about. Currently,
Naruto's actions in his eyes are clearly
still thinking about protecting Konoha. Naruto was
silent for a while, even though he really wanted
Shikamaru to be by his side now, plotting
plans, but Konoha still
cannot do without Shikamaru because
the ninja world is about to welcome the fourth great
ninja war. He told Shikamaru to patiently
wait, the time was ripe, he most
intended to make everything public. Shikamaru
listened to Naruto and didn't ask any more questions, because
knowing that Naruto was still on Konoha's side
was enough. After Naruto left, he
immediately brought the scroll to the Hokage's office
and learned that the information was provided by
Naruto. Chunade smiled and immediately
discussed with Shikamaru how to deal
with the masked man and the upcoming Sasuke
. At this time, in a cave in the
wilderness of the Fire Nation, Sasuke and
Obito were both prepared.
Obito ordered, countless white people immediately crawled
underground, moving towards Konoha.
Twisting the water of spacetime swirling in
the forest outside Konoha village, Obito
appeared with Team Taka led by Sasuke
. Very quickly, the white js emerged from the ground
times. A white Ju
on reconnaissance duty reported that the
situation was a bit unusual because there were no
ninja patrolling Konoha nearby. Obito
's eyes couldn't help but darken, the information that they were about to attack
on Konoha had probably been leaked, in the village I
that all fighting forces
have been fully assembled. But Sasuke didn't care,
he smiled disdainfully and said, "No matter how carefully Konoha
prepares, under my new
Sarà eyes, it will become
as thin as tofu." He brandished his cloak
and led Team Taka and the White Jessu Army
towards Konoha village. Looking at Sasuke's
leaving back, Obito smiled
evilly. Indeed, hatred is the
fastest way for Uchi to grow up. He helped
Sasuke attack Konoha precisely to train
to train Sasuke. According to the records on the
stone stele of the Uchi clan, Sasuke and Naruto are undoubtedly
the reincarnations of Indra and
Asura in legend and the people
reincarnated in previous lives are Madara and
Hasirama. So Madara being able to open
Rinegan means Sasuke definitely
can open it too. Now Rinegan
is at Naruto's place. Whether or not
can be conveniently retrieved is still uncertain. So
helping Sasuke unlock the Rinegan is another
option in Obito's lunar
eye plan. At this time, Sasuke alone
stood on the Hokage cliff of Konoha. He
quietly watched the scene of the
village to confirm his inner feelings.
Konoha has become more prosperous than before
but there is no more room for the
Uiha clan. Is this the result that Itachi
risked his life to get? Confirming his
inner feelings, Sasuke ordered, countless white Ju
rose from the ground to attack Konoha.
And he put on Susanu, directly
landed in the middle of the village, holding
the Susanu sword and began to wreak havoc. Luckily
that Naruto had warned Konoha had arranged
the evacuation of civilians in advance.
At this time, the Konoha ninjas around
were constantly focusing on Sasuke,
but everyone was absolutely no
opponent of Sasuke's Susanu. Ninjas
who are good at long-range attacks aim together
Sasuke. All kinds of ninjutsu intertwined together
to attack him. But there was heavy thunder
and little rain. After the smoke cleared, only
Sasuke was seen standing in place, safe and sound. Even though
Konoha had fully prepared in advance,
but facing countless white Jessu with
levels from Chunin to Junin,
was still in a weak position at this time. At this moment, Sakura rushed
in front of Sasuke, using her
life to beg the other person to stop.
Sasuke hesitated for a moment, then smiled
fiercely, holding a large sword and slashing down
Sakura. Luckily, Kakashi appeared
in time to save her. Kakashi's face was serious
. Just now Sasuke had a real killing intent
. He scolded Sasuke for becoming depraved. Sasuke didn't say a word, used
...
Aman Mahitosu to pull the bow and create an arrow, aimed
straight at Kakashi and shot. Kakashi saw
and immediately revealed Saren, preparing to activate
orange scent. But one shot, Rasenuriken suddenly
neutralized Sasuke's attack.
Everyone simultaneously looked up at the high place
behind them, Hinata was the first to spot
and see Naruto standing and kicking the wind. Seeing
Konoha falling into a difficult battle,
Naruto could not help but
himself come to the rescue. As soon as Sasuke saw Naruto coming
, he angrily told Naruto not to hinder
his revenge. Naruto knew clearly that
number one target in
Sasuke's revenge was Danzo and that Danzo was also
one of the people he always wanted to eliminate.
So he deliberately lured Sasuke to follow him.
At this time in Konoha village there were bullets and bullets everywhere. But after Naruto led Pen
...
along with Killerbi and Kisame to aid,
Obito's white Jesu army quickly
dispersed. Jira and Chunade stood on
high, attentively watching the battle
situation. Thanks to Naruto's support, Konoha
had no more deaths. Chunade
looked at Jira in disbelief. Jira smiled
with satisfaction. Since the last time we broke up
Naruto, he has always thought about Naruto's
purpose. The Great Master CC prophesied
that one of his students would
have a person to lead this world. Now
it seems that that person is none other than
Naruto. At this time, Obito was also
up high, looking at Kisame and lost in thought.
The person most unlikely to betray
follows the person he is least likely to
follow. Only Koto
Amasukami can do this.
Shisui's eye was indeed taken by Naruto.
Seeing that the situation was one-sided, Obito
could not help but go into battle himself.
At this time, under Naruto's guidance,
Sasuke finally found Danzo.
As soon as he saw Danzo and Sasuke, even
Naruto didn't pay attention, the
Susanu sword broke out of thin air. Danozo
didn't have time to dodge and was pierced
by the great sword, but very quickly, his figure suddenly
appeared behind Sasuke. He held a Kunai in
's hand and stabbed it into Sasuke's Susanu, the result
went without saying. Sasuke
was surprised as he controlled the bone fist
to once again kill Danzo. Naruto stood
to one side observing the battle, his face
solemn. Before he left the village, he
took all of Danzo's Saron and
was right. Why does the opponent still have
ability to open Yanagi? It turns out that after being secretly attacked by
Naruto earlier, in order to make up for
's lost fighting strength, Danzo secretly
contacted Kabuto Yakusi to reform his
body. At this moment, his whole body looked like Xin
Uchi had implanted a total of 50
Maringon clones. Although these Sarinon
eyes could not last one
minute like before, each one was enough to
Dan Danzo escape a
danger to his life. After Danzo took off the bandages
on his body, he smiled fiercely and said,
"Today those eyes belong to you and the nine-tailed
inside that fox brat's body, old man."
will take it." Seeing danzich's entire body
saringan, Sasuke angrily grasped Susanu's two
arms and slashed it down. The greatsword
tackled Danzo, but turned into
a dream bubble under Yanagi. Danozo's
undamaged body appeared
10 meters away. He sneered that any
attack was useless, but
Although Danzo is stronger than his previous life,
Sasuke is different now. He has
opened the eternal Mangy Sarà, his strength has
far surpassed before, the great battle between the two
...
finally came to an end. Danzo did not
expect Sasuke to be able to hold out as long as
did As
exhausted, Danzo couldn't help but
sparingly used Izanagi. At this time,
Sasuke once again swung the great sword Susanu
at Danzo. Danzo realized that something was wrong,
immediately jumped back, but in the air
, he was like a living target
of Sasuke. Sasuke shot
Kagosuchi, aiming well Then quickly
shot out. Danzo smiled contemptuously
, having tried many shots of his Susanu
sword. He was so familiar with the
speed of Sasuke's arrow that
he estimated that he did not need to use Izanagi
so Danzo used wind release to change his
trajectory About to miss, Naruto, who was
...
far away, suddenly used Van Tuong Thien
to pull Danzo back to his original orbit.
...
Dano's face was full of surprise, at this distance he did not have time to seal Izanagi. The last
...
sword of Susanu directly passed
...
through Danzo. As soon as he took action, Black Flame immediately covered
his whole body. Without Izanagi,
he finally became the first
of the Hokage to be killed by Ameterasu.
finally died.
Sasuke raised his face to the sky and laughed loudly.
's vengeful state of mind made his Kra even
colder. He turned around to start
massacring Konoha, but Naruto suddenly
stopped him. Anyway, when dealing with
people other than Danzo, Naruto cannot
stand by and watch. Sasuke got angry
and suddenly tried to attack Naruto. At this time,
a black vortex suddenly stirred
space-time, Obito appeared in
between the two. He asked Naruto what
's purpose was? Why did you betray
Konoha and still protect Konoha now?
Naruto smiled and said, "My goal is to
save this ninja world, but do you
believe it?" Hearing that, Obito disdainfully
often said, "The only way to save
this world is only infinite Sukuomi. Today
he must take back his Rinegan from Naruto
, because he has
found Naruto's weakness." After saying
cruel words, Obito once again disappeared
on the spot. Naruto momentarily had
a bad premonition. He was just about to chase
after him when Sasuke stopped him and the place where Obito
appeared again was the command headquarters of
of Konoha. Right now Chunade is here
making remote healing seals for
seriously injured people. Seeing Obito coming, she
clenched her red lips because if she
conveniently stopped the treatment, those ninja
would definitely die. Obito raised his hand to
try to suck the opponent into orange space, but
at this moment Jira suddenly held the Rasengan
down from the sky. Obito had to
give up absorbing, switching to
penetrating state. His eyes were cold
and low, using the Hokage as bait,
then waiting for the moment I materialized
to attack? Jira smiled faintly. Since
's brief duel with Obito
at the Five Kage Summit, he has guessed
's weakness that must materialize to absorb
of his opponent. Obito couldn't help but exclaim
admire Jira's sharpness, it is true that
is the teacher of the two of them, but whether
you or your student have
the same weakness. Having said that, Obito from
Camui fired several Fuma Suriken shots.
Suriken aimed directly at Chunade who was
unable to move in place. Virai saw
like that, immediately used the lion magic to wrap
around Chunade, but Obito took
the moment he was distracted, appeared
behind him and used a scented mug to suck him
inside. Caring too much turns into chaos, that is
the weakness of your teachers and students. At this
time Naruto finally escaped
Sasuke came here and discovered that his teacher was
sucked into the orange, his face immediately became serious
. Obito couldn't help but laugh out loud, he
sucked himself in while saying cruel
words, if you want a teacher, hand over Rinegan and
the Nine-Tails. But at this moment suddenly
an orange light flashed, Naruto turned on
orange electric chakra mode to attack Obito.
The speed was so fast that Obito completely
couldn't absorb himself, so he
had to interrupt the move, turning
into a penetrating state. But
's story wasn't over yet, Naruto turned around and
an udama Rasengan hit
Obito. Obito saw that and smiled scornfully,
because this attack could absolutely
not hurt him in his penetrating
state. However, Naruto confidently
smiled, he laughed that Obito still underestimated
his teacher too much. At this time in
orange space, Jira had already turned on the long-awaited
fairy mode. When Obito's real
body entered space, the shot
appeared opposite was another rasengan shot,
he immediately understood the meaning of
Naruto's words. "This guy actually
sees through all my abilities."
Rasengan hits
Obito's mask directly. Obito outside immediately
spat out a mouthful of fresh blood. To avoid it
attacked from the inside out, he released
Jira into spacetime.
Naruto and Jira looked at each other and smiled. At this moment,
Obito revealed his true face, his face
serious. Everyone was extremely
surprised. A moment later, as soon as Kakashi arrived
he was stunned on the spot. He trembled and asked
the other person, "Is it really Obito?"
Obito turned his back to Kakashi,
slowly said, "This is no longer important
. In this fake world,
even if you can't protect Zin
or the teacher doesn't come in time, everyone
is just that much. Wait until
I bring the dream of hope to this
hopeless world, we will meet again."
Having finished speaking, Obito suddenly launched a
storm of chaos, the swirling storm rushed
straight towards Kakashi. Naruto, with extremely
speed, blocked in front of Kakashi and used his
ghoul path to absorb the chaotic storm. At the same time,
comforted Kakashi that what happened that year
was not his fault but that someone tried
to set a trap. Only then did Jira remember that
Obito was Minato's former student,
was also the child that Kusina loved the most.
Just thinking about the sheep-tailed rebellion
caused by the masked man 16 years ago,
Jira couldn't help but look solemn.
Unexpectedly, the person who killed Minato and his wife
was the student they loved most.
If they knew how
they would be heartbroken. Obito heard that and coldly
snorted. He had long said that this world was all
fake. At this time, Kakashi stepped forward
to stroke his Saringan and said, "This
eye is a gift that my most important companion
gave to
me before he passed away. I once promised
to help the other person see the future clearly and
protect Jin, but I couldn't do it.
Now the owner of this eye is still
alive, Then let it return to its original owner
." After Kakashi finished speaking, he ruthlessly took it
took down his Sarà and threw it back to
Obito. Naruto and Obito were both surprised.
Obito took the still warm eye,
was silent for a long time, then used the cam
to move to Sasuke's side and ordered his second plan
to temporarily retreat. After
when the enemy withdrew from Konoha, Kakashi apologized to Naruto by his side but he couldn't
...
not do so. Because that eye
originally belonged to Obito. Naruto expressed his understanding
knowing and respecting Kakashi's choice.
Although Obito became more difficult to deal with,
but in Naruto's heart, the opponent was also
an indispensable member in
fighting Osatsuki in the future.
Maintaining a form of rivalry is the fastest
way for people to improve each other's
fighting ability. At this time Jira suddenly walked
next to Naruto. Naruto knew that if he
didn't say something this time, he wouldn't be able to pass.
Naruto was silent for a long time then told
Jiraia and Chunade their purpose of preparing
to fight the Osatsuki clan.
First time hearing that
there are aliens in this world. Chunade and
Jira are naturally unbelievable. With no other
way, Naruto had to use
to touch and invite the two of them to take a look at
SPEN and Boruto. After viewing
Naruto's memories, the two fell silent. A trembling Jira
asked Naruto, "Is all of this
true?" Naruto bowed his head and nodded.
Every time he shares his memories, he seems to
experience that dire
future again. Jiraia incorporates
Naruto's changes after saving himself from the rain village.
Although it was difficult for him to accept, this was
the only explanation for Naruto's sudden
change. It turns out that thanks to Naruto
's reincarnation, he did not sink to the bottom of the cold
sea like before. Seeing
the dire future that Naruto had experienced
, two lines of tears couldn't help but flow
down Jira's cheeks. He turned his back towards
Naruto said, "Even though you have gone through a
dire future, I still want
to say one thing, you can return
alive, it's really great." Looking at
's crying back, Naruto
couldn't help but feel emotional, he silently promised
in his heart, this time he must protect
the ninja world with his teacher by his side. At this time,
Chunade stepped forward and said, "Now that Danzo is
dead, Konoha no longer has any obstacles to continue
. From now on, Konoha will fully support
Naruto's actions." Hearing these
words, Naruto was deeply moved, thousands of
words turned into a word of immense gratitude.
The most important thing now is how to
deal with the upcoming fourth
great ninja war. After Obito has
both eyes, I'm afraid
will soon launch a full-scale war. Naruto asked
Chunade to speed up communication with
Cemio to promote the formation of the
Ninja Alliance. At the same time, he will also be a
hypothetical enemy outside, promoting the five
great powers to unite more. After
was almost done, Naruto led Killerbi and
the others back to the rain village. At this
time at Akasuki's base, Obito and team
Taka finally returned to the base.
Sasuke's face was full of resentment and he asked Obito
why he retreated, he still had a belly of
fire that had not yet been discharged. Suddenly in the
darkness, Kabuto Yakusi stepped out. Sasuke even
thought Orochimaru was coming, so scared that he jumped
aside. It wasn't until he saw Kabuto's
form clearly that he discovered
turned out to be Kabuto, a useless snake
like Orochimaru. Kabuto heard that and smiled
in disdain, now I have long surpassed
Orochimaru, sublimated into a dragon.
Sasuke could indeed
feel that Kabuto was very different from before, but
he was more curious as to why Kabuto appeared
here. At this moment, Obito spoke up, "Let's talk about the old story, come here, let me talk
...
about the target of our
's next move." As he spoke, Obito inserted his remaining
eye into the other eye socket.
With Hasirama's cells, he completed
the connection of the
optic nerve in an instant. Then, he solemnly
introduced himself, "I am Obito
Uchi is the second Madara Uchi, and at the same time
is also the one who implemented the lunar plan
eye." As soon as Sasuke heard the three words Uchi
, he immediately looked thoughtful. "As a survivor
of the Uchi clan, I ask where Obito was
on the night of the clan's extermination?" Obito heard this coldly
said coldly, "My foolish compatriots,
do you really think that relying on just one
brother can destroy you?" exterminate
all colleagues in the
Konoha police force, purge everyone else
in the clan?
Konoha's police force and the only person who made Itachi
unable to attack was the one he killed
himself." Hearing that, Sasuke's hand reached
behind his back to grasp the Kusanagi sword.
He questioned Obito in a harsh voice, "Why didn't
try to stop Itachi? Why didn't
try to save the family?"
Looking at Sasuke who had activated Mang Kyo, Obito's
expression was gloomy and cold. This question
and why have you been able to live until now
hours? Do you not have
the answer in your heart? Hearing Obito's words,
Sasuke remained silent. It's all because of Konoha,
his hatred. His defense against Konoha became even deeper. At this moment, Kabuto looked at Obito
...
who had recovered, and asked, "Did you just find
...
your remaining eye?" Obito said, "I let
borrow it for many years, maybe
was so sorry that he took the initiative to return
to me." Sasuke laughed
sneered, "That person is Kakashi, right?
Unexpectedly, the famous copy ninja
Kakashi no longer exists. As for
about the past, Obito doesn't want to mention it
much, simply understanding
each other to better complete
cooperation in the future. What they need to do now is to launch
the fourth great ninja war to capture
the eight-tailed and nine-tailed. Currently their side has
seven tailed beasts, the white Ju army and a
large number of undead ninja from
Kabuto's side. With these
fighting forces, it was originally enough for them to level the
ninja world, but Naruto's theft of Rinegan
broke the most important link in
of their plan. Without Rinegan, wanting to
control those seven tailed beasts wouldn't be
that easy. They currently have two
paths to choose from. One of them was the evil
earth transformation that gave birth to the real Madara to confront
Naruto. But the impure land reincarnated
as Madara has too many factors that cannot
be controlled, unless forced to
take this step. The other path is
to open their own Rinegan. As he spoke,
Obito pointed at Sasuke. Sasuke's face was filled with
surprise. Obito continued speaking, "According to
my research over the years and
the truth that I have seen from Madara, you
and Naruto are without a doubt the
reincarnations of those two in destiny.
And Madara was the one who reincarnated
first. So Madara can open
Ragen, you Sasuke must also have
body. Listen up. Here, Kabuto seemed to
see a new great experiment, he
couldn't help but laugh out loud.
Sasuke next to him was skeptical, but out of revenge, he expressed
...
that he was willing to try it once, because he definitely
had to destroy Konoha and deny all of Naruto's
right now in the
tall tower of the village rain, Naruto looked out the
window, the rain was falling, he fell into
thoughts. To deal with the upcoming changes
of the Ninja world and Madara Uchi being
revived, he prepared to go to the
waterfall again. It's time to use it
mouth is filled with that innocent ego
. At this time, Naruto once again sat
on the stone platform in front of the waterfall of truth to meditate
. A moment later, Naruto innocently belonging to
of this era, walked out of the
waterfall. He said coldly, "The impostor
took over my body, you
have finally arrived." Naruto shook his head in denial,
whether it was the past self or the future self
, they were all Naruto Uzumaki,
no one was an impostor. Hearing that,
Naruto innocently snorted in disdain. I
think that Naruto's current
's ninjutsu is completely wrong. Even though he also
way of doing things that go against
saw all the tragedies that happened
in the future, he believed that
just by uniting everyone together,
was destined to win that race.
Hearing these words, Naruto couldn't help but
smile bitterly. We did the same thing as
before, but what was the result? Everyone
fell down in front of me one after another, and you
could only scream helplessly,
have you forgotten? Before
you were sure that the day when everyone
understood each other would definitely come, but after
when you became Hokage, even though you sacrificed
to give birth to a family and helped with all your strength,
big and small tragedies in the
ninja world still continued to happen. Previously
you also promised that you would definitely return to
Conan a peaceful rainy village, what was
the final result? Rain village became
the base of the Kara organization, from beginning
to the end there was never true peace.
later, with Kurama's departure,
you are no longer strong, you can only
watch helplessly as that tribe slaughters every
person like ants. Is it true that until now
you still think that the original
poetic method can save the
ninja world? Actually, deep in your heart, you
also really want to kill everyone who has ever been there
bullying, discrimination, you don't wait for anyone
, right?" Faced with Naruto's
straightforward words, Innocent Naruto
heard it and was immediately speechless.
Under the impact of the words, his naive
belief was shaken. He
collapsed, holding his head and kneeling on the ground, his
state of chaos immediately darkened his
heart. took over his body. One of his
eyes turned black
symbolizing evil, and at the same time
He refused to admit that such an impersonator
was himself. Responding to Naruto's
anger, yellow nine-tailed chakra poured out, and finally
...
transformed into the shape of the Nine-Tails
Naruto's eyes Slightly narrowed his eyes, did
still have to fight? In his previous life
, before the great ninja war, he had also fought with his dark side here. At that time
...
could be said to be completely equal
But this time the situation
was different The orange
...
...
lightning chakra flared up. Past and future lives
and this life, let's decide victory and defeat
here. Naruto's tailed beast bomb
quickly condensed from
's mouth and shot
towards Naruto After absorbing it, the opponent
...
...
proactively detonated the tailed beast bomb
at close range on Naruto's body. Fortunately,
Naruto had activated the orange chakra mode but was still somewhat injured. He
...
exclaimed that his ego had reached
agreement with Naruto from
's back. The god threw it in four directions, and at the same time quickly
...
moved under the attack of
the Nine-Tails' tail. Taking advantage of the opening, he circled
behind the Nine-Tails, intending to knock the Nine-Tails down
over the shoulder. But naive Naruto was already
attentively watching Naruto's movements.
He immediately discovered
's opponent's intentions.
The Nine-Tails' golden tails whipped backwards at the same time. Naruto
was extremely surprised, this sharpness was
worthy of himself. He didn't have time to
avoid it, was hit by the tail, and finally
was seriously injured and fell to the ground. But just
when Naruto naively thought that the battle
was over, Naruto on the ground
suddenly turned into a white smoke.
At the same time, an orange figure suddenly
suddenly rushed up from the ground and
punched innocent Naruto
's tailed tailed beast to pieces. It turns out that during the first
tailed beast bomb detonation, Naruto took advantage of the smoke to
hide underground, leaving only a
clone to hold back the opponent. As a former
perfect Jinchuriki, Naruto naturally
knew that the weakness of his nine-tailed
transformation was his true self inside his
head. At this moment, Naruto innocently panicked
condensed a Sensurike and threw it
towards Naruto. Naruto immediately activated
Than La Thien Trinh to push it away, then
immediately raised his hand to launch
Vien Tuong Thien Duc's gravitational force to pull the innocent Naruto
floating in the air closer
, but the opponent did not panic
and condensed a Super Udama Rasengan
preparing to counterattack when approaching. Seeing this, Naruto
used his other hand to prop up a
protective barrier. The last Rasengan
is completely absorbed. Naruto used his hands to peel
off his opponent's neck, and at the same time used his ghoul
path to absorb the opponent's chakra. Along
with the deep chakra connection of the two
people, the true thoughts in
Naruto's heart were constantly transmitted to the innocent Naruto
. Seeing the trauma
and inner conflicts of Naruto
since his rebirth, Naughty Naruto
only realized that Naruto had never changed.
changes, it's just that future enemies
make it impossible for him not to do so.
So this is the price of becoming
successful? Tears blurred the vision of innocent
Naruto, his insides began to
fluctuate. Seeing that, Naruto immediately let go of
's neck and hugged him.
In life there are always things that can't
do anything else, growing up always comes
with pain, but taking this step,
you have truly grown up. Two
lines of tears flowed from the corners of
Naruto's eyes were innocent, his eyes also
returned to blue. He
finally let go of his resentment, choosing
to trust his
future self. But two people coexisting in
one body is ultimately no
way. So Naruto innocently chose
. His last wish is that
no matter what Sasuke becomes,
must definitely pull him back to the right
path. That's natural. Naruto
firmly promised because he is our
most important friend. Also tell
to protect our family and Kurama well,
don't let that future happen again.
Naruto once again nodded vigorously.
Finally, you must protect
her well. Naruto is innocent. The original Naruto
turned into countless points of light that disappeared,
a line of tears could not help but flow from
the corner of Naruto's eyes. This is the tear
of him saying goodbye to that innocent self.
But his battle is far from over
, waiting for him will be
more difficult and unknown challenges.
After one lifetime, he easily opened the
seal of the Nine-Tails. The Nine-Tails rushed out,
roared and asked where the real Naruto was.
Naruto smiled and said, "The ego in front of
is the real Naruto. I let the Nine-Tails
choose, this time is it a tug of war or a touch
of hands?" Although the Cu-Tails knew that Naruto came from the future
is a hybrid, but its arrogant personality
makes it unwilling to look closely at
Naruto's memories, much less acknowledge the Naruto
in front of it. A tailed beast bomb
suddenly hit Naruto, but Naruto
did not panic, standing in place, showing
a confident expression. A yellow figure
suddenly passed by, carrying him
and disappeared on the spot. After landing
safely, Naruto happily called out, "Ah, I already
knew that Minato would definitely appear to save
me." Minato saw Naruto and realized
that he was a bit surprised, but what
surprised him more was that
's Nine-Tails' seal was completely
removed. Because according to the setup, he had already buried
in advance. When the Nine-Tails appeared with eight
tails, he was supposed to appear to
stop the Nine-Tails from releasing the new
seal. Naruto smiled and explained to Minato,
"It was me who unsealed the seal. He told
Minato to wait a bit, wait for him to finish subduing the Nine-Tails
and then said, "With Naruto's
current strength, wanting to defeat the Nine-Tails
is of course no problem, but I came
to meet the Nine-Tails for another purpose, that
is to help the family of three They had a
reunion through space and time." During the
Chakra tug-of-war contest, Naruto intentionally lost to
the Nine-Tails. The result was as expected, when he
was about to be completely consumed by hatred,
diamond chains suddenly came out from
under the water, blinding the Nine-Tails.
Naruto was separated by a lifetime, and
finally met again. Kusina. His originally
determined eyes were immediately replaced by
gentleness, thousands of words transformed into a
sentence that crossed space and time. Kusina's mother was
a bit surprised, she did not expect Naruto to recognize her. Since his reincarnation, every hour and every moment
...
...
...
...
has been under great pressure, not only
had to face the incomprehension and resentment
of the people around them, and
was also afraid that even reliving one
life still wouldn't change the outcome. Only
at this moment in his mother's arms could
feel a brief
bit of peace. Kusina looked at her son like that
filled with pain, she told Naruto to wait a
moment, then used the diamond chain
again to cut off the Nine-Tails outside. The extremely sharp Minato
immediately recognized Kusina's
chakra, so he placed his hands on
Naruto. Following Naruto's chakra also came
Naruto's mental space. Kusina
saw Minato so excited that even
Naruto didn't notice, running over to hug
and jumping up happily. Just like that,
under Naruto's encouragement, the family of three
people finally had a
reunion across space and time. After
confiding for a while, Minato looked at Naruto's Vinegon,
couldn't help but voice the doubts in his heart.
From just now, he noticed that Naruto seemed
to have known that he and Kusina would
appear. Naruto's eyes immediately lowered,
was silent for a moment, he told the story from
the future. Information such as the fourth great
ninja war, the identity of Obito of
the masked man, and the invasion of the
Osatsuki clan made Kusina and Minato unable to calm down for
a long time. They didn't expect their son
to experience a future like
's. The person who killed me was the student
that I loved the most. The only thing
that makes them happy is that Naruto has achieved
his wish to become Hokage and have a
happy family of his own
. It's just a pity that in the end it is
impossible to avoid the outcome of a silent world.
But as the deceased, the only thing
they can do for Naruto is just
like a parent who believes in their
child. Beautiful times are always short
with the gradual loss of Chakra and the body
of Kusina and Minato are becoming more and more unreal. Three
people finally arrived at lead time. Minato
told Kusina to quickly say
to Naruto. Kusina panicked and hugged
Naruto, then sweetly apologized to Naruto
for letting him become the Jinchuriki of the Nine
Tails, allowing him to shoulder a responsibility that
people usually find difficult to undertake. Naruto
's eyes filled with tears and told Kusina there was no need to apologize
to him. Although the Nine-Tails still refuses to
trust him, becoming
the Nine-Tails' Jinchuriki is actually not
a misfortune. What's more, before
he became a Jinchuriki,
was already filled with the love of
his parents, so he was very happy. Minato
was extremely satisfied and complimented that Naruto
had really grown up. He and Kusina shed
tears of contentment, and at the same time their bodies began to
disappear. Naruto tried to put on an energetic
expression to reassure them. You
have everyone's company and will not
be lonely. This time he will definitely
succeed. Having finished speaking, Naruto cried without
making a sound, not even daring to open his eyes
to see his parents gradually disappear. No matter
how great
his previous achievements were, in front of his parents he became
a child who only knows how to cry. Naruto
finally said goodbye to Minato and Kusina
in tears. His consciousness
once again returned to that cold, dark
nine-tailed space. With the trust that his parents
gave him, there was no longer any
ambiguity in his eyes. With an angry
roar, Naruto
's own chakra was completely released. Dozens of
diamond chains once again shot out from behind
of his back, tightly wrapping around the Nine-Tails.
Naruto's eyes were surprised, what exactly is this power
? It turns out that before the innocent Naruto
left, his spirit
turned into bait, helping Naruto lead
to the perfect bloodline of the Uzumaki clan. Fit
then after coming into contact with
Kusina's chakra, Naruto's
Uzumaki clan's official bloodline was completely
perfectly activated. At this
moment, he could feel the chakra on
's body continuously increasing. Feeling
receiving the gift that his past self and
his mother had given him, Naruto was deeply moved. Is this
the perfect chakra of the Uzumaki clan?
didn't expect that he still had this hidden power
. The Nine-Tails looked at
Naruto in disbelief, at this moment the binding force of the
diamond chain on its body was even greater than
of Kusina. This feeling cannot be
wrong, just like
's first Jinchuriki, which was the strongest female ninja
of the Warring States period, Mito Uzumaki. Naruto
jumped up to the Nine-Tails' eyes and said, "Do
still want to fight?" Kurama, the Nine-Tails'
angry fire burned the whole sky,
knocked Naruto away and focused all his strength to condense
a tailed beast bomb to hit the
opposite direction. The corner of Naruto's mouth confidently raised
, facing that tailed beast bomb he raised
his hand, a Super Rasengan enough to compare
to the tailed beast bomb immediately gathered
in Naruto's hand. The Rasengan and the tailed beast bomb
collided, finally exploding together
into flames. The Nine-Tails' eyes trembled,
yet he used the Rasengan to block
the old man's tailed beast bomb. How is that possible? That kid's
strength instantly
became stronger again. This doesn't
make him curious about what Naruto has
gone through. Naruto smiled and punched
out. If you want to know everything, then touch
with me." But the Nine-Tails arrogantly
told Naruto not to get close. Naruto saw that
didn't say much anymore, rolling his eyes
Linegan fixed the Nine-Tails on the spot.
The Nine-Tails' eyes immediately transformed into
Rinegan's form, a large amount of memories began to
flow into its head. The first thing it saw was
was during the Great Ninja War
first. Naruto
's profound confession says it is no longer the Nine-Tails Demon Fox.
From then on, the two officially became one
, opening the perfect mode of the Nine-Tails.
After watching this scene, the Nine-Tails was surprised
to have actually recognized this kid
. Next is the scene where it teams up with Naruto and
Sasuke. Although Suanu massacred everywhere, he didn't expect it to be so majestic.
...
The image continued to pass quickly. When the Nine-Tails
saw itself being pulled out of Naruto's
body by Madara, its heart
could not help but tighten. So doesn't having
mean this kid is about to die? Next
, it saw the scene of the Six Path Immortals
appearing again, itself and
eight other tailed beasts gathering once again.
The Nine-Tails' eyes couldn't help but stop,
could this kid be the boy
with blonde hair and blue eyes that the old man said?
The image comes after the end of the great ninja war
, the ninja world was peaceful for many years.
The Nine-Tails saw Naruto use multiple
heavy shadow clones to hit Hinata, and
gasped. Hinata did not give up and used
to destroy Naruto's
clone. Nine-Tails doesn't understand why two
people have such a good relationship but still
often fight. The next scene is
of Naruto successfully becoming Hokage which
always screamed about as a child. The Nine-Tails saw
like that, the corner of his mouth could not help but slightly
curl up. The final scene is Naruto and
the Nine-Tails fighting Osatsuki together. First
is Momosiki, followed by the breathtakingly strong Osatsuki
Isiki. In order to
protect Naruto, the tail burned himself. Opening
Barion mode, and finally
bid farewell to Naruto in tears. Image
here the image suddenly stops. The Rinegan
in the Nine-Tails' eyes suddenly disappeared, its
pupils trembled violently, digesting
this information. A moment later, it
looked at Naruto and asked in disbelief,
"This old man actually became friends with
you, working together to become one."
Naruto nodded seriously. Nine-Tails continued to
ask, "I ended up dying because of
you." Naruto once again
nodded seriously. The Nine-Tails roared,
"Impossible, absolutely impossible. It told
Naruto to stay away from it, this is absolutely
a genjutsu created by Naruto." Naruto did not
object. After a short
moment of silence between the two, Naruto suddenly apologized to
the Nine-Tails. Hearing that,
's big ears couldn't help but move. Naruto
continued, "I didn't protect
you well before, but this time I can,
no one can take you away from me
again." Turns out Naruto wasn't apologizing
for the Ichiraku Ramen he owed to the Nine-Tails before
, but because he didn't protect
the Nine-Tails well. Seeing
Naruto's unusual change, the doubt in Nine-Tails
's heart became even deeper. It held out its
arm and said, "Okay, let me
check your true heart.
If there is a lie, I will immediately
pierce you." Naruto frankly
and confidently raised his hand. After a lifetime,
a person and a fox finally met
again. Countless stories that
the two of them have experienced, all thoughts
, all images are transmitted
to each other by the spirit
method. After confirming each other's intentions,
Naruto and the Nine-Tails looked at each other and smiled. Nine-Tails
snorted coldly and said, "Why don't you find
the old man to straighten things out the day
comes back? What a troublesome
idiot." Naruto smiled bitterly in his heart, actually
he was afraid he wouldn't be able to
face the Nine-Tails frankly again. Having
lost everything, he became more careful
than before. One person and one fox looked
at each other for a moment, and cheerful laughter rang out in the sealed space
.
The golden light burned on
Naruto's body, one person and another, the same thoughts
would from this moment arise once again
. At this time at
Akasuki's base, Jessuen saw that Nguyet
Nhan's plan was still not progressing, and
began to worry. Now he wants to complete
the plan to revive Kaguya. While
while using Sasuke and Obito, he cannot
not prepare a second plan. Thinking
of this, black Jessu angrily crawled
underground. At this time in the rain village, Conan
at Naruto's request selected 36
extremely talented genin. In this
ninja world that values intelligence, Naruto
decided to train a group of
elite ninjas to establish an intelligence department. Every
person who saw Naruto's appearance,
could not help but feel admiration and
admiration. "Is this the god of our
village?" Everyone secretly promised
in their hearts to become
like the next god. Naruto seemed to
see himself as a child. He waved
his cape, turned around and said, "It's not
that becoming a god can gain
recognition from everyone, but having
recognition from everyone can become
a god." Everyone was persuaded by Naruto's
ruler, swearing
to die and repay the village. Miss Nan next to
saw this scene and couldn't help but praise
. In terms of winning people's hearts,
is really no one who can compete with me.
Naruto smiled faintly, in the future he is
the top of the five kage, and has long mastered
how to win people's hearts and nurture
his juniors. At this time in the cloud village, Jika Kage
waited forever without seeing the shadow of Killer Bi
for his younger brother's incomprehensible change.
He sent someone to send a diplomatic letter
to Amegakure to either let Naruto return
Killer's marbles or prepare to receive
the wrath of Kumogakure. After
Naruto heard this news and decided to commit suicide
I'm going to see Jag. After several days of traveling,
he finally arrived at the boundary of
Land of Thunder. A layer of pale blue barrier
appeared before my eyes. This is the defense system
of the cloud village. People
who accidentally touch the barrier will be judged and beaten continuously by
. But this does not
make it difficult for Naruto to possess the Flying Thunder God.
After throwing a flying lightning kunai
through the barrier, Naruto easily entered
inside the cloud village. After entering
village, Naruto proactively revealed
's location. Very quickly, a large number of ninjas and
Jaikage surrounded Naruto. Jikage saw
Naruto and immediately became angry. He told
Naruto to quickly return Killerbi. Naruto smiled
and said, Killer B voluntarily stayed with
him. Jaikage naturally did not believe that he
provoked Naruto. Would he dare not borrow
the power of Renegan and the Nine-Tails to fight
him alone? If he lost, he wouldn't
look for Naruto to cause trouble anymore. Naruto also
had this idea. He is looking for someone to test
his current physical prowess.
The two of them went to the lightning cloud canyon together.
Jika struck first, a punch wrapped around
lightning attacking Naruto. Naruto
did not dodge, using
's sturdy arm to block this heavy punch. Jaikage was
surprised at the stiffness of Naruto's body, and
continued to attack vigorously. He
grabbed Naruto's shoulders with both hands, lifted
Naruto over his head and shouted, "Your
life is over." The light outside
's body soared, he roared and threw
Naruto down. Immediately, a bright
light and thunder exploded on the field. Up to now
no one has been able to withstand this lightning
bullet attack of his and still live.
But in the smoke, only the orange
thunder suddenly appeared. Naruto
turned on orange lightning chakra mode, hard
solidly blocked Jikage's attack.
While Jikage was surprised, he opened his hands
Naruto covered in orange electricity turned back
grabbed Jikage's shoulders, then lifted Jik
Kage with a frightened face over his head, also used
to knock him down and counterattack. The ground
immediately crumbled further, Jika Kage was
heavily attacked and spat out a mouthful of
blood, and the lightning armor on
's body also weakened a lot. Naruto
's hands felt a sharp, numbing pain. It was clear
that his body was still unable to
keep up with such high intensity
taijutsu. After Jikage got up,
immediately distanced himself from Naruto. The villain
enthusiastically asked Naruto why he also knew this move
. Naruto didn't answer directly.
Jaikage thought for a moment, suddenly understood
everything, it must have been taught to Naruto by that kid
Bi. When Bi returns to the village,
he will definitely teach him a lesson.
But what confused him more was that Naruto's
level of chaos chakra was
different from his own. He asked Naruto what the orange
ray on his body was? Hearing that, Naruto
sneered and said, "If you want to learn,
can teach you." Jaik couldn't stand
this stimulation, he angrily turned
his lightning chakra level to 100%. Naruto's eyes couldn't help
stop. Jekage's chakra was clearly
stronger than the last time they met, it seemed that
the opponent had practiced a lot
during this time. Since suddenly following
Naruto, Jikage has only thought about one
thing every day: killing Naruto, eliminating Akasuki,
bringing back his younger brother Killer Bey.
He rushed out, his fist covered in lightning light
hitting Naruto straight in the face. Naruto's
orange light flashed, relying on
's incredible speed, he dodged to the side. Jage
's punch ended up crashing into the mountain behind him. Mr.
's face was filled with surprise. Previously, people
who could dodge this move only had golden
lightning, but Minato relied on
's reflexes and lightning magic, and Naruto was
the first person to only rely on speed to dodge.
avoid. The experienced Jikage is also
not stupid. After a short
fight, he understood that Naruto
's strength was now far beyond his. Because
's opponent still has Nine-Tails, Rinegan and Philo
have not been used yet. Finally, he mentally
silently admitted that he had lost.
He asked Naruto if he could let him meet
Killer Bi again? Naruto happily
agreed, immediately used the Flying Thunder God
to return to the rainy village to bring Killer Bi. Killer
Bi once again met his brother,
his whole body trembled with fear.
Looking at the other person's entire body covered in wounds,
Killer B guessed that it was definitely Naruto
's doing. After all, in this ninja world, there aren't many
people who can break through
Jekage's defenses. Jikage told Killer B
not to pay attention. The two of them just used
men's ways to communicate. The
more important question is why Killer Bey spontaneously
went with Naruto. Killerby was silent
for a while then asked Jikage if he believed in time travel
? He frankly said that
had seen the future that Naruto showed
to him. That future is really too cruel for everyone
, so he wants
and Naruto to change that
unbearable future. Jaikage heard that and his face was filled with
surprise, but after fighting with
Naruto, he gave up the notion that the golden
lightning that died young was a failure. It turns out that the
golden flash never disappeared, but just
entrusted the role of savior to his son
? Jaikage ultimately made
the same choice as Killerby, which was to trust
Naruto. Currently Akasuki is everywhere
searching for the whereabouts of the Nine-Tails and Eight-Tails
so it would be safer for Killerby to stay by Naruto's side
upside down. And next he will
contact Konoha and other villages to hasten
the establishment of the Ninja Alliance.
Naruto bowed his head to thank Jikage, then
brought Kby back to the rain village. Come here, in
the five great powers have made Konoha and the
cloud village theirs. Right now
at Akasuki's base, Sasuke is
conducting an experiment to open the Rinegan. Kabuto
transplanted high concentrations of Hasirama cells
into the British, gathered the power of
Indra and Asura, plus Sasuke's fairy eye
, the preparations to open
the Rinegan were completed. But the
time of opening still cannot be determined. No matter
, that year, after Madara transplanted
Hasirama's cells, it wasn't until
was about to die that he opened the Rinegan. So
Obito intends to cause trouble in the soon-to-be-formed
Ninja alliance. He aimed
at the weakest sand village. So
Kabuto defiled earth reincarnated into
former members of the Akasuki organization. After everyone
woke up, Obito immediately told
what had happened recently in the
ninja world. Knowing that the old leader
had betrayed Akasuki, everyone was extremely
emotional. As for Kakuzu, he looked
miserable, because all his
life savings were left with Conan. In that
, only Itachi smiled. Before passing
, he looked at
Naruto's future memories. Surely the things happening near
here in the Ninja world are
related to Naruto. And what they are going to do next
is to cause trouble before the Ninja alliance
is officially established. It's time for the
Akasuki organization to fight a
team battle. Obito used the time and space
water wheel to bring everyone to the sand
village boundary. He ordered Didara to freely compete in
artistic exhibitions. Didara excitedly rode
a giant bird high into the air and threw down
a large amount of explosive clay. In sand village
, explosions immediately rang out everywhere.
Gara had just discovered that the village had been invaded, so
ordered Kankuro to organize
defense units, while he went out
alone first to hold back Diara. Kakuzu, Sasori
and Itachi attacked from the ground. Sand village ninja
is absolutely not their opponent
. Faced with these immortals,
the sand village immediately scattered. Gara was extremely
indignant, he asked Tobi what
purpose was he? To bi calmly told
that he came to negotiate. Langng Cat is located deep
in the desert, it can be said that it lacks
all kinds of resources. As long as Lang
Cat helps him capture the Eight-Tails and Nine-Tails,
in return, Akasuki is willing to provide
fighting power to help Sunagakure expand its territory.
Tobi's purpose is to take advantage of the
mutual suspicion between the five great powers
to cause division. But Gara was
determined to refuse Tobi's request in an unusual
way. There is absolutely no room for Akasuki to harm
Naruto. Hearing that, Tobi didn't say much
...
anymore, he signaled to Didara. Raise
the fire signaling the wrath of the
Akasuki group. Didara excitedly tore off
's shirt to explode with her mouth at her heart, then
prepared to perform the ultimate
art of catching snakes. Everyone fell into
deep despair, but just as
Didara was about to explode, his body
suddenly disappeared, leaving
only a flying thunder kunai on the ground. Everyone
in the sand village felt
unbelievable, only the corner of Gara's mouth slightly raised
. The next second,
Naruto's body appeared before everyone.
Naruto laughed and said he was
late. As soon as he finished speaking, an earth-shattering
explosion rang out from the distant
desert. A Pista-shaped fire burned
fiercely. It turns out that right at the moment Didara
was about to explode, Naruto promptly
appeared and used his flying thunder god to teleport
the opponent to a remote place. The reason
that Naruto was able to know that the sand village was invaded
was because Itachi secretly informed
to Naruto through a crow. Medium Tobi
saw Naruto and walked forward sarcastically.
"You!" The traitor of the leaf village is truly
's unforgivable soul. Before Sasuke successfully
opened his eyes, Tobi did not want to waste
his fighting power on Naruto. Because
so, after making the threat, he immediately
led the Akasuki members to teleport
to the place where Didara exploded. The reincarnated Didara of U Earth
had now returned to her original
form. He asked with a puzzled face what
had happened. After learning that it was the Nine-Tails brat
who ruined the blooming of his
ultimate art, he decided to
definitely give the leaf village a
blow next time. At this time in the sand village, the two most sincere
best friends in their previous lives finally
met again. Gara looked at
Naruto's Rinegan, and couldn't help but feel a little
disappointed. Even though they are best friends, this moment
is also a bit
strange because of these eyes. Naruto realized Gara's hesitation
, he decided to clarify the truth
to the other person. The moment the two
touched fists, the lake rippled, memories
from Naruto's past life continuously
appeared in Gara's head. From the initial
joy to the final
pain, in just a few dozen short
seconds, it seemed to him that
had passed through decades. At this point, he finally
understood why Naruto had been
acting unusually recently. I didn't expect
to have such a future. Naruto
's eyes darkened. He apologized to Gara for keeping
a secret until now, it's just that he really
didn't want to let his good friend
have to shoulder that future too soon. At this
moment, Gara's heart could never be
calm, he told Naruto to rest assured, at any
time, Thac Cat's Gara would be his
strong supporter, even if
eventually had to confront the whole
world of ninjas. After hearing this, Naruto was extremely moved. At this moment, thousands of words were lost
...
should be too superficial. This time he came, actually
there was one more thing he wanted to ask Gara for help with,
and that was to get Mrs. Chio's reincarnation technique
. Gara heard that without saying two
words and happily agreed to
Naruto's request. Having seen the future, he
knew that his mother actually loved
him very much. I feel joy and happiness
from the bottom of my heart. Such a good world
cannot be destroyed by the Osatsuki
. Gara will later actively coordinate
with Naruto's actions in the
alliance. After expressing his deep gratitude
to his opponent, Naruto immediately departed
back to the rain village. But as soon as he landed
, he felt a familiar stream of
chakra. The person who came was
Jira. Naruto guessed that his master must
have urgent business. He quickly found
him in the village through fairy
magic. After a while of chatting, Jira told
why he came to Naruto. That
is the Akauki organization that rose from the ruins of
. The Konohagakure's reconnaissance team
discovered that Akauki used filthy earth to turn
to life to revive the dead. He told
Naruto to pay attention to safety recently.
Naruto smiled and told Jira, "Don't worry, you already
fought Akasuki in Suna Village."
Having finished speaking, Naruto gave Jira a
Flying Lightning Kunai. If anything happens in the future,
just need to inject chakra into it, you will
feel it and appear promptly. Jira
took the Kunai and said his second
purpose of coming to the rain village was that he wanted to meet
Konan and Nagato. Naruto stood up and said
no problem, he still had a surprise
for Jiraya. Under the guidance of Naruto, Jira went to Orochimaru's laboratory in the rain village. Seeing that
...
...
his old friend was still alive, he was surprised
asked Naruto what all this was all about?
Knowing that it was Naruto who revived
Orochimaru, Jira couldn't help but exclaim,
I'm really about to fall behind the world
here it is. Seeing Orochimaru's leisurely
appearance now, he couldn't help but
emotionally say, "I really didn't expect that a person
like you could work under
to block Naruto." Orochimaru smiled and said,
"He and Naruto are just in a cooperative relationship,
Naruto just happened to have the truth that
he was after. Besides, Naruto is now
the one who created the wind, waiting to see where this
wind will blow will be very interesting."
Although Jira couldn't stand Orochimaru's mouth still
full of truth, when
he met Orochimaru again this time, he knew
that the other person was sincerely helping
Naruto.
Orochimaru's current calmness and talent, along with
's heart to always think of his teammates, both moved
Jira. Being able to
see someone like that in this lifetime is truly
too good. Naruto stood next to him silently
smiling. This is also considered to have
fulfilled an old wish of monk
's father. After saying goodbye to Orochimaru, Naruto
and Jiraya went out together. Jira
felt around a bit, discovering that
Nagato and Konan were indeed hiding
on the other side of the wall. He smiled secretly
, thinking there was no way the host wouldn't come out to welcome
guests. Nagato and Conan walked out with heavy
eyes, apologizing to Jiraya.
Before, they couldn't trust
the teacher, nor could they trust
themselves, and almost made a big mistake.
It wasn't until they met their junior brother Naruto that they
realized how precious the things they had thrown away
were. After listening to
Nagato's words, Jira smiled and said that the child
in the prophecy was not alone in
Naruto, only the prequel of
Nagato plus the sequel of
Naruto would Jira's magnanimous story be considered a perfect chapter by
. No matter what you
become, master
will always be proud of you." Listen to the words
Hey, Nagato already had tears streaming down his face. He
was glad that Naruto stopped him at that time,
was really too good, otherwise he would not be able to forgive
life. A ray of sunlight suddenly lifted
himself for the rest of his
the year-round gloomy clouds of Vu Quoc, golden
light shone on Nagato's face crying in
joy, looking extremely holy
good. At this point, Nagato finally let go of
the burden in his heart. Then they
arrived at a small wooden house in the suburbs. This
is where Konan and they lived with
Jira as children. Jira looked at all the familiar but old
things around. Exclaiming
for the passage of time, he stepped forward, turned over his
red card and smiled and said that
everyone had gone home. Ms. Na
looked at this scene, her beautiful eyes filled with tears, and
turned her head and couldn't help but sob. Naruto
smiled and scratched his head, isn't this reality
much better than the so-called eternal Sukuyomi
? At this time, the
rain village's reconnaissance team suddenly transmitted urgent news.
Akasuki is massively invading the Iwa village.
Naruto heard this news and immediately decided to go to
for support. At this time, Tobi led
members of Akatsuki to rush into the leaf village. Didara
cried while frantically throwing explosive clay
in the air. When he was young, he joked that
wanted to blow up the whole village, but he didn't expect that
would now come true. At this time, Onoki
suddenly stopped in front of him, he shouted at
Didara, "This is your hometown."
Didara doesn't think it's right, because art
doesn't discriminate between villages. Onoki
heard that and couldn't help but sigh, "You brat
is really unreasonable. There's
Kurosuchi who doesn't play, but just likes to play with
clay as a traitor." Suddenly, Tobi
appeared from the vortex of space and time
time, his purpose was also to seal
the relationship between the five great powers.
Onoki once hired member Akasuki. Tobi
originally thought he was a person who was easily distracted
first, unexpectedly this time Onoki firmly
said, "Don't underestimate
's will." He made a seal to launch a ceiling release on
Tobi, a white light shot diagonally down towards
but passed through Tobi's body. The stone village
is naturally no match for the Akasuki group
, and soon the stone village
falls into crisis. Luckily, Naruto
finally arrived at the scene. Tobi
saw that it was Naruto who came to cause trouble and became
angry. Itachi standing next to him saw
Naruto's nine-tailed state and was extremely
surprised. Is this the power after controlling
the Nine-Tails? Suddenly To Bi
appeared behind Naruto, he launched
into Naruto's defenseless head. Naruto immediately teleported
...
to another location. In his
nine-tailed state, he can easily sense
Toby's malice. Tobi looked coldly at Naruto
and said, "What a troublesome guy."
At this time, Naruto held the Rasengan and rushed
towards Tobi. The bodies of the two people
finally passed each other, but Naruto, after
passing through the other's body, did not
stop but continued to rush towards Uchiha
Itachi in front. Because his true
goal was to capture Itachi.
Tobi just realized something was wrong, immediately
turned around and activated Camui and
Naruto. However, at almost the same time,
Naruto used a smoke bomb to obscure
Tobi's view. Itachi passively activated
Amerasu and Naruto, but Naruto only
needed a chakra hand to block
Ameterasu's black flames. He
quickly broke through, used another
chakra hand to grab Itachi and used the Black
Stick to temporarily control
's opponent's actions. He then apologized to Itachi for
using such rude tricks,
he would explain in detail later. Itachi
was extremely shocked inside, because
Naruto's actions were completely different from before.
Tobi saw this scene with a serious expression,
he realized that Naruto was very good at dealing with
dojutsu. Before Sasuke successfully
unlocks the Linegan, it's best not to
get too involved with Naruto. Therefore, Tobi
decided to retreat first. After
threatening, he led the members except
Itachi who was being controlled by Naruto to leave
of the leaf village. Everyone in the stone village cheered loudly, everyone thanked Naruto for being
...
timely to help. After a moment of celebration,
Naruto asked Onoki for advice on whether
could teach him the
technique to lighten and weigh down rocks. Onoki, contrary to his usual
stubborn mindset, happily agreed with Naruto,
because he felt that Naruto had the
demeanor of someone who accomplished great things, and now
saved the stone village. More importantly, with Naruto's current
strength, the stone village also
has no right to refuse. Naruto received
the scroll from the secretary of the Iwagakure village, thanked the other person with
, and then led
Itachi back to the rain village. At this time, at Akasuki's
base, Sasuke, who had been in a coma for many days
, finally woke up.
's left eye had now evolved into Rindegan,
's synergy skyrocketed, making him confident that
he was okay again. Tobi immediately
led Didara and the others back to
the base gate. Kabuto asked
Tobi with a serious face, why was the chakra connection between him and
Itachi severed. Hearing that, Didara
quickly scoffed and said, "That Itachi
is not strong enough, he was captured
by Naruto." Hearing these words, Kabuto
's face immediately turned pale. At this moment, Sasuke walked out from
in the darkness. He coldly
questioned Kabuto, were
discussing Itachi just now? But before
Kabuto could answer, Didara gritted her teeth
and asked why Sasuke was here? Hasn't he
already been dealt with by
's ultimate art? Hearing that, Sasuke sarcastically said, "That kind of child-level jutsu
...
also called art? At most
can only stir up a little
dust." Didara heard these words, both hands
reached into his pocket, intending to create explosive ground. Seeing this, Sasuke
only used Rinegan to gently
glance at him, the opponent immediately
stood still in place, unable to move.
Seeing this scene, Tobi couldn't help
laughing. This Rinegan's strength, I'm afraid
is even better. Even Naruto has only
awakened, but it's enough to
control the tailed beasts. However,
Sasuke currently only cares about where Naruto is
...
and already wants to try
about this interesting, just having Rinegan is
...
...
impossible. After hearing this,
couldn't help but feel a little annoyed, but in
he also knew that Tobi's words
were not unreasonable. He followed Tobi
deep into the Akasuki base. Tobi opened his
eyes and released the pagan demon statue from
Camu space,
he said. Sasuke, through Rinegan, signed a summoning contract with the demon statue
...
. So Naruto will no longer be able to
summon the demon statue
. Currently, the demon statue has swallowed
about seven tailed beasts. How to make good use of these tailed beasts? This is the key to
...
victory to deal with Naruto
and the Shinobi Alliance. What Sasuke must
do is use Rinegan to control
these seven tailed beasts. At that time, there will be no one in
...
's ninja world who can defeat Sasuke. After hearing
's words, Sasuke felt extremely proud.
He immediately started training the new
eye. Tobi left the depths of the base and
came to his side Kabuto. He told Kabuto to start
and prepare to launch the fourth great ring war
...
time to reboot. Naruto took Itachi
back to the rain village. As soon as Nagato felt
receive Itachi's chakra, he immediately went to
next to Naruto. Seeing Itachi, he was very happy,
but Itachi was full of doubt because he
did not know Nagato at all. The leader
of Akasuki that he knew when he was alive
are all images of Yahiko. Naruto saw
and immediately introduced him to Itachi. Nagato
is Pen's true self, and is also his monk
. Hearing that, Itachi smiled
faintly, hoping the leader would continue to teach
more. The two of them were
close as soon as they met. After helping Itachi escape the
control of the impure land, Naruto told his
partner what had happened in the
ninja world recently. He apologized to
Itachi for not telling the
truth to Sasuke until now but instead took advantage of
's hatred and turned it into motivation for Sasuke
to become stronger. Regarding this, Itachi
lamented that his past was not
like that, but to deal with that
clan, he could only use some special
tricks on Sasuke. He believes that
Naruto can finally pull
Sasuke back to the right path. If
really doesn't work, in the end there is still Shisui's
Koto Amatsukami who can
change the opponent's will. After hearing
, Naruto was extremely moved. Itachi who considered
Sasuke more important than the entire village. How much
say these words? Referring to Koto
enlightenment is needed to
Amasukami, Naruto asked Itachi if he knew
the whereabouts of Shisui's body.
Itachi heard these words and seriously
asked Naruto what he wanted to do. Naruto frankly
speaks his mind frankly. Siis is
a rare talent. On the road
against that family in the future,
with the help of Sisui Shun
himself, the road will be much easier to travel.
Itachi heard that and was silent for a long time
Although he really didn't want to bother
his deceased friend, Naruto
's words were not unreasonable. For the future
of the shinobi world, this battle
must be fought with all our strength. Shisui's
body was secretly hidden by Itachi
the day he jumped off the cliff. Naruto
heard that and was extremely happy. Together they
went to
Orochimaru's laboratory. Orochimaru saw that the Itachi he
had longed for in the past had come, he
couldn't help but lick his tongue. Anyway, Itachi's
body was really
attractive to him. Itachi saw that Orochimaru was also very
surprised, he smiled and said, "I still
underestimated Orochimaru, I didn't expect
the opponent could escape from the sword
Tosuka." Seeing that, Naruto couldn't help but tease
. The snake, no matter where Satsuki comes from,
cannot kill him. He continued
to Orochimaru, "Prepare for the experiment,
I want to use the reincarnation technique
to revive Itachi." As soon as these words were said,
Itachi and Nagato both looked surprised.
Nagato was the first person to stand up against
. As the owner of
Rinegan, he clearly knows the price to pay when
uses this technique. Itachi also strongly
opposed Naruto's approach. He said
to Naruto, "My Earth body is now
in some aspects and
has the advantage. About these things, Naruto has
thought carefully, but although
's Earth body is immortal, its strength can only forever
stop at this point, it cannot be
enhanced. With Itachi's qualifications, if there is any
having a healthy body, believing that real
strength will definitely shine brightly."
Naruto said as he took out the scroll that
Gara gave him from his ring bag, which is
the reincarnation technique that Chi
used to revive Gara. What Naruto
wants to do is after he dies from using
's reincarnation, immediately let him
Orochimaru controlled the white Jetsu to release
a reincarnation cave to revive
himself. So in theory it is possible to create
into a regeneration loop. For a healthy
Itachi, this risk is still
worth it. After listening, Nagato still did not
agree with Naruto's approach. Anyway
this option is only theoretically possible, if it fails, where will the future of
...
the ninja world go? Naruto
was silent. You also know the risks in
, but this plan must be tried
times, otherwise your plan will
not be able to proceed. As long as you achieve
success, you can use this method
to add a lot of combat power for later
. But Nagato still firmly refused
to agree, unless he was the one who initiated the reincarnation
of natural beings. At this time,
Nagato still had a Marlinegan on him.
Naruto was immediately stunned after hearing this. He
of course strongly objected, but Nagato
insisted that he take action. Because
he also has his own plans. If
this experiment succeeds, he can
revive Yahiko. In case of failure,
just let Naruto use the dirty earth transfer
to revive him. In the end,
under everyone's general persuasion,
Naruto finally agreed to
Nagato's request. The preparations completed,
Nagato immediately launched the
reincarnation technique on Itachi. With a
stream of white light, Itachi was finally
successfully revived, while Nagato
weakened at a speed
visible to the naked eye. This is the price
you have to pay when using natural
reincarnation. Seeing that, Naruto was worried and wanted Orochimaru to quickly begin performing the technique.
...
Orochimaru immediately controlled a white Jessu
to launch the karma technique
to give birth to Nagato. In the blink of an eye, white Jessu's
life force flowed
into Nagato's body as could be seen with his eyes.
naked eye. Naruto also placed his hands on
of the white Jessu, continuously providing
of the chakra that this technique needed to consume. Nagato
, who was already dying, quickly recovered
's vitality, and his white hair
gradually turned red. Naruto saw
and Orochimaru looked at each other and smiled, and
finally succeeded. The feeling of instant fatigue
swallowed up his relaxed body and mind
. He gasped, this operation
consumed chakra and mental power beyond
his imagination. It seems that this
method is not a
method that can be easily used. After all, it involves
life and death, including unknown
risks that are still unknown.
Itachi who was next to him at this time felt hot
blood surging. He was extremely
surprised, not expecting that he would one day recover
and regain his body and bones completely
healthy. He could clearly feel the
synergy in his eyes continuously
skyrocketing, but suddenly his
Saringan eyes began to peel off like
scrap paper. That's because his eye when
was alive was transplanted to Sasuke.
Now after being revived, those eyes naturally
cannot appear anymore. Regarding
this, Naruto told Itachi not to worry
, he had prepared a long time ago. Having said
, Naruto took out a
box containing two Saringan eyes from behind his back. And these
Saringan eyes are the
eyes of Itachi Uchi Izumi's lover.
Itachi was extremely surprised, he asked Naruto
why he had this? Naruto smiled and said,
"Toby has a habit of collecting. After the great
ninja war in his previous life ended, he
went to Toby's base to search for the remaining
white Jesu. When he went deep
into the base, he suddenly discovered a
storage place full of Saringan. Below each
pair of eyes was a note with the owner
's name. After returning from rebirth, Naruto
took advantage of Tobi's absence at the base to secretly
take away the eyes he needed. As he said
, he took out another pair of Sarin
from behind his back, and these eyes belonged to Itachi Uchiha Fugaku's father
. After hearing
, Itachi was extremely shocked. He did not expect that Naruto
had prepared so much for him.
He sincerely thanked Naruto for allowing him
to truly live again in the world. This time
is no longer bound by the village, after this
he will use Izumi's eyes to
look back at this world. Before the tree
transplanted Izumi's eyes, Orochimaru used
his and
Naruto's latest research to modify the gene segments in Izumi's
eyes, making these eyes able to
completely fuse with Itachi's. Thus,
only needs Itachi to open the mangaky again,
can, through the fusion of
Fugaku's eyes, successfully progress to
near-eternal mangyaring. Hearing that,
everyone's admiration for
Orochimaru reached a new level. At
here, Itachi's resurrection has finally
ended perfectly. Naruto said
his intention to revive Shisui as well.
Orochimaru heard that and said regretfully,
"Without Sisui's body, it is impossible to
revive him. Sisui as
is the transcendent genius of the leaf village,
Danozo sent many people to search
many times in the Lower River on the day he
jumped off the cliff, but with
no results." Hearing these words, Itachi
couldn't help but laugh, because
Shisui's body had long been secretly hidden by him.
He clearly knows the unpredictable consequences if Koto
Amukami falls into the wrong hands. So on
the day Sisui jumped into the water, Itachi
found Shisui in the Lower River and hid him
discreetly, later sealing
him in the sword Tosuka. Having said
, Itachi immediately activated Susanu and
in the gourd of Tosuka's sword
unsealed Shisui's body. Already
many years have passed, except for Shisui's
eyes, other parts of his body are still
intact. Orochimaru couldn't help but praise
, Itachi
's working style is really careful, no wonder
in the past he couldn't find anything wrong with it.
Itachi heard that and sighed and said, "This is also
a forced matter. Although I also
want to let my old friend rest in peace,
but people like Danzo and Orochimaru
will definitely not spare
Sisui's body." Having finished speaking, Itachi looked towards
Naruto and said, "Siui leaves it to you." And
Naruto's plan was naturally to use
the method that had just revived Itachi to
revive Sisui. Thinking that Sisui was about to
be revived, Itachi felt both joy
and sadness. Happy because
is about to meet his old friend again, sad
because he did not keep his promise to his friend
, to protect the reputation of the
Uchi family and the village well, but on the contrary, single-handedly brought
Uchi to destruction. Naruto realized
Itachi's thoughts. Before reviving
, he decided to take Itachi to meet an old
acquaintance. The two of them went together to
the rain village's clan yard. At this time, Kisame
was training the ninjas of rain village
. Itachi saw that Kisame was also in the rain village
and was extremely surprised. He called
from behind. Kisame heard
this familiar voice and his
eyes widened. He turned his head to look at
's call, discovering that the source of
's voice was indeed Itachi. Seeing Itachi still
alive, Kisame couldn't believe it. Didn't Itachian
die in a water
battle with his younger brother? Itachi
smiled and explained to him and said that after
he would also stay in the rain village to help
Naruto. Kisame heard that and
smiled, not expecting to have the opportunity
to go on missions with Itachi San in the future. The two
looked at each other for a moment and then burst out laughing. Image
Itachi's influence on Kisame's
outlook on life is truly too great. In the current world of
ninja, only he can
be able to make Kisame's insides cold,
involuntarily ripple. After meeting his old friend,
Itachi got ready to meet Sii.
After a few days of rest, everyone
went to Orochimaru's laboratory again.
Like the steps to revive Itachi at
, after Orochimaru and Naruto were
finished, Nagato launched the
reincarnation technique on Siisi. In a blink of an eye,
on Sisui and he also appeared
with white light. Although everything
went very smoothly, Naruto could
clearly feel that
Nagato's weakening speed this time was much faster than last time.
This resurrection technique seems reasonable,
but the burden on the caster
will increase. After Samsara Thien
Sinh was cast, Orochimaru immediately
controlled White Jessu to launch
the reincarnation technique on Nagato.
He also observed that Nagato was much weaker
than last time, so he hastily
cast the technique on Nagato. Even
a second later, I'm afraid Nagato will die immediately
. With the white JSU
's life force being infused, the weak Nagato
finally began to gradually recover
to its original state. Orochimaru breathed a
sigh of relief, he looked at his masterpiece with great
satisfaction. Naruto came to Nagato's side,
smiled and said, "Senior brother, you've worked hard, is there any difference
this time and the last time you performed the jutsu
?" Nagato could feel that his
Vinegan strength had decreased a lot,
it seemed that this method could not be used
continuously in a short time. Even though there is a period of
reincarnation to maintain the
life of the caster, the
loss of synergy in a short time
cannot be recovered. However,
Nagato did not make this clear to Naruto,
because he was still thinking about reviving
Yahiko. Even if his eyes are blind, he still wants
to bring Yahiko back to this world. Right
at this moment, Sisui's finger lying
on the ground moved slightly. Itachi saw
so he squatted down, grabbed
Sisui's hand and called out to the other person. For Itachi,
Sisui is not only his best friend but also
his guide on his
ninja path. Hearing Itachi's call,
Siis sat up and asked in surprise,
"Is it Itachi calling me?" Because
's two eyes were gouged out when he was alive,
is now
blind and naked. Itachi heard Siis call his name, tears
couldn't help but flow from his eyes. He hugged
deeply to the other person, choked up and unable to
speak, he could only nod and practice.
Although Siis cannot see
Itachi's appearance, as a
sensing ninja, he can accurately sense
Itachi's chakra. After a short
warm moment, Siis asked suspiciously if
was already dead? Why can
meet Itachi now? Along with
his body's functions being completely
restored, he also sensed
other people's chakra. When
sensed Orochimaru, he immediately
immediately shielded himself in front of
Itachi and told Itachi to step back a bit.
Orochimaru exclaimed that it was true that Sisui
was able to transform himself, even though he had been reincarnated
many times, the opponent could still
quickly feel his
's chakra. Hearing that, Shisui said seriously,
"Orochimaru was once the object that the third
asked me to pay special attention to, I'm naturally
too familiar." Itachi smiled and said he liked Shisui. Orochimaru Sensei is now
...
our teammate.
Shisui was extremely surprised when he heard that. Suddenly
he felt cold on his neck,
the next second he fainted on his face.
land. Orochimaru used a specially prepared medicine
to temporarily put Sisui into a coma, because he had to
help Sisui get an eye transplant. Naruto took out
Shisui's two eyes. Orochimaru did
well and quickly completed
the eye transplant surgery. Seeing this scene
, Itachi couldn't help but exclaim. No
expected that Sisui's eyes would one day return to
his former owner. Half a day later, Sisui
finally woke up. He felt the
movement of his eyeballs. When he opened
's eyes, the image that appeared before his eyes was
's Itachi's face. At this point, Siis
finally retreated and once again looked
at this world. The first person he
saw when he opened his eyes was Itachi.
Seeing Itachi
's skinny appearance now, Siis sadly exclaimed, during the
days I wasn't here, you must
have been very tired. Itachi's insides showed
a bitter smile, and on his cold
face, a bit of weak
emotion could not help but appear. In front of Sisui, he
seemed to have found an elder
he could rely on. After a short
conversation, Siis asked Itachi what
happened? Aren't you already
dead? And why are you hanging out with
Orochimaru? Itachi explained to
his opponent that it was now 10 years after
passed away, and during this time
many things had happened. He introduced Naruto,
"You revived me." Sisui looked at
Naruto with suspicion at first, then with
surprise, his purple eyes with three
rings rippling. Naruto's eyes are the legendary Rinegan
that holds life and
death. He immediately understood that his source
could be revived. Naruto
stepped forward and introduced himself with a smile, "My name is
Uzumaki Naruto, future seventh Hokage
." Shisu naturally knows Naruto because
he was entrusted by the third to secretly
protect the enemy when Naruto was young.
Knowing that it was Naruto who took back his eye
from Danzo, Sisui was extremely
surprised. "You asked Naruto Danzo if
that's why he's chasing you?" Naruto smiled
nodded, "Of course, but Danzo
is gone now." Sisui heard
and was even more surprised. It seems that during the
days I wasn't here, a lot of
things happened. He turned to ask
Itachi about the situation of the village and the third
o'clock. If Danzo, the ninja of darkness is
no more, the Uchi clan and the Village must
have gone on the path of peace?
Itachi faced Shisui's continued
questions, couldn't help but panic
took two steps back and swallowed his saliva.
Orochimaru saw Itachi's
panicked appearance for the first time, and he couldn't
secretly laugh. At this time, Itachi was embarrassed and apologized
to Sisui, that he had betrayed
's trust, and then told him the whole incident.
The one who killed the third person was Orochimaru Sensei
in front of him, and the one who destroyed the Uchi clan was
me. Siis heard that, his pupils immediately
dilated, under great shock, his
eyes involuntarily opened to
Saringan, an angry punch directly
hit Itachi's stomach. Shisui hit
and roared, "I told you to protect the village,
to protect Uchi, but you directly massacred
Uchi Naruto saw that and wanted to step forward
to advise Shisui to calm down, but Ichi
told you not to interfere, this is a matter
between their Uchi clan." Since the night
of the clan's destruction, he has always suppressed this matter
in his heart. Now that the clansman is a little
angry at him, he feels a little
relieved inside. The purpose of Siis
was so that Itachi could release the past
before attacking so hard. Before
jumping off the cliff, he knew that
Uchi and the Village had reached the point where they could not fight
. Siis was powerless to
stop that struggle, in the end
chose to hide, entrusting everything
to Itachi. He was heartbroken looking at Itachi
on the ground, on one side was the village, on the other side
was his family, a gentle person like
Itachi did such a thing, how painful
must have been in his heart at that time.
Thinking of this, Siis Unlucky's tears fell like rain, helping
Itachi up on the ground. I'm sorry
Itachi, at that time I should not have chosen
to escape like that and left Itachi alone
to bear everything. At the same time, he told
Itachi that everything was over. This is a problem
that has existed for a long time between Uchi and the leaf village.
With Dano there, Uchi's destruction is
clearly inevitable. Doing something
like that was extreme, but at least it made
the family not have a bad reputation for betraying
forever. From another perspective,
was also considered to have protected Uchi's
reputation. Siis's words were like a drop of
pure water, falling into
Itachi's heart, the emotions that had been suppressed in his heart
for so many years were finally completely
released. Naruto saw this scene and smiled
faintly, Tram couldn't hear it as much as
saw it. Siis is indeed a super
elite ninja. As
Itachi's close friend, his accusations were similar to
's relatives who were slaughtered by Itachi. Every
sentence, every fist will strike
into Itachi's insides. On the surface, Shisui
is blaming Itachi for what
did, but in reality, he is
helping Itachi relieve the guilt
he has felt in his heart for a long time. At this moment Sisui
turned to thank Naruto. He hopes
in the future world there will no longer be
people who silently sacrifice
shoulder the burden for the village like Itachi.
Naruto smiled happily. He told Siis to rest
's mind, tomorrow peace and unity of the ninja world will definitely come. After everyone
...
went home to rest, Sisui went to
Itachi's residence. After three weeks of drinking,
Shisui asked Itachi why he followed
Naruto. In his memory, Itachi was always
a very opinionated person. Hearing that, Itachi
smiled and said, "After you interacted
with Naruto, you probably
already had the answer in your heart. Naruto has
an inexplicable power, making
people unable to help but want to help
him. In addition, he is actually a
person from the future." At this time, Itachi
explained to Shisui about Naruto coming
from the future. Understanding everything, Shisui
decided to also join
Naruto's team. The two of them came to
Naruto's side again, knowing Shisui's choice,
Naruto laughed loudly, "Now is the time
starts planning the great
ninja war. According to his experience in
's previous life, the main force of the
toy side is 100,000 white Jesuses and the
army of the dirty earth team along with seven tailed beasts. 10
tens of thousands of White Jessu can use
Naruto's clones in collaboration with
's ninja alliance to deal with
's evil army, which can only be
resolved by sealing or defeating
. As soon as he heard
's name, Orochimaru proactively asked to deal with
's former disciple.
But Naruto did not agree with Orochimaru's
suggestion because Kabuto had now
surpassed Orochimaru to become a
dragon. In his previous life, Itachi and
Sasuke subdued each other.
So this time Naruto decided to arrange
Itachi and Shisui to deal with Yakusi
Kabuto at the same time Itachi and
they can spare Yakusi Kabuto's life
because Kabuto's talent will be of
great benefit in the future.
is now Sasuke. In his previous life, Sasuke
as our teammate
together against the enemy can be said to be
of no small merit
will most likely become our toughest opponent
. Hearing Sasuke's name,
Sisui couldn't help but admire the change
of time. Before he jumped into
the water, Sasuke was still a child speaking
in an immature voice. As for Sasuke, Itachi suggested
that Naruto let him deal with it. He has
confidence that he will pull the other person back to the right
path. If it really doesn't work, let
Shisui activate Koto Amasukami to collect
clothes. After listening, Naruto shook his head to deny
Itachi's proposal. The current Sasuke is not
someone who can change with a few
words, moreover, he believes that Itachi and
Sisui are no longer
Sasuke's opponents. Tobi wants to control those seven tailed
beasts, most likely letting Sasuke open the
Rinegan. He told Itachi to calmly deal
with Yakushi Kabuto. Sasuke and Tobi along with
and the tailed beasts entrusted him and Killerby
to deal with. Nagato saw that he was not ranked
, so he went up to ask Naruto what he should
do. Naruto's plan is
for him and Conan to defend
's headquarters in the rain village. With 600 billion explosive talismans from senior sister
Konan, Toby certainly wouldn't dare
to secretly attack from behind. After hearing
, Miss Nan couldn't help but smile with satisfaction. Junior Brother
thinks very meticulously. Those explosive talismans
were what she prepared for the masked man.
Finally for the ninja dancer
that might appear, Naruto decided
to go meet the people who know it all. At this time
at Akasuki's base, Sasuke, after several
days of practice, had completely mastered
how to use Vinegon. He felt that the sky
was clear. I'm fine again, I just
want to fly right next to Naruto to
defeat him. Suddenly Tobi scrolled
in space time. As soon as Sasuke
saw him, he smiled arrogantly and immediately activated
Benso Ten in. To's body was pulled by gravity
, but in the moment the two
made contact, Sasuke passed through.
his body. Sasuke immediately pulled out the sword
Kusanagi and slashed back, but was also blinded by
Tobi to avoid it. Tobi shouted at
Sasuke, don't let your legs move
your head, this is Akasuki's base. Seeing the cold pair of
mugs, Sasuke only
retracted his hand. Anyway, he and
Tobi are currently in a partnership. After getting
acquainted with Rinegan, next is to control
the seven tailed beasts inside the pagan demon
statue. At this time, Kabuto stepped out from the darkness
. According to the information his white snake
had collected, the coalition forces of the five
great powers were on the way to assemble
. Tobi heard that and smiled disdainfully,
are just a bunch of miscreants. He told
Kabuto to prepare the undead army and sent
a vanguard to reinforce reconnaissance towards
Naruto. Waiting for Sasuke to control those seven
tailed beasts will begin to let this world
feel the pain that Jin had to endure
in the past. Early the next morning, everyone
in the Amegakure gathered together at
Orochimaru's laboratory. To deal with
the impending appearance of Uiha Madara,
Naruto decided to destroy the previous
Hokage. Orochimaru understood and immediately arranged the necessary
techniques for the filthy earth
to be born on the ground. Naruto then captured
four white coins as an intelligence
reconnaissance tool near the rain village. Everything is
ready. Naruto released the four souls that were
sealed in the scroll earlier.
With Orochimaru initiating the evil
earth reincarnation, those who knew all
were finally revived once again.
Itachi next to him stared at
Hasirama, exclaiming in surprise, is this
Senzu Hasirama known as the
god of rings? At this time, the Hokage gradually
recovered their vitality. As soon as Tobirama saw
Orochimaru, he immediately criticized him for abusing
his ninjutsu. After that, the four
Hokage, like their previous lives, did not know
is tired and talks about the past. Naruto
couldn't help but laugh when he saw this scene. Is this
the situation that Sasuke encountered when
summoned his seniors? The
previous Hokages heard this
laughter and looked towards Naruto one by one. The third
was frightened, he questioned Naruto at
why did he interact with Orochimaru? Have
you too become fallen?
When everyone saw
Naruto's Rinegan, the atmosphere at the scene became
silent for a moment. Hasirama
couldn't help but exclaim, are these
eyes like the Sage of the Six Paths in
legend? Unexpectedly, he could
see with his own eyes the Rinegan that Madara had
always researched before. Tobirama carefully
sensed Naruto's chakra. This
texture is identical to that of Mito's sister-in-law.
It's no surprise that he must be
of the Uzumaki clan. Uzumaki Naruto
, right? It seems that he is also the Jinchuriki
of the Nine-Tails, looks a bit like his great
brother, is both naive and natural and easy to
get close to. Tobirama asked Naruto with a serious face
Where did Rinegan come from? These eyes are not
eyes that the Uzumaki clan can
open. Naruto did not rush to explain but
went up to greet Minato. Minato met
his son again and was deeply moved. Hasirama and
Tobirama looked towards Minato respectively.
To become Hokage at such a young age,
's ability must be not bad. Why die so young?
Minato spoke awkwardly because the Nine-Tails rebelled.
To prevent the Nine-Tails from being sealed, he
sacrificed himself. Hasirama said somewhat doubtfully.
That nine-tailed beast can also kill
people? Hearing that, Minato awkwardly
scratched his head. At this time, Itachi and Sisui
stepped forward and warmly greeted the Third. The Third
saw the two of them stunned,
then reprimanded Orochimaru, and
even reincarnated them. But Tobirama
denied the third's words, because of two
this person is not a reincarnated body of impure earth
but a living person
of flesh and blood. Orochimaru evilly told the third
not to always look at him with such a surprised
expression. In the past, he
really liked being the one who created the
wind, but now he's more interested in
where this Naruto wind will blow.
Itachi explains that Naruto used
Rinegan to revive them. After listening, Third
was even more surprised. Tobirama looked at his grandmother
's picture and Sarà of Shisui, and couldn't help but remember
his old subordinate Uchi Kagami. Knowing
that Shisui was Kagami's nephew,
he suddenly realized, no wonder
's temperament was different from other evil Uchi
. At the same time, when he learned that Itachi
next to him was the person who destroyed the Uchi
clan, Tobirama could not help but feel
admiration for Itachi. At this time, Naruto
spoke up and said that was the end of the old story.
He first introduced himself simply,
then announced to the Hokage that summoning
when they came out had two purposes. The first is
to help me win the upcoming fourth great ninja war
. Hearing that it was a great
ninja warrior, Hasirama couldn't help but
exclaim, it's true that no
era lacks fighting. Upon learning that the mastermind
was behind it was Uchi Madara, he and
Tobirama were immediately excited. Hearing
Tobi's name, Minato and the Third were immediately
surprised. Naruto
's arrangement is that Madara is about to appear for
Hasirama to deal with, while the others
help deal with Sasuke and Tobi.
Hasirama happily agreed. Hearing that he could
see his old friend again, he couldn't
feel a little excited. Regarding the second
purpose of summoning them, Naruto decided
to wait
after the great ninja war ended to announce it. After implementing the
related plan, Hasirama asked Naruto about
the current situation of the leaf village. Just heard
The current Hokage is his
niece, Chunade. He immediately had a bad
feeling, so he reluctantly spoke about
's finances, right?
Naruto smiled and told Hasirama, "Don't worry, the village
under the leadership of Chunade, it can
be said to be peaceful and prosperous like never before
." Hearing that, Hasirama and Tobirama at this
breathed a sigh of relief. They couldn't help but
wonder how the leaf village eventually became like
. Regarding this, Tobirama suggested that
if you were revived, why don't you go back to the village and see
? The other Kage also had this idea,
but Orochimaru regretfully said, "All
people were born from the filthy earth, because
so your current actions must
ask Naruto's opinion first." Hearing
these words, Tobirama immediately became
angry. "It's just a dirty earth-turning technique that
gives birth to a child. How can it bind
him? That evil Uzumaki brat, I
will do it myself." A terrifying wave of chakra
immediately erupted from Tobirama's body.
Orochimaru saw that and immediately used a binding seal
to force Tobirama's actions. Tobirama
was immediately unable to move. Only then did he
realize that Orochimaru's entire body
seemed to be filled with big brother's sacrificial treasures. Hasirama
sneered. Tobirama has become
slow. This disciple of Sarutobi is not a simple
, moreover, this Uzumaki
youth in front of me is afraid he has a
amount of chakra as huge as me. Naruto
let out a sigh. Just now you were planning to
show your hand. After all, the most important
experimental data of the rain village is in
this laboratory, and
cannot be sabotaged by . Although receiving
the god of ring's greetings, Orochimaru
was happy, but he knew that if
Hashirama really wanted to protest, in just
a moment, he would tear
off his neck. Naruto told Orochimaru not to
panic, he told the four Hokage to place their hands
onto his shoulder, so he can use the Flying Thunder God
to take everyone back to the village. As soon as he heard that Naruto
also knew the Fei
surprised and couldn't help but complain that it was his Phi
God of Thunder, Tobirama was extremely God of Thunder. Coming to the leaf village,
also had Itachi and Shisui. With the release of the Lightning Spirit Phi
, the guys together
appeared in Minato's house in Konoha
when he was still alive. As soon as it landed
on the ground, it kicked up a large amount of choking
dust. Tobirama complains Naruto
couldn't have chosen a better place?
Naruto smiled and apologized to everyone, but
normally no one would come here, choosing
this place could effectively prevent
from being discovered causing a commotion. Having finished speaking,
Naruto used senjutsu to feel
around. After realizing that there was nothing unusual around
, he told everyone
to transform into regular
villagers, so they could enter the village.
Seeing Naruto's immortal technique,
Hasirama couldn't help but reveal an appreciative
expression. Mount Mioboku's senjutsu?
He couldn't help but praise Minato for truly
giving birth to an excellent son. At the young
age, he was not only strong in strength but also
very careful in mind. Hearing that, Minato was
both happy and heartbroken. Because
in this cruel world of ninja,
Naruto, who has no father or mother, has
gone through so much to be
as mature and talented as he is now.
Once again returning to this old place,
Minato couldn't help but be moved by the sight of
things. The images of him and Kusina living here in
in the past continuously appeared in
's mind. At this time, everyone went together to a
high place outside. Seeing the
prosperity of the village now, Hasirama came in
and exclaimed. Tobirama looked at his statue of
Hokage in the center, looking
over the whole village, he smiled with satisfaction.
The third and fourth also looked at each other and smiled,
The time they passed away was not very long, because
so the changes in the village would
not feel too big of a difference.
Itachi and Shisui once again breathed
the air of the leaf village, and were extremely
happy. For many years, since the night of exterminating the
clan, Itachi had not been able to relax
for a long walk in the village like this. The two
decided to return to the old residence of the Uchi clan
since that night, the residence of the Uchi clan had become
a forbidden place of the leaf village. The scene
was bustling and bustling in the past, now only
remains with ruined walls and
overgrown weeds. Itachi looked at the knife marks
still clearly visible on the wall, and could not
calm down. That night, the image of the
clans crying and begging and then falling down with
with the condolences of their father and mother before
passed away continuously appeared in his mind.
The feelings of Farewell that had been suppressed in his heart for
more than 10 years completely broke out, far beyond
witnessing a loved one pass away once
, the eyes that he had just implanted a few
days ago immediately turned into mangyaring
Itachi knelt down on the ground regretfully, once again
shedding tears of self-blame. The Uchi Clan
cannot end like that. He vows that
will use these eyes to clearly see the future
of the ninja world, helping Naruto
clear all obstacles. After
saying goodbye to the past, Shisui and Itachi returned
to Naruto's side. Itachi expressed his deep
gratitude to Naruto. Thanks to Naruto,
he had the opportunity to repent and
make amends with his clan once again. Naruto smiled and said,
"The old story is over, everyone has returned
to hide from the past, surely they all have their own
plans." It was time to look to
the future. Through his senses, he realized that
Chunade and Jira as well as most of the
ninjas were not in the village. He
guessed that everyone must have gone to the
cloud village to gather. It seems
is about to break out. He led everyone back home
rainy village. As soon as they landed,
Nagato's rainwater sensed them. He hurried
to find Naruto. After a few days of rest,
his Vinegan strength had finally
largely recovered. Naruto immediately understood Nagato's meaning
, and it was time to make up for regret
for his brother to revive Yahiko. After
caught a white suu, Nagato pulled out the black
stick on his body and immediately
launched the celestial reincarnation technique on
him. Green light wrapped around Nagato
and Iahiko. Compared to when he revived Itachi and
Shisui, Nagato could clearly feel
the heavier burden, but he still relied
on his strong will, trying to complete
the technique. Orochimaru and
Naruto immediately controlled the white Jetsu,
launched reincarnation to help
Nagato restore his vitality. Looking at
Nagato's slow recovery state, Naruto clearly knew that this
...
resurrection technique could not be used
again in a short time. At this time Yahiko woke up,
saw Ms. Nan next to him with a confused face,
then asked in confusion where Ms. Nan was?
Aren't you already dead? Nagato
didn't pay attention to the body that had just used
's technique. She crawled over and hugged
and saw Nagato, revealing a smile that
hadn't seen in a long time, and was already crying like rain. Naruto
looked at this scene and smiled in his heart. After
a short conversation, Yahiko was surprised to discover
that Naruto also had a Rinegan. Nagato
wiped his tears and introduced himself to
Yahiko. Naruto is also a disciple of Jira
Sensei, and is now the leader of our
organization. Yahiko looked at Naruto, unable
to remember himself in the past. After
talked, Naruto asked Nagato to explain
the reason for the incident to Yahiko, he still had
things to deal with. After saying goodbye, he
went to Minato's side. Minato was reincarnated by the defiled earth
, meaning that the other half of the
Nine-Tails, the Nine-Tails Yin, was also revived.
Naruto always had a premonition in his heart that this
great battle would have a change, so
he decided before the great battle to absorb
some of the power of the Nin Nine-Tails first.
But Kurama was worried that Naruto would be
swallowed up by
's terrifying resentment. Anyway, in the past life, it was after
Minato and Naruto fought side by side
that the Nine-Tails recognized Naruto.
Hearing that, Naruto told the Nine-Tails not to worry
, having gone through many ups and downs, now
no longer has any resentment that can swallow
his hands. Moreover, this time he
only wanted to withdraw a part of the power of Yin
Nine-Tails as a defense. The Nine-Tails doesn't say
much anymore, after all Naruto is the one
chosen by the Sage of Six Paths, he also believes that
Naruto can do it. The moment
Naruto and Minato touched fists, the two
foxes appeared in the same
space. Naruto cordially greeted Yin Cuu
Vi, but Yin Cuu Vi with a fierce expression
told Naruto not to get too close and sarcastically
Duong Cuu Vi bowed his head to a
kid. Seeing that the other person was not convinced, Naruto
didn't say much anymore, from behind
shot out many diamond radiating beams,
tightly wrapped around Yin Nine-Tails, then following
the method taught by Nine-Tails, began
to absorb Yin Nine-Tails' chakra. After
completed, he placed this chakra block in
another place in the space
room. Minato was extremely surprised, Naruto could do such a
thing.
Yin Cuu Vi was so angry that he gritted his teeth, he shouted
for Naruto to remember. The reason Naruto
did not choose to let the yin and yang nine-tailed tails merge into
one now is because he felt that on
the battlefield, two scattered nine-tailed tails would sometimes
have unexpected combat effects. At
this time at Akasuki's base, Sasuke was also
communicating with the tailed beasts, only
his communication style was a bit
rough. You can use Vinegon in a flash
limits the actions of tailed beasts. Tobi
couldn't help but applaud, Sasuke
's ability to learn is indeed very strong.
Sasuke smiled contemptuously, "Now you
can easily control the tailed beasts.
What do you ask Tobi to do next?"
Tobi told Kabuto to defecate the Jinchuriki
of the past, then had Sasuke seal seven
tailed beasts into the corresponding Jinchuriki
and insert metal bars into each
Jinchuriki. Thus, Sasuke can communicate
through Rinegan to control them. Because Gara was still
alive, the One-Tails was sealed into the
previous One-Tailed Jinchuriki. Sasuke now
can now be said to have the strength to fight
against Naruto. The corner of Tobi's mouth
slightly raised, the fourth Great Shinobi War
was about to begin. At this time, under Naruto's
pull, the five great powers
finally established a fake
ring alliance. After Gara finished the
general assembly, he immediately led the army with all his strength to
attack. After learning that the Coalition
had mobilized, Naruto immediately gathered everyone. To
ensure safety, he let the villagers
evacuate to another place to take refuge. The
school room, if Toby is angry, will probably shoot the jade beast
in this direction and this job
is assigned to Yahiko and them
who have the greatest influence in the rain village
to complete. The others according to
's previous arrangement, Itachi and Shisui,
were in charge of dealing with Yakushi Kabuto.
The four Hokage and KBI along with Orochimaru
followed Naruto. Everything is ready. Three
forces mobilized one after another. The fourth great
ninja war has finally officially
begun. Right after Naruto led
everyone to the battlefield, Tobi immediately
had Kabuto's evil army begin
to mobilize. Kabuto immediately formed a
motion to reincarnate the impure earth technique. The
members of Akatsuki in the past, the famous Kage
of the past, etc., the experts
of large villages in the past were all born from Earth-transformed Uure
. Toby found this
formation very satisfying, but Sasuke voiced
's doubts in his heart. He was a bit disappointed
and asked Kabuto why there was no
sign of Itachi? With
Kabuto's personality, it is impossible not to have Itachi's
life matter. Kabuto said in a deep voice, asking his good brother
...
about this. Naruto knew that Naruto had taken away
Itachi's impure body. Sasuke gritted
his teeth, "How many times does that guy want to anger
me before he's willing? Tell
Tobi not to say too much and immediately depart
to the battlefield." Tobi laughed for a
time, then used the space-time vortex
to take Sasuke and Team Taka away from the
base. Seeing them leave, Yakusi Kabuto couldn't help but
look up to the sky and laugh out loud. He formed a seal with both
hands, another coffin
usually rose from the ground, the person
inside was Uchi Madara whom Tobi was most
taboo against. Kabuto calculated in his heart,
after this battle, the world will forever
remember his name, Yakusi Kabuto. He
sank Madara
's coffin underground, then immediately ordered
the other dirty armies and ten
thousand white Jessu troops to attack. At this
Sasuke and Team Taka appeared in
the rain village, but the rain village was now
an empty city. Tobi couldn't help but
feel that Naruto was truly scheming and cunning, cutting off
the worry that in the future he might not respect him and turn against him. Sasuke despised
...
and often laughed, "If Naruto isn't here then
will go directly to the carnage alliance to lure
him out." At this time, Naruto used the Flying Thunder
to take everyone to a desert area.
Tobirama looked around, suspicious
asked Naruto why he came to this deserted place?
Naruto relies on his past life memories, this
is where he first met
Uchiham Madara. He teeth a barrier to
Hashirama, Tobirama and the third hermit are
here. Soon they will meet an old friend
. Tobirama immediately understood that the person
Naruto was talking about was definitely that evil Uchi Madara
. Naruto then left behind a
clone and told everyone to follow his
clone's orders before moving out. After
finished making arrangements, Naruto led Kobbi,
Minato and Orochimaru out of here.
Hasirama and the others sat down on the ground,
waiting for their old friend to arrive. At this
time, and at the same time as the vanguard of the
attack, Didara and Sasori fought against the
Alliance. In the end, Sasori did not
want to become someone else's puppet, but
personally decontaminated the land and reincarnated, and
Didara was controlled by lightning and became
a bomb. The first match ended with
Alliance victories. Naruto leads
Killerby and the others to the place where they met
Tobi in his previous life. Seeing that a big
battle was about to happen, Killerby excitedly activated his
muscles. Naruto couldn't help but recall the memory of
fighting Tobi here with Killer B
in his previous life. The two of them dealing with six
tailed beasts found themselves in a dangerous situation.
Fortunately, he and the Nine-Tails finally reached
a consensus to overcome
difficulties. This time, Naruto holds the absolute
initiative. The reason for tolerating
Tobi to launch this
shinobi war is so that all ninjas can
join together. Although
cannot avoid sacrifice, if the ninjas cannot even
pass this level, then
there is no need to talk about defeating
Osatsuki in the end. Thinking of this, Naruto
also felt like he no longer
recognized himself. Suddenly, he
felt a familiar
flow of chakra. Naruto smiled, turned around and said to
Minato, "Let's take you to meet an old
acquaintance." After leaving a few
shadow clones to ambush them, they headed to another
direction. At this moment, Kakashi was like hell
was previously fighting Yabuza and Haku
was defiled. Faced with many bloodline
limits plus immortal ninjas, the alliance
gradually fell into a losing position. In
's time, several kunai suddenly stabbed
into the ground. Immediately after, a Rasen
Senko for Rinbukosiki echoed throughout
heaven and earth. Haku and Jabuza and the others
were sent flying by several yellow lightning bolts
directly. Everyone regained consciousness but couldn't
believe it. They didn't expect it to be the fourth
Hokage. Minato smiled and greeted everyone, saying
that I was late? Kakashi really
couldn't believe it, this time he wasn't
the old mangkio, the person in front of
was the real Minato sensei. Minato
smiled and greeted everyone. When people
saw
's unclean eyes reincarnated, they immediately became alert. Kakashi stepped forward
to shield himself in front of his juniors and apologized
to Minato for having to fight him.
Minato told everyone to rest assured, although he
was born from the dirty earth, he was not
controlled by the enemy. At this time, the
people who were destroyed by the impure land of reincarnation have all
recovered. Kabuto was at the far
Akatsuki base, a strange light flashed in his eyes.
The Hokage he longed for day and night was reincarnated by
someone else's filthy land. After all
who can reclaim the souls of the
Hokage from the hands of death? Carrying this unbelievable
question, Kabuto again controlled the reincarnated
people to launch an attack.
But at this time, several figures suddenly
fell in front of everyone. Naruto
led KBI and Orochimaru also arrived here.
He admired that
Minato's speed was even faster than his own. As soon as
saw Naruto, everyone was surprised, and
next to Naruto was the terrifying
hidden Orochimaru. Jabuza looked very familiar at the blonde-haired
teenager in front of him. Haku,
is definitely like that. This was the same Naruto who fought
them for the last time. See growth
Naruto's city, the two couldn't help but
exclaim. As a perceived Ninja,
Haku knew that Naruto's current
strength was unimaginably deep. He smiled and said to
Naruto, "It seems you didn't betray your promise
at that time." Naruto raised his finger
in response. Kabuto at the remote base
discovered that Orochimaru had come back to life,
was extremely surprised. Then he chuckled
in a deep voice, and directly spoke to
the defiled person. As soon as Orochimaru heard
Orochimaru through
Kabuto's voice, he smiled.
Kabuto asked the resurrected Orochimaru why
didn't look for him and instead stayed with Naruto? Regarding
this, Orochimaru only said that he and
Naruto had an agreement. Here
happened to have the truth that he pursued. Kabuto heard
these words and was very angry, roaring that
Orochimaru had changed. After two and a half years of
training, he has now surpassed
Orochimaru, transforming into a dragon. Kabuto
controlled Buza and laughed loudly.
Orochimaru looked serious again, feeling
that Kabuto was very pitiful. He knows
Kabuto still hasn't found
himself, what the other person is doing is just to
prove his existence to the
world. Orochimaru tries to persuade
Kabuto to return to his side. But
Kabuto refused his request and
directly took away
Jabuza's sense of autonomy and the others prepared to
do the real thing. The chakra of people with impure
earth immediately skyrocketed. Before losing
consciousness, Haku begged Naruto once again
to stop them. Three years ago, you couldn't
protect Rabuasan. But now you
not only cannot protect him,
is even controlled by others,
cannot become a tool for the opponent
. Hearing these words, Naruto felt
very uncomfortable. He agreed with
and decided to take action himself.
Kakashi saw this and immediately signaled the team
the seal is ready. Battle
will end shortly. Jabu cast
to use the mist technique to make white mist
cover the surrounding area, but Naruto only needed
to manifest a nine-tailed tail on his back
and wave it strongly, the surrounding fog
immediately disappeared. Naruto then unleashed
the Benso Ten inin on them, a strong
suction force that pulled out Buza and the others.
Naruto used his Chakra hands to grab
them one by one, then used his black stick to block
's chakra. In his previous life as a
knight of Hinata Bizakugan, he was very familiar with the
acupuncture points that ninjas used to transmit to their fathers.
Seeing this scene, the ninjas present were all stunned
, Naruto in the blink of an eye had taken care of
all these kekkei genkai ninja
. Due to
's chakra being blocked by Naruto, Kabuto lost the control of
Jabuza and the others. The
people who were defiled on the field have all recovered their
consciousness. Haku was surprised and praised
that Naruto had really become strong, and
thanked Naruto. Naruto smiled and said
without being polite and told Haku about
Jabu's change after his
death. When his body was kicked by Kado,
Jabuasan frantically defended him. Actually
he already considered you not as his
great-uncle but as his
most important comrade. Haku looked at Kakashi in disbelief, seemingly
...
looking for confirmation. Kakashi nodded. At
, Jaabu was next to him and quickly told Naruto
to shut up. Naruto smiled faintly, even if
was resurrected once, wouldn't he dare say
again the words he said to Haku before
died? Haku and Jabuza
finally confessed their hearts to each other. The two
people no longer had any regrets as they released the Impure Earth
to reincarnate and fly away. Naruto smiled
satisfied, this is probably the biggest effect of this
unclean earth reincarnation technique. Sealing team
then sealed the others
on the ground. Kabuto punched
the ground. He didn't expect Naruto to become
so strong. He had originally planned to send other
members of the Seven Swords of Mist Village
up, but seeing this situation, sending
was just a free gift. He told HSu
to inform Sasuke
and them of Naruto's location. When Sasuke learned,
smiled excitedly, and immediately ran like crazy with Tobi towards
Naruto. Kakashi went up to greet
Minato, and at the same time he explained to
Minato that the mastermind of the
nine-tailed riot was actually Tobi. After listening, Minato said
Naruto had told him, he told
Kakashi didn't need to blame himself, it wasn't his fault that Tobi became
like that.
When Kakashi heard his teacher's words of comfort,
finally felt some
relief in his heart. He asked Naruto where
was going next? Naruto smiled and said, "The person you're looking for is
someone you know." Kakashi immediately understood
that the people Naruto was talking about were Tobi and Sasuke.
Sakura next to her heard Sasuke's name,
immediately asked Naruto to take her with him, but
Naruto flatly refused. Because
Sasuke is now in the darkest and most dangerous
state, he also
cannot guarantee that he can protect Sakura
while fighting Sasuke. At this time
at the headquarters of the ninja alliance, a spy
brought news of Naruto and they appeared
on the battlefield. Jaikage heard
Minato's name and was extremely surprised, even
the news of his younger brother Kby also ignored
. Anyway, Minato in his heart
was always the fastest. Chunade felt
happy and immediately left the office
to convey Minato's story to
Jira. Jira couldn't believe that Minato's
soul was sealed by a corpse demon. If Mr.
can be summoned, it means that
other great Hokages have most likely
appeared as well. Thinking of this, Jira couldn't wait
to go to the battlefield to meet him
old acquaintances. Now his arm
has been transplanted according to the method
that Naruto provided. This arm
is grown from Hasirama cells. Now
his
strength and recovery ability are far beyond before. Chunade told
to be careful, if any situation arose, immediately
retreat. After Jira agreed,
immediately set off to support Naruto.
At this time Sasuke and Tobi were also trying
to search for Naruto. In which Sasuke was
surrounded by seven tailed beasts ahead.
Behind are Hzu and Toby. Hesu was a bit worried
and asked if Toby was sure he could control
Sasuke? After all, in this life
Rinegan is on Sasuke, wanting
to complete the moonlight plan, only
can rely on Sasuke to motivate him. Tobi
heard that and coldly snorted, Sasuke
was just his pawn, everything
was under his control.
Hu nodded in response, "That's good."
Then Tobi told him to go assassinate the great
names of the countries, here it would be okay to hand it over to him and
Sasuke. After receiving the order,
hid underground. Toby's words, he
still couldn't believe it completely. With
his own calculation, he decided to secretly
incite Yakusi Kabuto to revive
Madara. At this time, Mai Wi also came to
next to Kakashi. Seeing that Emperor
was coming, Naruto said goodbye to Kakashi with peace of mind.
Kabuto saw Naruto leave and immediately sent
the remaining six members of the Seven Swordsmen to
the battlefield to deal with Kakashi and
the others. As soon as W saw That Kiem
, he couldn't help but remember the image of his last father
opening the Eight Gates to save them. In order not to disappoint
his father's sacrifice in the past, today he
must seal these six people here
. He told everyone to step back.
This is your battle alone. Having said
, he directly opened the seventh meridian gate,
blue steam immediately enveloped him.
whole field. Kakashi knew this was the last gate
and before the gate of death, he could imagine
the anger in his heart right now. Wi's
powerful punch directly crushed
Kushimaru Kure. Seeing that, Akebino Jinin
immediately used his long sword to stab at him, but
his speed could not keep up with
Huy's speed at all. Wy continued with a
attack to crush the opponent, then a teleport
instantly moved in front of the remaining four
, activating Hirudora. Munashi Jin
Pachi saw this and immediately raised his explosive sword
to block in front of him, but Hirudora was
able to attack physical magic, completely unaffected
by the wind explosion. Of the four, only Hzuki
Mangetsu liquefied into water to avoid
Hirudora's attack. The remaining three
were all beaten to pieces, and the last
was sealed one by one by the sealing team.
After taking Hirudora,
's physical condition may decline rapidly. Kakashi told
Joc Ly to take him down to rest. The remaining Mangetsu
is left to you. Mangetsu alone
was difficult to defeat many people, and in the end
was successfully sealed. Yakusi Kabuto
was so angry that he hit the floor. Suddenly Black Jessu
popped out from the ground next to him. He instigated Kabuto to suggest that it was time to play his trump card
...
. Kabuto smiled evilly, preparing for
Madara to come out. At this time, Naruto waited at
where Tobi and Sasuke were about to appear. Minato
recalled the memories
of the past between teacher and student. Suddenly Naruto
seriously told everyone to pay attention. The next
second, Sasuke and Tobi appeared
in front of them. Naruto carefully looked at Sasuke's
eyes. As expected, he
actually opened a
Rinegan eye. Only this Rinegan is not
like the previous life with six To Moê.
Sasuke looked at Naruto and smiled evilly, "You
really made my search difficult." Tobi originally
intended to tease Naruto, but
when he saw Minato next to him
Naruto, immediately stunned. Minato has been looking at Tobi from a while ago. Even though the opponent
...
was wearing a mask, his eyes had turned into
two, but he was certain that this was
the person who fought him 16 years
ago. Since the Flying Thunder God mark would not
disappear, he could feel the remaining
mark on his opponent's back. Minato
called out to Tobi, but Tobi angrily said,
"That man died a long time ago."
Naruto heard that coldly snorted,
immediately rebutted Toby, "You shouted
so hastily, was it to hide
the guilt in your heart? It's a waste
for my mother to have treated
you so well when she was alive, but you repay kindness with hatred,
cruelly attacked your teacher on
day her birth, in return any
person would feel guilty and go underground.
Su Bi laughed contemptuously,
things like that were no longer important, he
declared that this world was just a
fake existence. Hearing these words, Naruto
got angry and scolded Tobi, "Don't act
like the whole world owes him. Even if you
destroyed the entire leaf village, you should not
be so cruel to Kusina. Also
, thank you very much. Because you were afraid I would be cold,
stuck me with so many explosive charms. The Nine-Tails
in the sealed space could clearly
feel Naruto's anger at this
moment. Such an angry Naruto, it's
the first time I've seen it. Tobi was speechless
by Naruto. It was the first time Sasuke saw Tobi
being outmatched like that, he secretly
felt happy. He coldly snorted at
Toby, now I know how hateful
Naruto's mouth is
. The old story ends here. Having said that,
a Chidori gathered in Sasuke's hand.
The next second, Naruto's body appeared
next to Sasuke. Naruto couldn't help but
be surprised. Using Aminos Jikara to exchange
me and the air in front of me? Uncle
used the Ultimate Flying Spirit to escape Sasuke's Chidori
, but as soon as he appeared,
Sasuke activated Benso Ten again to print on
him. Naruto's body was immediately sucked by gravity
. Seeing that, he activated Sindra
Tensey, the push and pull of the two sides
canceled each other. He praised
as expected of Sasuke, in a short time
had mastered the use of Linegon.
Naruto told Minato and them to step back a bit
and told them to be careful. Sasuke's eyes have
abilities similar to his. Minato told
Naruto to concentrate on dealing with Sasuke.
Tobi handed it over to them. Orochimaru looked at team
Taka next to him and smiled, those old acquaintances
entrusted to him. At this time, Sasuke
used Rinegan to control seven impure Jinchūriki
in front of him. He arrogantly
said that dealing with Naruto absolutely did not
require him to act on his own. Naruto's eyes couldn't
stop. Although
was difficult to solve, this was also an opportunity for him to gather
all nine tailed beasts. Sasuke said confidently,
"You are now the strongest person in the
world." Having finished speaking, control seven
tailed beasts to attack together. A wave of heat
immediately came, a vibrating attack
of the Four-Tails. Naruto saw that, holding
Rasengan to greet him head-on. At this moment,
two-tailed Yujitoni shot a
Nzumiama straight at Naruto. The blue
bird turned into countless points of light, surrounding
with no dead ends. Killer B
clearly knew the power of this move, he shouted
loudly for Naruto to be careful. Naruto stood still
without moving, his eyes stopped, he launched
Xin Tens, the powerful thrust pushed
the entire Nzumi Tama away. Sasuke saw this and
commanded all the tailed beasts to come up. Killer
bi immediately stepped forward to support, he shot
a short sword at That Vi Phu,
but That Vi did not bother to turn around and instead bowed
his head to avoid the attack. Naruto explained
to him, among these Jinchuriki
shares Rinegan's vision, and
also has Saron's left eye, which can see
through their movements.
's strength can be said to have been significantly improved compared to
when he was alive, but what's even scarier is that
is behind. As he spoke, Naruto entered
Tai Sage mode and used Kawukumite to attack
Six-Tails. Although Luc Vi relied on Sarà to
avoid Naruto
's direct attack, he was directly sent flying by
Kawukumite's invisible attack. Tobi and
Sasuke were both surprised, is this the magic of the fairy
of Mount Mioboku? Suddenly
sand bullets attacked Naruto and them.
Naruto's eyes stopped. Isn't this
Sukaku's move? Why is
on this old man? Without
thinking too much, he used Vinegon to support
a protective shield in front of
everyone. At this time, the Eight-Tails told Killerby
to switch roles with him. It has something to say to
Naruto. The Eight-Tails reminded Naruto that Yujitoni had an iron bar on
's body. Sasuke
must have used this iron bar to control
these Jinchuriki. Naruto had
experience fighting tailed beasts in his previous
life. He naturally knew this,
just needed to pull out the black rods on
of their bodies to rescue the
tailed beasts. At this time, the seven Jinchuriki attacked
again. Six Tails blew out countless bubbles
floating in the air. Naruto told
Killer Bi to be careful, these bubbles
once touched will cause a fierce
explosion. Very quickly the two were surrounded by countless
bubbles, but with
's speed Naruto was not afraid of this move at all. He
glided through these bubbles as if hiding from
no one. Seeing this, Sasuke coldly
snorted, suddenly raised his hand, took
Naruto as the center of gravity, and used
Chibaku Tense. This is the advanced
use of Chibaku Tensi, no
need to create a ball of gravity to get Chakra
of the target as the source of attraction.
Naruto was a bit surprised, he didn't expect
Sasuke to even master the move he used
on Momosiki in the past. In the blink of an eye,
bubbles were sucked in by Naruto
's body, all surrounding Naruto.
This unexpected move made Naruto completely
unable to use the flying thunder god.
's body was immediately engulfed in
's explosion. After the smoke cleared, only
's head, covering Naruto, was destroyed. Although
was able to defend, this wave
had not passed before another wave had arrived. Around
suddenly flew countless powders that could cover
from sight. This is the chalk created by
That Tails. During the chaos, Two
Tails and Four Tails immediately launched a
physical attack. Fortunately, Naruto has the ability to sense
of immortal magic, and with his eyes closed, he can also
defend
's opponent's attacks. However,
passive defense is not the way, it is
time to counterattack. Naruto used Chakra
to grab the attacking two-tailed and four-tailed,
then used Rasengan to hit the place
where their iron bars were in their previous life. He discovered
that the Iron Bar was indeed still in the same
place. Naruto decided to destroy
it in one breath. Sasuke's eyes paused slightly, this
Naruto certainly knew the weakness of
these Jinchuriki. He immediately
commanded the five-tails to kick Naruto away. Naruto's
body finally flew back several
tens of meters. He couldn't help but admire that the steam
instantaneous explosive power was still as great as it was. In his previous life, when he fought
's
against Kawya, he relied on the
unparalleled strength of the Five-Tails, escaped
Kawya's confinement and directly faced
the opponent's attack. Kawya
was finally sent flying out. At this time,
Su Bien told Naruto to obediently accept
and hand over the Nine-Tails. As long as
of the lunar eye plan is completed, he can let it go
Naruto becomes Hokage in the world of
Sukuyomi. Naruto couldn't help but
laugh out loud, having experienced such a cruel future
, if he really had a dream
to make up for such regrets, it wouldn't be bad.
But in reality, the Moon Eye
plan was just a lie used to revive
someone. Tobi heard Naruto's
words and was a bit surprised. He suspected
or asked what Naruto meant. But before waiting for
Naruto to answer, Sasuke suddenly held
the Kusanagi sword and shielded it in front of
two people. He knew that if he let Naruto's
Koto Amasukami mouth continue to talk,
something would definitely happen. This
Sasuke actually has his own purpose.
While being used by Tobi, he is also
taking advantage of the other person. What he must
do is borrow Toby's power to
eliminate the current five kage, as well as
defeat Naruto. At that time, there will be
no one in the world who can stop him. At that
moment, he could shoulder the hatred and
hatred of the entire ninja world. From then on,
became the sole punisher of
the ninja world, thereby opening up a new
future without fighting. Karin, next to
, looked at Sasuke, not cold but trembling. She
had never seen Sasuke's huge and
cold chakra. Sasuke's
darkness now even surpasses
's attack on the five kage summit. At this
time, Naruto told Killer Bi to use Biju
Hachimaki to destroy this dense forest.
Because the enemy has many people and shares the same
vision, fighting in the forest is quite disadvantageous for
them. Bi very much agreed with
Naruto's idea, taking off his pieces and transforming into
his eight-fee form. Seeing that, Naruto immediately turned
into two nine-tailed chakra hands, taking
Orochimaru and Minato away from
temporarily. A giant tornado immediately
swept across the sky. Sasuke originally intended to use
Susanu to confront him directly, but Tobi did not
told him to temporarily dodge, then used
the space-time vortex to suck Sasuke and
Team Taka members into
Cami space. On the field there were only seven tailed beasts
that had been reincarnated by the defiled earth. After the
smoke cleared, Naruto led everyone back to the battlefield
. Orochimaru looked at the scene before
with endless compliments, he admired
for the power of the Eight-Tails. Looking at
the seven dirty Jinchuriki lying on the ground,
Kobi immediately used ink to turn
into a body to seal it. It seemed that
had succeeded, but the Jin Churiki suddenly broke
and broke the seal, entering the next form.
In the black circle next to him, Tobi and
Sasuke returned to the battlefield. Upon seeing
Naruto, Sasuke controlled seven
jinchuriki to attack together. Killerbi
saw that Naruto was surrounded and immediately advanced
to interfere with Sasuke. He shot a short sword
wrapped in Chakra towards the opponent,
but Sasuke did not bother turning around and
blocked the attack. Killerby saw
and couldn't help but admire how much Sasuke had grown
. Last time we fought
in Van Loi canyon. Although Sasuke could clearly see
Saron,
Killerby's movements through
's body had absolutely no time to react, and the whole process could be said to be
being beaten. Thinking of these things, Sasuke
turned around and decided to settle accounts with Killer
for the crimes he had suffered in the alley
of Van Loi Mountain. At this time, Orochimaru had moved
to Team Taka's side. He looked
evilly at the three
highest quality experimental objects in Nam Sua. Sujetsu saw that Orochimaru was so scared that
almost liquefied, he quickly said,
"Everyone just stand by and watch,
don't do anything." Orochimaru smiled and said, "He
has the same idea, as long as the three of them don't
interfere with Naruto's battle and they are
okay." Right now at the headquarters of the
Ninja Age Alliance, it's hot like fire. Mr.
knew very well the intense chakra flow just now
was undoubtedly caused by Killerby.
Ao reported on the situation on the battlefield
just now that Naruto and Killer B fought
against Sasuke and them. Currently, both sides
are saying that Chunade told Jikage not to
need to worry. Feta's Jira is already on
's way to support. Jaikage heard that and nodded
his head because he still
recognized Jira's strength. After all, it is always the
Kage level ninja of the leaf village that the male master
of the cloud village is most taboo against. Speaking of Jira, Jaikage
couldn't help but remember Naruto
's actions when saving Jira in the rain village before. How could a
16 year old child
find that position alone? Thinking of this,
Jaikage felt that Naruto seemed to be able
to see the future. At this time, Jira was
running, looking at the mushroom cloud in the distance, with a serious
expression. The strongest chakra of the
ninja world is concentrated there. He guessed that
Naruto must be in that place. Jira
accelerated and ran like crazy towards there. The two
teachers and students will soon meet again. At
at Akasuki Kabuto's base, you
had the Seven Swords of the Mist Village sealed away,
decided to send out a few trump cards.
He controlled Tiich Chukage blindly in the
desert, summoning the Fourth Kazekage,
Third Jikage and Second Mizukage. As soon as these four
people appeared, Tobirama was placed nearby by
Naruto, immediately sensing
Chara's abnormality. Hasirama
thought it was Madara coming, stood up and anxiously
asked Tobirama what happened.
Tobirama shook his head and said, "It's not that evil
Uchi Madara. It's a few
old acquaintances from other villages in the past.
He stood up and called Hasirama to join
in the battle. Because of the strength of the second Tichukage
and the second Mizukage. He knew that if he had to deal with
these people,
would definitely lose the most money. very seriously. Hasirama looked at
Naruto's clone standing silently
next to him, then said he should still listen.
Naruto's arrangement.
Naruto's shadow clone is also observing the
battlefield. In his previous life, he had stopped
the third kage here. He told the Hokage
not to be hasty. It's not yet
time for them to play, and at the same time tell them
not to worry. In the
alliance there are also many very strong ninjas. Although Tobirama
did not volunteer, big brother
spoke up so he had to wait more.
At this time, Gara, the person in charge of this area
, when the Kage had just been summoned
, used his sand eyes to detect them,
including his father. He immediately
turned around and informed the entire
alliance to be vigilant, and told Ninja
to report this information to headquarters.
Jika knew that even his father was impure
and burst out in anger. He stood up
intending to attack himself, but Onoki said,
"You can only deal with the blind Tichukage
only you."
Shikaku analyzes the battlefield
situation. Currently the
most difficult thing to solve is the four Kage-level ninjas on
Gara's side and Kim Giac and Silver Horn on
Darui's side. After some analysis, he came up with
a plan for Tichukage to go to
to support Gara, and Chunade to go to the
coast to support Darui. Chunade originally had this idea
because she had just learned that Katoan had also come back to life.
Shikaku then suggested sending half
of Gara's army to support Darui
and so that Gara could try to take the initiative in attacking.
Because he guessed Naruto definitely wouldn't
sit still and watch Gara fall into
dangerous situation. If the sealed Minato was on
's side next to Naruto, Shikaku speculated that the other Hokage
who were also sealed by the corpse demon must
have also been reincarnated and stood on
's side with Naruto. So these Hokages
must be somewhere waiting for the
opportunity. Jikage listened and praised Shikaku
for being the number one strategist of the leaf village.
He finally knew why Konoha
was always difficult to attack. He then ordered
for everyone to begin acting according to Shikaku's plan
. At this time, Kabuto was
in the desert defecating the kage of the
villages. After Gara discovered it, he immediately told
the entire alliance to be on alert. and make a
movement away from the burial ground towards the opposite
direction. Rasa's eyes couldn't help but
stop, before his eyes was the power of Sukaku
that he was most familiar with. He immediately placed both
hands on the ground, summoning a
large amount of Sak Kim. Sa Kim is heavier than sand
is the best method that Mr.
used to stop Sukaku from going crazy while
was still alive. However, when he raised
's head, he was surprised to discover that the person who created
of the sandstorm was not Sukaku but
Gara. Gara greeted with a fearless face,
"Dad, are you okay?" As soon as he finished speaking, he
controlled the sand, trying to grab these four
kags, of which only Ninja felt
Muu reacted the fastest, avoiding the sand.
Onoki saw that and immediately activated the ceiling
to enter the darkness. Seeing the disciple from the past, blind
marveled at the change of time,
simultaneously launched a dust release, the attack
of the two people ended up canceling
each other. After Rasa was freed,
exclaimed that Gara's cutting power was
stronger than before. He asked the opponent
Where did Sukaku go? Gara's
eyes were determined to say, "You are no longer the
Jinchuriki created by your father." Knowing that
Gara had been revived thanks to the help
of her friends and Chio, Rasa could not
calm down. He couldn't believe that Mrs.
Chio still had such a side. What
surprised him more was that Gara actually made
friends and became Kekage. Rasa
couldn't help but exclaim, this Earth Turning
birth impurity technique also seems to have some value.
After chatting, he decided
to personally verify Gara's value.
Gara, like his previous life, easily
defeated his father. Having looked through Naruto's
memories, he actually knew early on that
his absolute defense was actually
his mother's deep love for him.
And what my father did was actually for
the village. So in the end Gara chose
to forgive her father. After father and son cried
goodbye, Rasa had no regrets and flew
away. He believes that Gara is ultimately
determined to be able to successfully surpass any
Kajekage. Seeing that Gara had reconciled with
his father, Naruto's clone in the distance
from the battlefield smiled with satisfaction. He
knows that from now on, Gara not only has
friendship but also has the complete
love of his father and mother. He turned around and told
to the Hokages that it was time for them to go onto the field.
Before that, he had always been waiting for this battle
between Gara and Rasa because only Rasa could
give Gara the medicine to heal the most heartbreaking
wound. If Gara is already
rich inside, he cannot sit
still and watch his best friend fall into a
miserable battle. Naruto told Hashirama to remain
inside the barrier, waiting for Madara Uchi to arrive.
The Third and Tobirama, along with his
figure, set out to support the
alliance. At this time on the battlefield of
Naruto and Toby, Minato watched Tobi fall
to this point, he felt extremely
blame himself. that year did not recognize
the opponent, otherwise he would definitely
be able to pull the opponent back to the right
path in time, Naruto would not
have to grow up with expired milk. Tobi mocked
in vain Minato was the fastest
in the ninja world, every time he was at a critical moment
he didn't show up in time. As he spoke
he tied an iron chain to
's hands. This time he wants to reclaim the debt of
the Rasengan 16 years ago. Minato saw
so he split a clone and left
and the clone engraved with the flying lightning mark.
god over each other. Not realizing the
identity of the masked man was his mistake,
but Kusina did not deserve to be treated
so cruelly. Today he is also determined to
demand justice for Kusina here.
Having finished speaking,
Minato's body and clone, both left and right, rushed towards
Toby. At the same time, each person condensed
anan in their hands to attack Toby. Tobi has
Saringan, he can clearly see which
version of Minato is. The moment the three
people intersected, Tobi's palm captured
's exact essence of Minato. Camui's
vortex began to curl. He confidently
said he won this time. But right
the moment he sucked Minato in, Minato
before his eyes suddenly disappeared in
white smoke. Tobi's face was filled with disbelief
, he had clearly used Sarà to confirm that
caught was definitely the original. What Tobi
caught was indeed the main body, except that
Minato, in the moment before Toby
sucked in, simultaneously let the main body and part
perform the lightning magic
to instantly recover.
's main body and clone switched places in that
moment. At the same time, Minato's body launched a powerful
attack at Tobi. Rasengan hits
on Toby's back. Tobi technically lost
to Minato again. He staggered
up and said, "I still underestimate
Minato, and deliberately used a clone
that can usually be seen through by Sarine,
rather than a shadow clone. The
purpose was to let my main body act as a bait
to lure me into a trap? You really aren't a
tiger teacher." After Tobi finished speaking, he took off his mask,
revealed the eyes he had taken back from Kakashi and
said he would use these hoods to completely
put away the past. At this time at the headquarters of the
alliance, Shikaku, through Naruto's
recent actions, analyzed
an amazing result, which is that this
ninja war was most likely caused by Naruto.
intentionally allowed it to happen. Although
did not know what Naruto's purpose
was in the end, Shikaku guessed that Naruto persistently
kept everyone together
like that, most likely wanting to deal with
some enemy, and this enemy could not
be Tobi that Naruto could deal with, especially
was definitely someone that even he had no
way to do." As soon as these words were said, the
ninjas present all took a cold breath. At
at this time, Naruto's shadow clone
finally led the Hokage to join the
alliance's battlefield. At this time,
Jage and others controlled by
suddenly attacked the Alliance.
Faced with many Kage-level ninjas,
alliance immediately fell into panic
Suddenly, a figure appeared at the place
fought between Onoki and the blind Tichukage.
Onoki immediately opened his eyes wide. The person
turned out to be the second Hokage Senju Tobirama.
The blind Tiukage once again saw his old
opponent, he couldn't help but exclaim,
this world of ninjas is so ironic.
The Second Hokage was reincarnated by the technique he invented
...
. Tobirama couldn't help but feel a little excited. After all, he
and the second Tukage, along with the
second Mizukage, were all old acquaintances on the
battlefield. When he turned to look at
behind him, he discovered that the old
kid Rio Tenbin had changed again. into
like this. He couldn't help but feel
as if he had crossed over. He told
not to interfere because he and Tichuk Kage
Mu U still had some old matters to
look at with suspicion.
He thought Tobirama must be on
's side
likes to invent forbidden techniques. The
ninja world is now in chaos like
, knowing that reinforcements are coming,
immediately regains fighting spirit
At this time, Mu U launches Mujai to hide
body, Tobirama immediately squatted down,
put his hands on the ground to feel. But even though
he was
's ninja's top sensor, he still couldn't
detect the opponent's whereabouts.
He couldn't help but laugh coldly, it seemed that in the
days I wasn't here there was
some progress. The invisible Mu U quietly
approached Tobirama who was standing still,
then Mu U passed by with an assassination strike, directly
smashing half of Tobirama's body. Blind
U, after succeeding, was complacent, smiled
and said, "Tobirama is indeed old, but
Tobirama smiled confidently. He told Blind U
it would be best to look at his legs
and said he would teach him how to truly use unclean
earth to reincarnate." At this time, countless
explosive talismans continued
from Mu U's feet. Tobirama made seals with both hands, using
movements to support the explosion. Without
stopping using summoning talismans, countless
explosive talismans continuously focused on a point on
of Mu U's body and exploded. The ninjas on
's side were extremely surprised when they saw this scene.
everyone admired them and said, "As expected of
the legendary Second Hokage, even if Didara saw this technique,
...
would be ashamed." After the smoke cleared,
Tobirama signaled the sealing team to
the sealing field. Kabuto, at the distant
Akasuki base, saw that Mu U was about to be sealed, and immediately
controlled the third Jage not far away to
provide reinforcement. But Naruto
's shadow clone led Hiren to suddenly appear in front of
him and said that he was the opponent of the Third Jekage
. In the end, Mu U was sealed away by the sealing team because there was no rescue
. The
appearance of Naruto and Hirogen made
the ninjas even more confident. In it,
ninjas of the leaf village came forward
one by one to greet the third. After all, the Third Hokage is
the longest-serving Hokage, the younger generation of
Konoha all grew up under
's care, so he still has feelings for him.
special. Hirogen smiled with satisfaction and told everyone
to put their thoughts aside and fight
with all their might.
cannot be neglected like that on the battlefield. At this time, Gara came next to
Naruto asked him why he was here. Naruto
smiled and said, "This is just a shadow clone of
of you and told Gara to rest assured. The Hokages who were defiled by
were all my teammates, at the same time
told everyone to prepare, here
will soon appear the legendary fake ninja
. At this time at
the Alliance headquarters, news of Naruto and
Hokage appearing very quickly appeared.
came here. Jikage couldn't help but praise
that Shikaku was a genius, but
seemed to be missing the
First Hokage. Regarding this, Shikaku said
might be waiting for the appearance of someone,
...
who could very well be the legendary Uchi Madara Just like
...
in the previous life, in the confrontation with Jikage,
tam used sage magic to avoid
Jakage's attack and took advantage of
's attack to break
's lightning-lock armor. In the end, Jikage
was finally sealed by
Naruto. At this point, only Mizukage remained on the battlefield
...
Kabuto saw that the situation was not good and immediately let
Mizukage summon a large clam.
...
Kabuto took advantage of the chaos to escape the
...
alliance's pursuit The only remaining
...
...
on the battlefield summoned the most sensitive
coffin and immediately
frowned. It seemed that the last most hated guy
had finally arrived,
appeared in a different
way. He was finally revived
...
he laughed at Uchi's arrogance, but when
he discovered that he was reincarnated as impure
earth, his mood immediately
changed. The Mizukage saw Madara, with a serious
expression and said, "Unexpectedly, the person who was reincarnated by the defiled land
was Mr. Uchi Madara, the ruler
of the main country." Madara looked
unhappy and asked him, "Who is this person who cast
earth reincarnation?" Without waiting for
Mizukage to answer, Kabuto took over Mizukage's
consciousness, explained the reason
the incident to Madara and said that he was also
the one who knew the plan due to the pressure of
the Alliance, and could not help but use this method
to revive him. After hearing this, Madara despised
and often said, "It's just a bunch of sand and gravel"
, and even used
Tobirama's petty tricks, what exactly is that Tobi doing
? Suddenly Madara felt an
abnormality on his body. He pulled off his
armor, lowered his head to look, and discovered
Hasirama's face on
his heart. A strange smile appeared on
his face. This Kabuto seems to be
a good strategist, but he dared to summon me
, proving that he is just a
mouse who thinks he is smart.
At this time, the alliance kept moving towards
this direction. Madara glanced around
a bit and was a bit surprised. He
did not expect that the five great powers would one day
unite together, and among them
there were many
familiar faces. Onoki really couldn't believe it,
you who had left behind a ghost for him
his entire life had appeared once again. Tobirama
also gritted his teeth and looked at Madara's evil figure
. Madara also stared
at Tobirama, he would never
forget the person who took away his
younger brother Izuna. Only Naruto was calm, it was
time for the ninja god to appear. He used
Flying Thunder God to bring Hasirama hidden
inside the barrier. Just saw Hasirama,
Madara's cold face immediately
disappeared. He shouted Hasirama's name loudly. Meeting
his old opponent, Hasirama also smiled
excitedly. He had previously learned from Naruto
that after the battle at the Valley of the End,
Madara did not die but used dojutsu
Yanagi to escape and become the master
of the mastermind behind the destruction of the ninja world.
Now he told Madara to immediately stop
the crazy Moon Eye plan.
Madara listened coldly and said
that he and Hasirama were not compatible
. Seeing Hasirama, Kabuto in the distant
base once again punched the ground. How many
Naruto have left? Luckily, he prepared
unused trump cards does that
in advance to strengthen Madara's body.
Madara has now long surpassed
his peak strength. Naruto told
Gara and the third to go after the Mizukage.
Madara assigned to the first and Tobirama to
second. Madara was originally a top powerhouse,
in his eyes besides Hasirama, everyone
was dust, but the kid who was adding
the special effects below made
him feel extremely uncomfortable. Kabuto
controlled the Mizukage to explain to
Madara. He said this person was the
Jinchuriki of the Nine-Tails, named Uzumaki
Naruto. Your Rinegan is also
on him. Madara heard them
Uzumaki immediately frowned. So
is a member of the Uzumaki Mito clan? Madara
muttered while simultaneously forming seals with both hands to perform
the spirit movement technique. The abdomen of
Naruto's main body and all of
's shadow clones immediately felt intense pain.
The Nine-Tails said with a frightened face, "The ominous
chakra is trying to summon this old
guy, could it be that guy?" Naruto nodded
his head, although the time was a bit different,
but that man had finally
arrived. But he told Kurama not to worry
, no matter what happens, this time
no one can separate them anymore.
On the Alliance battlefield, Madara
slowly stood up and said that the Nine-Tails
was indeed still in the Jinchuriki's body, and Rinegan
was taken away again. What are Tobi and Nagato
doing? Okay, after sleeping in the car
for so long, if he woke up, Madara
decided to exercise his muscles a bit.
He jumped down from above, in the
alliance, only Onoki had ever come into contact with
Madara. His face was full of panic, telling
people to absolutely not look directly into
's eyes, just close their eyes and
will hit them a little lighter. At this time, Hasirama
caught up and blocked the Alliance. Mr.
told the ninjas to quickly retreat back.
Two old friends once again
reenacted the reincarnation battle just like
in their previous lives. Hasirama controlled Wood Dragon
to wrap around Madara's Susanu. He told
Madara to stop his plan, but
Madara roared and said, "This
world of shinobi can no longer be saved." As
spoke, he opened Susanu's true form and
said that this time he would not lose again.
Hasirama saw this, clasped his hands together and performed the
move man technique, the two
giants rushed into each other, colliding, creating an earth-shattering
explosion. Naruto's
clone from above quietly observed
this scene, he breathed a sigh of relief. With
Hasirama and others here supporting
, the situation here is considered temporarily
stable. Next, you should also go to
to support the first battlefield coast.
Because Naruto not only wanted to protect his
troops but also wanted to win quickly, trying to
try to minimize the casualties of the tens of thousands
white Jetsu. White Jetsu was
a precious resource to him. He
had a bold guess in his heart. In the end,
must rely on a large amount of
White Jetsu as tools to complete
. Now at Akasuki's base,
Kabuto is extremely angry because of the cards
was targeted by Naruto. He scolded
Naruto had almost calculated every step,
there were indeed no loopholes. In
anger, he decided to throw out all
of the chess pieces in his hand. Although some
people of the dirty land are not strong, they are still
enough to cause chaos on the entire battlefield.
A large number of white Zu plus the
Weak Earth army continuously appeared from the
sea, preparing to attack. The
ninja immediately entered a tense
fighting state. Suddenly there was a flash of lightning in the
sky, Chunade had arrived here using the sky sending technique
. The ninjas saw Chunade
come to their aid, and immediately increased their
confidence. Under Chunade's orders, everyone
began to fight. Suddenly,
Cato Giang of U Tho jumped in front of
Chunade. The two looked at each other,
Chunade was immediately stunned on the spot. Cho Ga
saw this and rushed to help
Chunade. Knowing that Chunade could have
fulfilled her Hokage dream,
Katô Gian was extremely surprised. After a short
conversation, Chunade dismissed
thoughts about her ex. She told Cho
Gia not to worry, Cato Gian entrusted
to her to deal with, and she could see her old
lover again. This Earth-purifying
reincarnation technique is also considered to have some
value. She told Kato Gian that she had
escaped from the darkness and found
someone who truly loved her. After hearing
, Gian was a bit stunned at first, then guessed that person
was Jira? Chunade happily nodded
her head. Since Jira was rescued by Naruto from the
rain village, the two of them fulfilled their promise
years ago and stayed together. This is also the time
she lost the happiest. Looking at Chunade's happy
face, Gian smiled
with satisfaction. He understands very well what kind of person Jiraia is like
, although he is a bit promiscuous,
is absolutely a responsible man
and will be devoted to Chunade. Sudden
Of course Kabuto ordered him, before
lost consciousness, he begged Chunade to
to stop him. Chunade happily
agreed, jumping up and kicking
down. Gian saw this and jumped into the air to avoid it, and at the same time performed the spirit transformation technique. This is a
...
...
S level jutsu that kills or controls an enemy's body regardless of
distance. Chunade clearly knew how scary
this move was, and quickly retreated
backwards. If you want to break this move, you can only
use a sealing technique similar to a zombie
that seals or destroys the person
who uses it. She dodged and quickly
approached Gian's dirty body.
Kabuto realized Chunade's intentions, immediately
controlled Gian's soul to speed up
and rushed from behind Chunade. Chunade instantly
widened her eyes and stood still in place.
The two appeared in a sparkling
galaxy. At this time, Chunade
's whole body was blinded and unable to move. Coming
in front of her, he raised his hand to stab down,
but his sense of self-control at this time
forcibly suppressed his girlfriend
's control. Because no matter what, he doesn't
want to hurt Chunade. Kabuto
couldn't believe it, he didn't expect that Gian's
love for Chunade could be
stronger than the binding power of the spell.
Chunade was deeply moved and bowed
to thank Katô Gian. Gian saw that
raised her hand to grab the large basketball
in front of her eyes, but Chunade couldn't
control herself and took two steps back and said that
was not good, she was afraid that Jira would
be angry. Gian awkwardly scratched his head, exclaiming
that in the end it was still the water that was close to being
a moon ahead. At this time, Gian suddenly disappeared in the mental space. It turned out that Naruto's
...
clone had created a
earth-destroying action to drain the fake Gian
's soul. Chunade looked at the space that was gradually disappearing
in the distance, tears falling, two people
said goodbye no longer regretfully. Naruto
felt that appearing in front of
was the Golden Horn and Silver Horn with
nine-tailed chakra. It's time to collect these two
scattered chakra streams. At this time, Samui's
team was fighting with these two
people. They saw that Asui was about to be touched by the
golden rope. Fortunately, Naruto's
body image promptly came to save him
. Darui saw Naruto coming and immediately relaxed
's guard, Silver Horn took the opportunity to slash
towards him. In an instant, Chunade's
strong kick blocked Nguyen Giac's
attack. The timely reinforcement
of her and Naruto raised the
morale of the alliance. Naruto looked at Kim
Giac and Silver Horn in front of him. In his previous life,
he and these two people did not interact,
but when practicing the Golden Body Technique, he
once felt the nine-tailed chakra that
the other person emitted on the turtle island. Kim
Horn and Silver Horn were also attracted by Naruto
. They took a glance and guessed that
Naruto was the Jinchuriki of the Nine-Tails. At this time, the
Nine-Tails in Naruto's body spoke up,
"These two people who were in its belly in the past
relied on eating its flesh to survive for two
weeks. At that time, it really suffered all the
torments. It told Naruto to teach them a
lesson." After hearing the Nine-Tails' words, Naruto
smiled faintly. "You confidently said to leave
to me." Samu saw that and immediately introduced
to Naruto the functions of the opponent's Six Paths Treasure
. After listening, Naruto vaguely
said, "In short, don't let the other
touch you." Having finished speaking,
Naruto created a Rasengan and rushed towards Ngan
Giac. Seeing that Naruto still had
Rinegan, Ngan couldn't help but feel a little shy. Seeing
like that, Kim Giac stepped forward to support, he
used a golden rope from behind to swing
towards Naruto. Naruto relied on his ability to sense
and received malice. Without turning back, he dodged
to the side and used his hand to condense Chakra
Rasengan to attack. Golden Horn could not make it in time
dodged, so he had to use a three-point fan to block
's body. After hitting the fan, Rasengan
created a whirlwind, pushing both of them
back. Silver Horn couldn't help but exclaim
that the Nine-Tails' Jinchuriki truly had
abilities. After a moment of analysis, Naruto
rushed forward again, as long as he grabbed
the golden rope in Kim Giac's hand,
would not be in danger of being sealed. He used
Chakra hand to connect with a Rasen Suriken,
then threw it towards the golden horn. Although Kim Horn
dodged it, Suriken
turned it back, cutting off his right arm with a
golden rope. Seeing that he had successfully been
snatched away, Naruto immediately took
Suriken and pushed the golden horn away at
close range. After flying a few dozen meters, the
white storm exploded. Seeing that his body was about to
break, Kim Giac had no choice but to release
Nine-Tails Chakra. Seeing the opponent erupt
with six tails, Naruto was a bit surprised.
To think they could steal
so much chakra from Kurama. But
without the treasure, the golden horn in
Naruto's eyes is just a mass of chakra
. At this time, the Golden Horn's tail attacked Naruto. Naruto dodged and
...
used his black stick to fix his tail on
the ground. The Golden Horn immediately roared and shot the tailed beast
bullets at Naruto. Naruto stood still,
just gently raised his hand to launch the ghoul
path, the tailed beast bullet immediately disappeared. Kim
Giac angrily rushed forward, but
Naruto with a shot of La Thien Trinh
pushed him away, then he jumped up and used
several black sticks to completely block him
to the ground. The Golden Horn as one
of the Nine-Tails' few scattered chakras.
Naruto eventually sealed him
in the Pure Peace amber sent from
headquarters rather than absorbing it into
's body. Because in the future, he will have to rely on
this scattered nine-tailed chakra flow to revive
the ten-tails. At the same time on the other side,
Chunade and Darui have now also accomplished
the task of sealing the silver horn into the
gourd. Naruto breathed a sigh of relief. The chakra
of this clone of yours was almost
depleted. At this time, Hinata and Neji had also
arrived here. Hinata, heartbroken, squatted next to
next to Naruto and asked about him. Naruto told her
not to worry, this was just an image of his
body, his current body was
still healthy. He told Hinata to stay by
's side. If Neji encountered great trouble, he would transfer
chakra into the Flying Thunder God seal
in his hand, he would sense it and appear
immediately. Hinata obediently
nodded. Now the enemy in the first battlefield
only had white Jessu
left and a few dirty ninjas. The
alliance's spirit was high and they were about to move forward to
fight the White Jesu, but Naruto
suddenly stopped everyone. Because
White Jessu is a precious resource
to him, he keeps it so that
can have big things in the future. Although Chunade did not understand
Naruto's intentions, she still ordered
the ninjas not to pursue. The danger
on the first battlefield has almost been
cleared, the remaining is Sasuke's side and
Madara's side. Naruto told this shadow clone to
the alliance headquarters location. A large number of
guards saw Naruto coming and immediately
stepped forward to stop him. Shikaku saw this and told
the guards to step back, because if Naruto wanted to
take the lives of people here, it would be
a matter of a blink of an eye. He guessed that the opponent must have come
here for some reason. Naruto's
purpose is to let this clone
stay here as a consultant. Because in his previous life
Tobi once controlled the Ten-Tails to throw bombs
here. He didn't want the tragedy of that time
to happen again. Naruto left the mark of Phi
Thunder God on each person and transferred
nine-tailed chakra to them. So as long as there is
tailed beast bullets to attack, this clone
can lead everyone to use Flying Thunder
God escaped. Shikaku watched Naruto
fall into a brief contemplation. After a while,
he seriously asked, "This war really
you predicted, and now
every move is under your
control, right?" As soon as
said this, Mabui and everyone present
took a cold breath. Naruto smiled and complimented that
was uncle Shikaku. He acknowledged Shikaku's
guess, but this was a
war that the shinobi world had to go through
to come to true unity. After this
war, the
world of ninja will open up a completely new situation, and at that time
the ninja world will also open up a real
enemy. After Naruto finished speaking, he thought Shikaku would
not believe it, but Shikaku believed
Naruto did not lie unlike
usually, because he trusted the eyes of
his son, Shikamaru. At this time on
the battlefield of Madara and Hasirama, two
people fought fiercely, constantly destroying
and destroying the surrounding terrain. Suddenly
Madara jumped back to a high place,
he said laughing loudly, he would show Hasirama
Rinegan's true power. Seeing the seal that
Madara made, a bad premonition
arose in Hasirama's heart, he shouted
loudly for Madara to stop. But Madara
didn't pay any attention, both his hands formed a seal to send
tremors. The next
second, a meteorite that covered the sky and covered the ground
roared forward. Seeing this scene, Hasirama's
pupils also shrank. While he was alive,
he had never seen Madara use
this jutsu. Is this the power of Rinegon
? Tobirama looked at this destructive stone attack and couldn't help but blame Uchi for being evil, indeed evil. Mr.
...
...
commanded the ninjas to quickly run back.
Madara looked at the chaos below
from above, feeling extremely happy. Suddenly
Onoki flew into the sky. He and his previous life
were like combining with sand
Gara intercepted the first meteorite.
Hasirama saw this and praised them for doing a good job,
but the second meteorite once again
rushed forward screaming. Seeing that Onoki on the
front line was in danger, Hasirama's
vines suddenly wrapped around
's waist to save him. Hasirama roared, performing
a super large card technique, a
hard wooden shield protecting the
layer ninjas inside. The moment meteorite
fell, everything was destroyed, turning
into a terrifying scene of chaos
, but even such an impact
could not break Hasirama's
card. Madara sighed in surprise
, how interesting. He looked at Hasirama
who was panting below, exclaiming that
he and Hasirama were still not
compatible, so let us unite
as one. Madara took advantage of Hasirama's
recovery, and quickly moved forward to peel
off his neck. Rinegan began to frantically absorb
Hasirama's chakra. But Hasirama
in front of him suddenly turned into a wood clone
, and Hasirama's body was already
standing behind Madara. Madara couldn't help but
look up to the sky and laugh loudly, the scene in
the valley at the end of the past could
appear once again, but this
thing was no longer important. He tore
off his shirt to reveal
Hasirama's face and said that
Hasirama's power he had already possessed. Hasirama
saw his face extremely surprised
, not expecting Madara because of his strength
did not hesitate to stab him on the chest. At this time
Tobirama also flew over, looking at Madara in front of
's eyes, he regretfully said, "At that time I shouldn't have
left behind Madara's body, it's just that
Madara's body is really too attractive."
Madara glanced at the ninjas who had regained
their fighting spirit. Although he
now has the Rinegan, his impure body
cannot function at all.
the true power of these eyes. Compared to
wasting time here, he wanted to find Tobi
to ask what happened, why
was Rinegan on that kid
Naruto. According to the plan, Rinegan is now
only available to Nagato. Madara once again formed
seals to trigger a fire of destruction
to deny. Taking advantage of the flames, he
gathered Susanu and ran straight towards
Tobi's Chakra. Tobirama saw this and led
to chase after him. Hasirama and the third and
others followed closely behind. At this
moment on the battlefield, Naruto and
Tobi, Killerbi and Minato are
fighting seven Jinchuriki controlled by Sasuke
. Naruto saw this and was about to move
up to support him, but Sasuke blocked
in front of him, saying that he was
's opponent.
Susanu's large sword slashed down, Naruto used his
Chakra hand to block it. Seeing that, Sasuke immediately
activated Than La Thien Trinh, the
force pushed Naruto and Minato along with
flying out. Naruto in the air
flipped around and adjusted his body. He
praised Sasuke for using Vinegan more and more
proficiently. Hearing that, Sasuke snorted coldly, used Saron to suddenly focus
...
on the falling Naruto and activated
Amerasu. Naruto's flaming cloak
The Nine-Tails isolated the black flames, the two
then began a fierce
physical duel. At the same time, seven other two-state
tailed beasts attacked
Killer Bi together. Killer Bi immediately fell into a
passive position. Luckily, Tobi didn't know why
just stood still. Minato saw that
Killerbi was in trouble and immediately stepped forward to
help the opponent. He attacked the Three-Tails
but the Jinchuriki had the ability to share
Rinegan's sight.
's attack finally missed. Chief coral of
Three-Tails counterattacked and hit Minato's back.
Stubborn coral clumps cling tightly
grandfather. Seeing Minato falling from
the air and about to fall into the lava of the Four
Tails below, he immediately pulled out a
Flying Thunder God Kunai and threw it into the distance, then
at the last moment flew to
next to that Kunai. But almost
the moment he landed, Toby's black
swirl appeared behind
him. Minato was startled, now he finally
knew why Toby had just
stood still, it turned out to capture the
moment when he revealed his vulnerability. Tobi knew
well that with Minato's speed, the only way to catch
the opponent was through
predicting the opponent's
prediction. At this time, Minato did not leave a
seal of the Flying Thunder God nearby, in his heart
secretly thought something was wrong. Tobi held out his hand to
shake Minato, and at the same time said coldly,
"Teacher, this time I win." But right
before the moment his hand was about to touch
Minato, a dark shadow suddenly appeared
, several sharp strands of hair pierced
Toby's body. A part of Jira
's white hair launched an attack, a part
simultaneously entangled the astonished Minato. Tobi
failed, snorted coldly, "Using teacher
as bait, waiting until I materialize
to launch an attack? What a
tough guy, worthy of Jira's three legendary ninja
.
Jira went west, at this time
finally arrived at Naruto. Seeing Jira coming, Minato
was extremely happy. After 16 years, the two
finally met again.
hugged each other. Naruto kicked Sasuke
away and shouted,
"Master, long time no see." And said that
appeared at the right time. Jira heard
let out a soft sigh
...
is mine. That's why when Minato
was in danger, Naruto didn't show
any emotion and continued to fight Sasuke.
Naruto saw that Jira had completely seen through
and grinned. At this time, Sasuke
also came to Toby's side, he sarcastically mocked Tobi
for being so incompetent,
just couldn't take such a good opportunity. Jira looked solemnly into Sasuke's eyes
. He
did not expect that the opponent could already
open the Rinegan. Looking at the tailed beasts
surrounding him right now, Jira couldn't help but
exclaim. It had been a long time since the war, but it was
the first time he had seen so many tailed beasts standing
together. Minato also
exclaimed that one day he could
fight with his teacher and Naruto. The medium
thanked Jira for taking care of
Naruto on his behalf during his absence and
for teaching Naruto ninjutsu as well as the ninjutsu
way of never giving up. Jira smiled and said,
"Minato said too much." Just as the three
teachers and students were chatting happily, the five-tailed
Kokuo once again launched an attack
. Naruto immediately took a fighting stance,
but at this moment the Five-Tails suddenly changed direction
and rushed straight towards Sasuke and them. Seeing this, Sasuke
immediately used a giant
purple chain to hit Five-Tails,
's body collapsed to the ground. Minato immediately
realized the problem, it seemed that with the further
evolution of the tailed beasts, the difficulty of
controlling them would also become more and more
difficult. At this time, Sasuke controlled
with one move and controlled the angry five-tailed Koko.
Naruto heard the cry of pain as
the five-tailed beast fell. He gritted his teeth and told
his opponent to endure a little more,
very soon he would free everyone
. Now the major battlefields have
gradually stabilized. Naruto dispelled each
clone, one of thousands of
clones scattered outside.
The dispersed chakra returned to
his body. The massive amount of chakra caused his
nine-tailed cloak to evolve further.
Sasuke gritted his teeth seeing this scene,
"Naruto, how
strong have you become?" Anger burned his mind.
Sasuke transformed all the tailed beasts
with one breath. Jira saw this and directly telepathized
to see the three toad brothers coming to the battlefield. As soon as Minato
saw Gama Bunta coming, he went
up to say hello. Bunta saw the fourth dead
and was extremely surprised. But what surprised
him more was the series of
rare animals before his eyes. He asked Jira
what this was all about? Can tailed beasts
appear together in one place? Jira said as
sealed, "There's no time
to explain right now." At this time, the immense lava
of the Four-Tails had arrived. Jira told Bun
to quickly use toad oil, while he stood
above and started a great disaster. A sea of fire
raged, but finally
was able to suppress Tu Vi's lava
attack. At this time, Sasuke told
all the tailed beasts to stand together and condense the tailed beast
bullets. Killerby saw this scene and thought
was not good, he asked Naruto next to him what
should do. Naruto smiled faintly, the opportunity to practice
to combine all nine tailed beasts had come. He put
his hand on his stomach and shouted, Kurama, let's
come on. Yellow chakra burned on
of his body. Naruto also transformed into a tailed beast, the Nine-Tails
had not been out for a long time, let out an earth-shattering
roar, then
condensed a tailed beast bullet, neutralizing
the attack that Sasuke shot. What Naruto
had to do was to pull out all the
black sticks on the tailed beasts in one breath. After a
period of observation, Naruto quickly
revealed the locations of all the black sticks.
He simultaneously stretched out seven chakra hands
to grab the black stick. Seeing this, Sasuke was about to
burn Susanu to destroy
Naruto's plan, but his Rinegan suddenly
sent a fierce pain. Since
his Rinegan had just been opened not long ago,
the time it took to control seven tailed beasts
in battle was already his limit. Copy
his body basically cannot distract
from fighting Naruto anymore. Seeing that, Tobi
intended to step forward and intervene with Naruto,
but Jira soon saw through
's intentions. At this time, he entered the
immortal state. He smiled and said to Toby, "Don't
disturb Naruto's battle." Tobi was angry
and tried to use the cam to twist the opponent's head,
but the white hair controlled by Jira
seemed to have its own consciousness, each time
moved to block his face.
Toby's cam can't chase
him at all. Suddenly, Minato appeared behind
Toby. He smiled and said, "Don't
leave your back to the enemy so easily." The powerful Rasengan
crashed down, and Tobi was forced to enter a
penetrating state. His face under
mask had a stern expression,
wanting to get rid of Minato and Jira was clearly
not an easy task. At this time, Naruto
once again entered a mental
space, appearing before his
eyes were seven tailed beasts. Only Jinchuriki
recognized by the tailed beast can come to
here. As for this place, Naruto is not far
strange. In his previous life, he had been to this
spiritual place once. Under the introduction of
the Nine-Tails, Naruto quickly got along with
everyone. Before the main conversation,
he pulled the Eight-Tails here again. At this point,
the nine tailed beasts were finally
gathered. Naruto stepped forward, stretched out his hand, signaling
everyone to join him in fist bumping. At this time
there is fierce fighting outside.
Although the time here and outside
are not the same, Naruto
doesn't dare to waste a single second or
minute. Seeing the Nine-Tails and Eight-Tails
's fists stretched out first, the other tailed beasts also
placed their hands on each other in turn. The moment
all the fists touched each other, memories
of Naruto's past life rushed into
the minds of the tailed beasts. Seeing everything, the
tailed beasts were at first surprised, then they all bloomed
laughed, but in the end remained silent without
speaking. Naruto retracted his fist and wiped
from his eyes. Every time he reminisced, it felt
like he was experiencing a tragedy. At that
time, everyone marveled that it was possible to
travel through time, and that that tribe had
such a strong body. Jinchuriki of the Seven-Tails
Fuu asked suspiciously, "Isn't Sasuke in
with Naruto? Why is Sasuke on
's side now an enemy?" Naruto
told everyone not to worry, right now
because everything is still in
's plan. To deal with the
Osatsuki clan's invasion, he needs to unite the entire
ninja world. Sasuke will finally
be their teammate. Knowing that Naruto
was the blond-haired, blue-eyed boy that Elder Dao
had talked about, before death,
everyone took turns transferring part of their
chakra to Naruto. At this point,
Naruto finally gathered enough chakra
of the nine tailed beasts. After saying goodbye to everyone
, his consciousness returned to
outside. The Nine-Tails shouted loudly, pulling out
all the black sticks on the bodies of the
tailed beasts. Sasuke immediately lost
control over the tailed beasts. Tobi saw this scene
came to Sasuke's side and told him to quickly summon
the pagan demon statue. Sasuke immediately
summoned the demon statue of the outsider and sucked these seven
out-of-control tailed beasts inside.
Suddenly Kakashi and Gai also arrived
here. Seeing Sasuke standing on the opposite side,
Kakashi scolded him for falling
down. Hearing that, Sasuke smiled contemptuously,
pointed at Tobi next to him and told Kakashi that
should tell his old classmate
, after all, the time Tobi fell
was longer than him. Tobi heard that, coldly
snorted, took off his mask and threw it aside.
These things are no longer important
, because he has completely cut off
the past. He took out three boxes containing
nine-tailed chakra from the orange space, then gave them away
the pagan demon statue ate and taught Sasuke
the ten-tailed resurrection seal. With Sasuke's
magic seal falling, the pagan
demon statue immediately held its head in pain. Seeing this, Naruto
couldn't help but stop.
This was the prelude to the Ten-Tails'
revival, but he had no intention of
preventing the Ten-Tails' revival. Because when
giving birth to Kaguya was also part of his plan
. You need to confirm many
things with Kaguya, a member of the uki clan. Suddenly
, a figure fell
from the sky and landed next to Tobi. The person who came was
Uchi Madara of the unclean land. Naruto saw
Madara come and let out a soft snort, the trouble
finally appeared. Jira
and the others saw Madara in the
legend and were extremely surprised. Madara
glanced at the struggling demon statue next to
, then turned his head and laughed mockingly. Tobi
seemed to be having fun. Tobi dressed solemnly
threw the fan back in his hand to Madara.
Sasuke glanced at the person in front of him,
Corinegan could still suppress Toby. In
he roughly understood that the person in front of him
was Uchi Madara. Madara at the same time
also looked towards Sasuke Rinegan plus
with the eternal Mangky Saron. Moreover,
's grandmother looks a lot like his younger brother Yzuna.
He couldn't help but praise Tobi for finding a
good helper. Right now
's Vinegon is in the hands of someone else. If he wants to
restore his body and flesh, he can only
go through this kid. At this time, suddenly
four figures fell
from the sky, the ones who came were the previous
Hokage chasing Madara. As soon as Jira saw his third
coming, he quickly stepped forward to greet
the other person. When Orochimaru invaded the
leaf village, he was not in the village, it was always
a pain in his heart, now finally
can meet again. The second person in doubt
asked the third person who is this person? Jira immediately
regained his posture to greet Tobirama and
Hashirama. Knowing that Jiraia turned out to be the third disciple
, Tobirama nodded with satisfaction,
praised the third for recognizing him as a very excellent disciple. Before
there was Orochimaru who had achievements in scientific
research, now there is Jiraya, a disciple
who has achievements in senjutsu. Receiving
's greetings from his seniors, Jira shyly
scratched his head. Looking at the pagan demon statue
going crazy, Hasirama asked Naruto if
was the ten-tails? Naruto explained
to him that it was just the shell of the Ten
Tails, very soon the real Ten
Tails would be reborn . Madara looked at Naruto's body, his face
solemn. There aren't many people in this world who
can make him feel a little
threatening, but the feeling of oppression that
Naruto gives him is hard to
describe. He couldn't help but grit his teeth,
reprimanding Tobi for doing that,
why did he deviate from the plan as much as
? Tobi looked unconcerned. Suku
Eternal Yomi tonight will definitely become
a reality. Seeing the three evil Uchi, Tobirama
couldn't bear it anymore. He told Hasirama
not to talk too much to the enemy anymore. He
aimed at the pagan demon statue,
teleported immediately through concentration to launch
magic to support the explosion. But Tobi
immediately launched the Uchi Fire Formation to surround
around the demon statue. Tobirama had to abandon
the plan. He turned around and asked Naruto what
was going to do next. Naruto told everyone
to wait a moment, he wanted the Ten-Tails
to revive. Hearing these words,
people present were full of doubts. At
this time in the wilderness of the Fire Nation,
Itachi and Kisame and Shisui followed
the information provided by Naruto, and finally
successfully found
Kabuto's hiding place. Sisui from above carefully felt
the situation inside the cave. He
could clearly sense a barrier,
which was feared to be
Kabuto's location. Itachi and Shisui make a plan
combat. In his previous life, Kabuto was captured by
Itachi by sacrificing one
eye to activate Isanami. And this time
has Shisui's Koto Amasukami, wanting
to conquer the opponent will not be as difficult as
. After analyzing the terrain, the three
of them decided to attack Kabuto from
three angles to prevent the enemy from escaping.
In it, Kisame broke
's barrier from the front to attract the attention of the
opponent. Itachi and Shisui attacked from two different
directions. After planning
, the three people started taking action.
Kabuto saw Itachi and
Kisame coming and smiled disdainfully, but when
he saw Shisui, he immediately showed
surprise. Immediately pulling up his hood to cover
his eyes, he exclaimed that he could
see the owner of the strongest genjutsu
Koto Amatsukami. Sisui stepped up and looked at
Kabuto, asking Itachi if this was the person
was looking for? Itachi nodded. He told
Siis not to be subjective, the other person was no longer
the little henchman next to
Orochimaru in the past, but a
dangerous person who holds all kinds of forbidden
magic. Kabuto clearly knew
Itachi's purpose and they came here to perform the
Weak Earth Reincarnation Technique. He regretfully told
to Itachi that even if he killed him, this technique
would not end. Having finished speaking, he
laughed proudly. Hearing that, Sisui smiled and said,
"Any jutsu before
's eyes will become dull." Kabuto was
angry and controlled the large snake next to him to attack
. Siis burned half of Susanu's green
body, divided into four arms, directly
grabbed the four snake heads and tore them off.
Itachi saw this and told Shisui not to act
too harshly. Naruto said trying to keep
of his opponent alive. Shisui told him
not to worry, this guy had inherited Orochimaru's
legacy, and would not be
destroyed so easily. Kabuto heard Shisui's
words and couldn't help but laugh sinisterly,
he smiled and said that he was now different
from Orochimaru, he had now surpassed
Orochimaru transformed and sublimated into a dragon.
As he spoke, Kabuto entered the fairy state
of the Riuchi cave, and the huge
senjutsu Chakra immediately swept over Itachi and the three
of them. At the same time, Kabuto also temporarily
severed his optic nerve
to prevent them from performing magic tricks. Then, he
formed a seal with both hands to launch the white magic
attack technique. The small white dragon transformed by
fairy power attacked
Itachi and them. Itachi and Shisui immediately
each burst into Susanu. After exploding, the white dragon
immediately emitted a fierce sound
and light. Under this
disturbance, Shisui and they immediately had their chakra
chaotic, unable to even maintain
Susanu anymore. Seeing this, Kabuto quickly
stepped forward to attack, but a
water javelin technique suddenly surrounded Itachi and
Shisui. Kisame due to the characteristics of shark
is not affected much. Kabuto immediately
stopped, he did not expect that there was someone who
could resist the white halberd technique.
He immediately continued to activate
fairy magic, inorganically reincarnated, the ground and
cliffs on both sides immediately turned into countless
sharp spikes, stabbing towards Itachi and them. Luckily
by this time the sound and light had
weakened, Itachi activated Susanu to block
all attacks. Suddenly, more than 20
Sisui appeared from nowhere surrounding
Kabuto. This is Siisi's illusory telekinesis
. Each clone has
no weight, no
shadow, but has the same attack power
as its main body. Kabuto tries to attack these
clones of Sisui, but
misses each time. After a short
exploration, he understood that these clones
only materialized at the moment of
attack. He is certainly a close friend, but he dares to face it alone
...
The three powerful Kage-level ninjas in front of us, of course
have been prepared for a long time. Right when
more than 20 sisui simultaneously threw Suriken towards
towards Kabuto, Kabuto suddenly made a seal with both hands
to trigger the filthy earth reincarnation. A
coffin suddenly broke through the ground,
shielding Kabuto from the incoming
suriken. With the
coffin lid lowered, the person inside
could be a man wearing green
clothes. Seeing this, Kisame immediately
widened his eyes. He thought it was Mai Wy
who was reincarnated from the dirty earth. After looking
closely, he discovered that it was a man
very similar to Wi. Itachi's eyes
couldn't help but stop, the person in front of him was Mai Wi's
father. Mai Duy. With Duy
gradually recovering his vitality, Itachi was able to
clearly detect that the opponent's body
might have blood flowing instead of
simply having a dirty body. Cabuto raised his face
up to the sky and laughed loudly, this was the body that he
had spent a lot of effort to transform,
in particular could make Mai Duy's impure body
reincarnate also have blood. He
asked Itachi if he knew what
that meant? Itachi could not guess
Kabuto's entire purpose, but Kabuto did
so that Duy could open
the eighth door of the Eight Doors of the Death Gate.
With Duy opening the seventh door, Sutra
Mon, the cave immediately began to collapse.
Everyone avoided kicking and went
outside together. Because it is an impure body,
Bat Mon Do Giap's weakness has been completely
overcome. A blue shadow teleported
past, a powerful kick from Mai Duy kicked
Kisam away. Itachi burst into flames. Susanu threw
Yasaka Magatama at Duy, but
's speed was really too fast. Duy
easily dodged the attack, and at the same time
punched Itachi's Susanu. The
layer of skeleton armor immediately appeared a few
cracks. Kabuto saw that and immediately fell
added fuel to the fire, controlling the unique move
of That Mon. Itachi's Tiger
Susanu was finally broken,
his body also suffered several
injuries. Suddenly, Sisui's large green
sword stabbed towards
Kabuto. Kabuto's body immediately turned
into a large number of white snakes that scattered
on the ground. Itachi took advantage of the empty
space when Kabuto controlled the launch of
Amerasu to burn Mai Di's body, the
black fire bit by bit the size of
Di's body. But at this moment, Duy's body was filled with blood-red steam. Itachi and they
...
stared in amazement at the figure
surrounded by blood-red steam.
This chakra intensity. What's the joke? A powerful
chakra storm dispelled the
black fire of Amerasu on Duy's body. After a
roar, Duy officially entered the eighth level
state of the Eight Gates of Armor. Seeing the
panicked faces of the transcendent geniuses
before him, Kabuto looked up to the sky and laughed
loudly. A blood-red storm arose over
the battlefield. Duy quickly ran
towards Itachi. Itachi was surprised to completely release Susanu
. Susanu immediately
transformed into Karasu Tengu form with the
highest defense ability. Duy jumped
into the air, jumping directly onto
Susanu's head. The strong and mighty statue of Icicle
crashed down. Itachi's foothold immediately
crumbled. He and Susanu were swept away by the air wave
and sank deep into the ground. Siis worriedly
shouted Itachi's name loudly. After the smoke
cleared, only Itachi could be seen standing firmly in the deep
hole with the Yata mirror. Kabuto saw that
couldn't believe it, he didn't expect that the divine weapon
in the legend of the Yata mirror had
the ability to block
's attack. Although Itachi blocked
this attack, the power of President Xiang still
made his whole body hurt like broken bones.
physical magic could be cultivated to
this level. Just as Mai Duy was about to
launch an attack again, Kis Me
suddenly launched a massive water pulse
, an oval water ball appeared
from nowhere, enveloping everyone
. Then a large number of sharks delayed
Yakushi Kabuto and Mai. Kisame transformed
into shark form with terrain advantage,
immediately took Itachi and Shisui away. But before
could escape from the water ball,
the water ball shattered along with
emitting more gas. The huge amount of chakra turns
into a dragon form, this is the
most powerful move of the Eight Gates. Kabuto
couldn't help but laugh out loud, this is
art. Duy turned into a dragon and rushed
straight down, seeing that he couldn't escape
. Itachi pulled everyone behind him,
once again burned Susanu and
once again placed the Yata mirror in front of him.
Duy Chinh's powerful kick kicked
into Yata's mirror. Yata's mirror flashed
with strong light, which could hinder
Duy's progress. But Duy
's aura was sky-sharp, and with him
advancing and advancing again, the mirror surface of
Yata's mirror created a strong
spatial distortion, turning into an effect similar to
like a ca smell. Finally with a loud
explosion, the invincible myth of the
strongest defensive ability of the Yata mirror
was shattered. Without
the protection of the mirror surface, Susanu behind
was destroyed in the blink of an eye. But almost
at the same time, Kisame quickly blocked
in front of Itachi Duy and finally kicked
in his chest. His chest bones shattered
in an instant, his internal organs as well as
the broken kite flew out. If it were a normal
person, he would definitely die right on
spot. But the more Sam encountered, the stronger
became, relying on the huge amount of chakra that
had previously absorbed in Sam Eada,
finally perfectly repaired his body.
me. Kabuto thought he was sure of
's victory and went forward to check the battle situation
, but after the smoke and dust cleared, only
saw Itachi using the Tosuka sword
to pierce Duy's body. Kabuto hastily
intended to control Duy to launch an attack
again, but due to the sealing effect
of the Tosuka sword, Duy had already
soon recovered his consciousness. Kabuto
was anxious to remove Duy
's impure land to summon him again, but at this time a
hand suddenly landed on him. Kabuto
suddenly turned his head, only to see Sisui's
eyes staring at him.
Although Kabuto had severed his optic nerve
, he did not know that
Koto Amasukami under Shisui
's condition touched the opponent. Even without looking
into Shisui's eyes, Koto Amasukami can still have
effect. Kabuto has the ability to sense
super strong, tried his best to escape
but it was too late. With
Koto Amasukami being activated, Kabuto
immediately lost his spirit. Siis ordered
, "From today onwards, obey my orders
, live to protect this world of shinobi
." Kabuto was immediately changed to
consciousness of this real world, becoming
a general of Fen Naruto. Kisame
saw that Kabuto's attitude suddenly changed
180 degrees and was a bit scared. The man
with the strongest genjutsu was indeed famous
. At this time, Itachi stepped forward and told
Kabuto to dispel Uchi Madara's unclean earth reincarnation technique
, and the remaining army of undead
ordered them to stop fighting.
Kabuto nodded and said no problem.
With the magic seal falling, Madara
on the battlefield suddenly lit up.
Madara looked at his entire body emitting
light, and couldn't help but praise that Naruto's side also had
not bad ninjas. But this
cannot do anything to him. He turned around
and said contemptuously to Tobirama below,
forbidden magic cannot be invented
arbitrarily. Having finished speaking, he and his previous life were like
triggering the transformation of the filthy earth,
Madara's body, which had been shattered, was
reunited again. Tobirama saw that
gritted his teeth, he scolded Madara, this evil
Uchi could dare to solve
his favorite jutsu right in front of
himself. Hasirama looked at
Tobirama in surprise, then asked him if the dirty earth
reincarnation technique could still be used like that?
Naruto sighed when he saw this scene.
Today you learned why in your previous life
after Itachi dispelled the impure earth technique
and reincarnated, why was Madara still
able to be on the battlefield? At this time, the
demon statue in front of everyone's eyes
finally evolved into a ten-tailed beast. Madara
and Sasuke and Tobi jumped
together on the ten-tails. Tobi was not surprised that
Madara was able to escape the
control of the impure land. Seeing that the most important
thing is how to grow the divine tree,
has his own plan in his heart.
Naruto saw that the Ten-Tails had been revived, the plan
in his heart was
half completed. To revive Kawagya, someone must
become the Jinchuriki of the ten
tails. Naruto had no hope that
Sasuke would take the risk. At this time, Sasuke commanded
to command the Ten-Tails to fire tailed beast bullets at
Naruto and them. Naruto quickly sealed
a space-time barrier
in front of his body. He used the space-time ring
that Minato taught
to transfer this tailed beast bullet to the far sea.
Madara's eyes couldn't help but stop,
praised this kid Naruto as quite interesting. If
can be born earlier than Tobi,
will certainly be a better choice than Toby. After a
fierce battle, Sasuke was finally
still no match for Naruto.
Naruto's goal of reviving the Ten-Tails has
been achieved, Sasuke has also been trained
worthy. He tried to convince
Sasuke to return to his side, but
Sasuke flatly refused
Naruto's invitation because he also had
's own plans. In order for this
ninja world to achieve true
peace and solidarity, the only way is for him
to become an immortal and the only
enemy of the five great powers. Therefore, he
intends to become the Jinchuriki of the Ten-Tails to
achieve eternal immortality. Looking at
Sasuke like that, Naruto knew that even at this moment
he had to hold fists with the other person to
share future memories. With Sasuke's
personality, the opponent will definitely think
that Naruto is making it up. He told Sasuke not to
rush to make a decision, to wait
after meeting someone before talking. As soon as he finished speaking, four figures
suddenly fell behind Naruto.
The people who came were Itachi and Shisui along with
Kisame and Kabuto. Sasuke immediately had
's pupils constricted and asked Itachi in disbelief why
was here? Itachi did not rush to answer
Sasuke's question but first reported to
Naruto about what happened at
Kabuto. As Naruto saw, Kabuto was captured by Shisui's
Koto Amasukami.
Naruto gave Itachi
and them a thumbs up. Madara crossed his arms over his chest,
looked at the two juniors of the Uchi clan below,
his intuition told him that the two
below must have real strength, if they could give birth to
earlier than Tobi, that would be good. To bi disdain
often laughed, mocking his ancestor
for not having eyes to see, and at the same time said
to Madara, "The two people below have already
died a long time ago, the reason why
is still standing there now, is most likely Naruto's doing."
Madara heard that, the corner of his mouth raised
in a smile. He became more and more interested in
Naruto. He originally thought that the other person was as innocent
as Hasirama, but now it seems that
is even more so. At this moment, Sasuke's voice
once again broke the tense atmosphere
on the battlefield. He roared and asked
Didn't Itachi hear what he said?
He once again asked Itachi why
appeared here and was not reincarnated as an impure
earth but as a flesh and bone body.
Although Sasuke's face was full of disbelief
, inside he couldn't hold back his joy
. He had confirmed many times through
Rinegan and Saren, the person in front of him was absolutely
Itachi. Itachi looked at Sasuke
and smiled and said, "You actually died in the
battle with me, later for some reason
Naruto revived you." Sasuke
frankly told Itachi that he knew
everything about him. He asked Itachi
if there was nothing to explain?
Siui next to him walked up and smiled and asked Sasuke
do you remember him? Sasuke heard
look towards Sui, after a moment of thinking,
showed an unbelievable expression. No
expected that even Uchi Sisui would be
born again. He once again angrily asked
what
Itachi was hiding from him. Itachi turned his head to look at Naruto
behind him. Naruto nodded at him, signaling Itachi to tell Sasuke the truth about their clan. Itachi took a
...
...
deep breath and then launched dojutsu
at Sasuke. Sasuke did not use Rinegan to
resist but directly accepted the genjutsu
that Itachi performed on him. In
the world of Sukuyomi in the past, the image that he
had experienced countless times once again
appeared. Only this time it's no longer
the memories modified by Itachi, but the whole
truth about the destruction of the U Chi Ha clan.
Seeing the scene of his parents saying goodbye to Itachi,
Sasuke now realized that even
his parents were willing to die for him. With the end of the
...
genjutsu, Sasuke stood stunned in
place, his heart could never calm down
, the truth made it
difficult for him to accept. He questioned Itachi hi
...
was born for the village like that? Because in his eyes, Konoha is not
worth Itachi risking his life to protect like
is. Itachi was silent for a few seconds then spoke
. No matter how much darkness and conflict
the village has, I am still Uchi
Itachi of Konoha. Sasuke was immediately
immersed in thoughts about the past, his
mind was spinning. A moment later, he told
to Itachi that he could understand and
forgive him, but he could not
forgive Konoha, the place that tortured the
brother he loved the most and took
everything from him. Hearing that Sasuke was still
determined to destroy Konoha, Tobirama
immediately became angry and said indignantly that he would personally
eliminate this evil Uchi kid right
on the spot. Madara, who was next to him, listened to what
Sasuke said and only smiled faintly, in his heart
silently praised Sasuke for being a not
bad kid. He told Sasuke not to waste any more words on those
supporters of that fake world,
just need to move forward with them and implement
the moon eye plan to end
this fake world. Regarding this,
Sasuke doesn't think it's right. He believes that
the Moon Eye plan is
just a magic trick after all. With his current
strength, he only needs to use the ten-tailed
behind him to defeat those who stand in
's way in front of him to truly change the
world of this fake world. After
finished speaking, he took the initiative, raised his hand
towards Madara and said, "So, Madara,
do you want to cooperate?" Looking at the hand
Sasuke extended, Madara was a bit bewildered,
did not expect that he would become the object of
's manipulation. But he laughed at Sasuke
who was still too naive. If
refused to obediently cooperate, he would have
to start another plan. As soon as Madara
finished speaking, Sasuke suddenly painfully hugged
his heart. The next second, a large amount of
black matter spread throughout his body.
It turns out that when Sasuke implanted
Hasirama cells, Obito gave Kabuto a control charm
into Sasuke's heart. At the same time
Obito formed the seal, he made a quick attack
intending to take Sasuke's Rindegan.
Sasuke saw that, suppressed the intense pain,
activated Than La Thien Trinh, but this
attack could not attack Obito who was in
penetrating state. Seeing this, Itachi
was worried and wanted to rush to help, but Madara
blocked him. After Than La Thien Trinh's
thrust ended, Obito
easily took Sasuke's Rinegan.
Itachi gritted his teeth and looked at Sasuke who was
writhing on the ground in pain. Next to
Naruto did not make any movement, just
calmly standing in place. A moment later, he
told Itachi not to worry, Sasuke would
be fine. Sasuke held his eye sockets, scolding
Obito for daring to secretly kiss
him. Obito held Rinegan's bloody
eye in his hand and replied to Sasuke, "I also want
to prevent anything from happening. After all, the
Moon Eye plan cannot have even the slightest
mistake." The truth also proves that
Sasuke did not sincerely cooperate with Obito
and his companions but had
's own calculations. At this time, Obito removed the eye that
once gave to Kakashiza. After carefully storing
kidneys, he inserted Sasuke's Rindegan.
Due to Hasirama's cells, he very quickly
completed the visual connection of
Rinegan. Madara saw that Obito had succeeded
and immediately stepped forward to tell Obito not to forget
their plan. Obito coldly told
to rest assured, then turned to Naruto
and said, "The real battle begins
now." Suddenly, Naruto's
Rasengan attacked. Obito
reacted extremely quickly, immediately launching
Than La Thien Trinh's Rasengan
standing momentum. But at the same time, another
Naruto quickly took Sasuke under
ground. Obito's eyes couldn't help but stop
again. Using a clone to secretly attack me is
fake, is using your body to save Sasuke the real
? Naruto hugged Sasuke and flew
back to Minato's side, then he used Rinegan's
strength to remove the curse in
Sasuke's body. Shisui and Itachi saw that
quickly jumped over. Itachi worriedly hugged
and Sasuke asked, "Are you okay?"
Sasuke remained silent and did not answer. Sisui
watched Naruto fall into thought. Judging by
Naruto's recent moves, stopping
from preventing Obito from taking Vinegan from Sasuke is absolutely
not a difficult task. Could it be that Naruto
intentionally let Obito take action? Thinking of this,
Sisui couldn't help but take a breath of cold air.
At this moment, Obito roared, trying to use
the thrust to blow away
Naruto's clone, but Naruto's body was still
strong against the thrust. A hand
of chakra suddenly appeared from behind
Naruto, directly tearing apart the thrust ring
of Than La Thien Trinh. Obito couldn't
believe that just a shadow clone could
be able to fight against God La Thien
Trinh. Naruto laughed, he had never
ever said he was a clone. A lightning-fast
punch directly sent the bewildered
Obito flying out. This punch
, you fight for Sasuke. Obito stood
up, a smile curled up at the corner of his mouth.
did not expect that the person supporting him was Naruto's
body. At this time, Madara came
next to Obito, he told Obito to quickly carry out
's plan to revive him. Hearing that, Obito
smiled scornfully, the moon-eyed plan he
will definitely carry out, only
the person who carries it out must be himself.
Madara was not surprised by Obito's answer
. Anyway, Uchi is mostly
a traitor, and he himself has
a trump card, so he decided
to temporarily stand by and see how Obito plans to play this
play. Obito turned to face
Naruto, he could see Naruto seemingly
has achieved some goal, this moment
is finally about to strike.
Naruto smiled faintly, "The time is ripe,
it's time to clean you up." At this time,
The Shinobi Alliance and the five Kage in charge of
came here one after another. On the
battlefield, everyone is fighting fiercely with
small clones of the Ten-Tails. Obito
looked at the ninjas of the five great powers
who were united, and couldn't help but sink into
thoughts. In this world of despair,
no matter how much you struggle, it is useless. He
, in order to attack Naruto's beliefs, fired
a tailed beast bomb towards the
alliance headquarters. But Naruto did not
panic. Just as the tailed beast bomb
was about to fall, several people wearing red cloud cloaks
suddenly appeared above the headquarters.
The people who appeared were Nagato,
Conan and their gang. Nagato used the super spirit
La Thien Trinh to slow down the falling speed of the
tailed beast bomb, then opened both hands to release
the hungry ghost path. The tailed beast bomb was swallowed
at a speed visible to the naked eye.
Madara suddenly stood up
on the battlefield, looked in the direction of the falling tailed beast bomb,
he could feel someone
using his eyes to release kinetic energy
. The corner of Madara's mouth couldn't help but curl up
in a smile, "So it's the arrangement of my remaining
Linegon eyes over there?
No wonder that Naruto is as calm as
. The only thing that Madara didn't
understand was that Naruto seemed to have known
that place would be attacked. At this moment in the
headquarters, everyone breathed a sigh of relief, no
unexpectedly it was the Akasuki organization that saved them. Ms.
Nan Giang spread her wings, smiling at
everyone. This is the answer of our village
to the ninja world. Ms.
said that Naruto's clone that is staying at
headquarters can be dispelled and returned to its original
body, this place should be left to them Phi
...
Thunder God takes everyone out of here to
avoid the tailed beast bomb. Now with Nagato's
help, even the base can be
preserved. Nagato smiled and said to Naruto's shadow
, "Junior brother, you must
win." Naruto nodded firmly
, then confidently dispelled the image
's information, returning to his true self.
Knowing everything, Naruto grinned,
"So that's it." Seeing that plan
had failed, Obito angrily controlled the Ten-Tails
to activate Wood Release, the Tree Grafting Technique,
countless wooden stakes fell from the sky like
rain. In his previous life, Neji sacrificed himself for Naruto because of
, and also
took the lives of many ninjas.
This time Naruto will not let that tragedy
happen again. He immediately entered
tailed beast transformation and had nine shadow clones
condense a Rasenuriken
tailed beast bomb on each of the Nine-Tails' tails. Combining
with the main body for a total of 10
Rasenuriken, instantly stopped
10 tails of the ten-tails. The rain of wood suddenly
stopped. Seeing this, Obito was so angry that his eyes
exploded, scolding Naruto for how many times he wanted to anger
him before he was satisfied. Wanting
to carry out the moon eye plan, Naruto
is without a doubt
the biggest obstacle. And now, if you want to win against
, the only way is to become
Jinchuriki of the Ten-Tails. Madara, next to
, sarcastically mocked him for a while.
not only did not reduce the morale of the
alliance, but on the contrary, it also caused the opponent's
morale to increase quite a bit. Obito
gritted his teeth and said he knew and
he also knew that Madara had left a spell
in his heart. To become
the Jinchuriki of the ten-tails, he must remove
of that talisman first. So he did
like in his previous life and invited Kakashi to
the ca smell space. After a while of fighting,
Obito used Kakashi's hand to remove the curse seal
Madara left it on him. He suppressed
the intense pain and moved himself to the head of
Ten-Tails. Madara looked at the disabled Obito,
immediately controlled Obito from afar, intending to use
the natural reincarnation technique on him.
But Madara did not know that the pain
in front of him was not a thousandth
of the pain when Obito lost him. He forced
to escape from Madara's control, made
the six paths, the Ten-Tails saved the seal, the Ten-Tails' giant
body was sucked into Obito's
body. Naruto's eyes couldn't help
stop, the last difficult person
was about to appear. He told Minato to translate
and move everyone away, leaving only the main
group here and explain
the situation to everyone. Only
fairy magic and physical magic can cause
damage to Obito, and at the same time tell everyone
to be careful with the yin and yang release of the
opponent. Yin and yang release, even for the reincarnated
impure earth body, will cause
irreversible damage. Speaking of
senjutsu, Hasirama, who was the best at
senjutsu, acted first. He made
seals with both hands, creating dozens of Ming Shen
gates, directly suppressing Obito in the air
to the ground. Everyone thought it was
successful, only Naruto knew that Minh Than Mon
could not suppress Obito's Six Paths.
Sure enough, in the next second, Obito easily
destroyed all the Ming
Divine Gates. Seeing this, Hasirama clasped his hands,
intending to launch his heavenly hands to attack
, but Madara suddenly appeared
to hold Hasirama back. After a
battle in mental space, this
Obito finally captured the consciousness
of the ten-tails. He slowly turned around
to look at the people below, leaving everyone
waiting for a long time. Sasuke did not like his opponent's
arrogant appearance, so he rushed forward to
take revenge for his stolen eye. Naruto saw
and shouted loudly for Sasuke to stop, yes
followed closely behind. Seeing Sasuke
rushing forward with the sword Kusanagi,
Obito's heart did not waver at all, he gently
used the six-path stick to block. The Hokage's sword
Kusanagi, known as the sharpest
, immediately broke in half. Seeing that Sasuke
was about to crash into the jade path, Naruto rushed
forward, taking with him Sasuke to use
lightning to dodge the attack. But when
Naruto turned around, he discovered that the
jade ball was also flying with them. He immediately
kicked Sasuke next to him, and
once again used the flying thunder god carrying the jade ball
to fly out. Seeing the light of the fierce
explosion on the other side of the mountain, Sasuke
's eyes flashed with a strange light, saying that
was not worried about Naruto was a lie. It wasn't until
that Naruto's body flew back to its original place that
the rock in his heart was
put down. He stiffly said that Naruto was worried about
things, even if the other person didn't
take action, he still had a way to escape
himself. After complaining, he continued to
ask Naruto, "There must be something you want
to tell me, right?" From Naruto
's strange betrayal of Konoha to
's sudden arrangement of everything in
the ninja world and now fully understanding
of the ten-tailed Jinchuriki's abilities, Sasuke
guessed that something
must have happened to Naruto that no one knew about. Now
at the right time, Naruto decided
to show Sasuke what happened
in the future. He signaled Sasuke
to touch his hand. Sasuke hesitated for a moment
then finally held out his fist. During
the moment the two touched hands, memories
of Naruto's past life continuously flooded
into Sasuke's head. Each scene, both strange and familiar, had a strong impact on
...
Sasuke's mind. His eyes wavered violently
, not expecting to have a future like
. Although the process was more heroic than he
imagined, the outcome was also profound
is tougher than you think. He silently clenched
's hand, thinking of the efforts that Naruto
had alone shouldered and paid for until
until now, he was so embarrassed that he didn't know where to hide his face
. After regaining consciousness, Sasuke smiled faintly and
punched Naruto hard in the stomach. He
lightly scolded Naruto, this guy in the book dared
to hide it from him for so long. Hearing that, Naruto
smiled serenely, turned around and wiped
away his uncontrollable tears.
He knew that from this moment on, Sasuke, who fought alongside
with him, had returned. Currently
Sasuke has lost an eye, but
in this life he has had
Hasirama's cells transplanted. Whether it's the healing ability or the
chakra, it's no
less than the previous life. Facing Obito of the Six Paths, they have
experience fighting the opponent from
previous lives, wanting to win is not
difficult. The reason why Naruto let Obito
smoothly become the Jinchuriki of the Ten
Tails, was not because he wanted to use him to
revive Kaguya, but to conquer the
opponent. In the previous life, in the final
battle between Naruto and Obito,
during the Chakra tug of war, they
entered each other's
consciousness space. So, this time Naruto only needs to
defeat Obito again,
can definitely pass his past memories to
the opponent.
Sasuke smiled faintly when he heard that. He didn't expect that
Naruto would have to spend
so much effort to win over Obito, but there was no
other way, after all, with Obito's
suspicious personality, it was impossible to obediently
reach out to Naruto. Naruto and Sasuke's
selves held off Obito, while his
clones came next to
Minato and Tobirama. He told them
his battle plan, which was
the flying thunder god's telekinesis technique
that they had used in their previous lives.
they used this move to hit
Obito before, they just didn't know what to do at the time.
uses senjutsu to deal with it. Therefore, this time
only requires careful preparation,
can definitely seriously injure Obito. After
finished deploying, Sasuke and Naruto's
self returned to the team. Naruto
dispelled several shadow clones that were collecting
natural energy on one side, and a large
amount of natural energy was transmitted. He
quickly used this power to stop
from condensing fairy magic, applying pressure to the Rasengan. Combining
with Sasuke's Kagosuchi, Minato named
this move the super immortal
three thousand world technique Kagosuchi
Rasengan. After completing the preparations, several
people acted according to the plan. During
the moment Naruto and Sasuke held
the Rasengan and hit Minato, Tobirama
took advantage of Obito's hesitation and together with Minato, performed
a flying thunderbolt to support the entire
technique. Minato's position immediately
switched with Obito's. By the time Obito
reacted, he was already in the Rasengan's
vortex. He didn't even have time
to use the pearl to defend. After
the attack ended, Obito vomited blood
knelt to the ground. He did not expect that after becoming
the Jinchuriki of the Ten-Tails, the
penetrating state would lose its effect. And Naruto
seems to know his weakness well. He
used the jade path to heal
's wound, but suddenly Naruto rushed up from
the ground, a dragon punch
directly sent Obito Le Khong flying. The
surrounding rocks simultaneously turned
into Naruto's shadow clones. Naruto
aimed at Obito in the air and launched
Naruto five-thousand bullets. Although Obito
reacted extremely quickly, using the Orb Path
to cover his body, Naruto's consecutive
defensive attack finally tore
through the defense layer of the Orb Dao Orb.
Seeing this scene, Sasuke couldn't help but look
serious. Naruto doesn't have the power of the six paths, but
can break through the defense.
of Cau Dao Ngoc. How much
this realm? Obito quickly created the six paths
effort did that guy secretly put in to achieve
heavenly spear to fight against Naruto's clone
. He told Naruto to stop resisting in vain
. He has become the second immortal
of the six paths, and is now an immortal
existence. Naruto attacked and said that
Infinite Moon Poison was actually a fake to
confuse Obito's mind. An angry Obito
created a jet black sphere that quickly
swelled, in the blink of an eye
destroyed all of Naruto's clones. Naruto's
version jumped next to Sasuke.
He asked Sasuke if he had forgotten how to use the power
page. Wild beast? Hearing that, Sasuke snorted
coldly and immediately cooperated with
Naruto to open the Nine-Tails' majestic page. Obito looked down from
on high, telling them to give up
resistance, he would lead everyone into a
good world without fighting.
Naruto seriously replied, the last dream
is just a dream after all, peace must
come from everyone fighting together.
Like in the previous life, during the battle
, the Nine-Tails and Obito confronted, Naruto
successfully destroyed the Heavenly Spear,
pulled out the tailed beasts inside Obito. He
immediately created nine Chakra hands, and
Obito competed in a tug-of-war. In the
process of competing for Chakra, Naruto and Obito suddenly
once again entered a space
full of sparkling stars. Obito angrily
asked Naruto, "Who the hell
are you? Why are you
targeting every step of my plan?" Naruto
struck Obito straight in the heart. He
asked Obito, "Actually, you, like me,
want to become Hokage, right?"
Obito heard that, immediately got angry, moved
up and grabbed Naruto's neck to force him to shut
up. But in the moment he touched
to Naruto, Naruto
's past life memories hit his head like a tsunami. Both sides
kept this position for a long time, Obito
opened his eyes in shock, he couldn't
ask Naruto what
these things were. Naruto frankly said, "You
are the king reincarnated from the apocalypse
and what Obito saw was the real future
." Hearing Naruto's words, Obito
couldn't calm down for a long time. Combined with
's past failures, he finally
understood why all of
's plans were targeted by Naruto. It turns out
Naruto had previewed the instructions. He asked
why did Naruto spend so much effort
? Naruto was silent for a
moment and then firmly said, "I need strength,
strength enough to defeat those people. Because
then I need teammates, not the
type of teammates who are protected behind in a great
battle, but trusted
comrades who can fight side by side with me
against that clan. Cam Mui hides
limitless abilities. Among the
friends that Naruto wanted, Obito was naturally
one of them. Obito did not expect Naruto
to have such foresight.
He was silent for a moment and then
...
asked Naruto, "Is Madara also one of the
options?" Naruto nodded silently At that moment, Obito couldn't help but smile bitterly.
...
He finally
admitted that his past was still too narrow, carrying the crime of
killing his teacher. His hands were stained with
too much blood. Naruto asked Obito again if he wanted
to help him. Obito
's answer was naturally yes
...
explanation, he has no reason to
refuse. Until this world is truly
peaceful, he will personally go down to
to apologize to those who have been harmed by him.
Naruto took a deep breath, thanking
for trusting him. Suddenly an idea came to his mind and asked Obito, "Sure
...
did you keep Nohara Jin's remains
?" "I probably have a way to resurrect."
Hearing that, Obito couldn't help but smile bitterly. He
admitted that if he had intended to revive, he would have
taken action a long time ago. Up until now, he
always thought that instead of letting Jin return to this dirty
world of ninjas, it would be better to let her
rest in peace in the pure land. Obito Previously
was far into the darkness, Jin's death was actually
just a spark. What caused his
belief to collapse was that this
irreversible world, under
...
Naruto's hidden encouragement, seemed to no longer be as dark
as before. He told Naruto to talk about Jin
later
's next plan. Now the purpose of capturing
has been completed. Naruto asked
to return Sasuke's Rinegan. Obito
knew the truth, so naturally there was no reason
to refuse. After the consciousness of the two
returned to the outside world, he removed Sasuke's
Rinegan and returned it to him and
replanted his Sarà. After that, he used
Camui to teleport to Madara's side,
knew that Madara was the mastermind who killed
, he should have found a way to counter
, but he didn't
and instead advised Madara to end the battle
, the infinite moon poison was actually fake.
Madara saw that Obito's attitude suddenly
changed 180 degrees, a bit
unbelievable. Although he didn't know what happened to
Obito, the
idea of infinite moon poison in his heart
was deeply ingrained, it wasn't like
a few words from Obito could change
Seeing that the surrounding ninjas
didn't stop surrounding him, Madara knew that he
wanted to take over today. He
decided not to want to fight anymore, quickly
retreated, then his two
hands formed a seal to create a
earthquake, taking advantage of the sky's shield
large stone, Madara escaped
alone from the scene. Although he could no longer control
to control Obito to activate the reincarnation technique
, he found
another way to revive
himself. After contacting the Black Jesu,
Madara found
's ancient remains. After that, he launched the hell path
to summon Yama and placed his corpse
in Yama's mouth. After
, he immediately activated Catoan's
spiritualization technique, his soul escaped
from the sacrifice, and flew into the Diem La
statue. After a while of munching,
Madara finally successfully revived
with a youthful appearance. Feeling
feel the hot blood boiling in
's body, he raised his face to the sky and laughed loudly.
Next, we can finally
have a good fight. But at this moment his two
Linegon eyes suddenly fell out
like shredded paper. Because right now his eyes are still
on Naruto and Nagato. Madara
told Black Jesu to lead the way, he wanted to take back
his eyes on Nagato. Looking
at Madara's series of actions,
Hessu smiled cunningly, in
he had another plan to
give birth to Kawya. Sasuke advanced and asked Naruto
not to pursue? Naruto shook his head
in denial, wanting to subdue Madara, using only martial
force would not be possible. Currently, he is also
in no hurry to attract Madara to the team, because
maintaining a confrontational stance is the fastest way for
both sides to strengthen their strength. Furthermore, they
now have one more thing to handle
immediately, which is to help Obito remove the ten-tails
from his body. Now that Obito doesn't have
Rinegan, wanting to control the ten-tails in
's body is not an easy task. Sasuke heard
and reminded Naruto, "Don't forget that
Jinchuriki, after losing the tailed beast,
will definitely die. Taking out the ten-tailed beast means
Obito can't live either." Naruto laughed
told Sasuke to rest assured and live a new life,
he naturally has a way to solve this
problem. The Ten-Tails' Jinchuriki is inherently different from
other Jinchuriki. After Naruto pulled
the Ten-Tails out of Obito, he immediately
separated a small Ten-Tails from the Ten-Tails,
then used the Eight Trigrams Seal to seal
it into Obito's body. Thus,
although it is not possible for Obito to have the power
of the Ten-Tails, it is enough for him to avoid
dying from losing the tailed beast. Regarding
, Naruto had already prepared
. He had previously asked Konan to build
a strong fortress on the outskirts of the rainy
village. Naruto decided to put it there. At the same time
he will also ask the four Hokage guards
to guard the Ten-Tails to use the red sun formation
in conjunction with Hasirama's Minh Than Gate to
temporarily block the Ten-Tails. Before
left, Naruto arrived next to the current Five Kage
. Even though he can't
say everything right now, through this
battle, everyone has seen the fear
of the ten-tailed Jinchuriki and Naruto is
the one who can defeat that person.
Naruto tells everyone the
folk tale about Osatsuki Kawya. Actually
is real. Their future
enemy is the Osatsuki family, surpassing even the six
paths of immortals. If these words of Naruto
were said before the ninja war, everyone
would definitely think that he was talking
nonsense. But after this battle, people's
trust in Naruto increased
dramatically. They believed that Naruto had no
reason to lie. The immediate matter is clearly
no longer a matter of Konoha alone, but
involves the fate of the entire
ninja world. They took turns telling Naruto to arrange
the next steps of deployment. To have
everyone's trust, was also
one of Naruto's goals when
started the ninja war. He sincerely
thanks everyone for your trust
and what he wants everyone to do is hope that
hopes that the five great powers will continue to maintain
the alliance status, while mobilizing
and absorbing other small ninja villages and
reducing useless tasks in the future.
Increased daily training for
ninjas. Finally, start building
solid underground shelters
everywhere in the ninja world so that ordinary
people can hide when war
breaks out. After hearing
Naruto's plan, the Five Kage fell silent. Ninja
villages that have major changes must go through the
consent of the countries' yyos. And what
Naruto said was nonetheless
related to many direct benefits. The nights yo
countries have a high chance of not
agreeing. As the Earth Hokage,
Naruto could see
everyone's worries with just one glance. As the
initiator of this wind, there are some words that are
most appropriate for Naruto to say himself. He said with cold and
...
determined eyes, the current ninja system clearly
limited the growth of
ninjas. Faced with an enemy that could easily
destroy the ninja world, a
change of regime is urgent. This time we
have to go all out. So he told everyone
to honestly report
's situation on their love nights. If yô nights could
understand, they would still respect. If the
yôs are still stubborn, it's time to
cut them off. Naruto finally solemnly
promised that whatever happened was up to him.
Uzumaki Naruto takes charge. The five Kage heard
and their eyes were all surprised. Naruto before
didn't look like a
17 year old teenager. But seeing Naruto's old
and determined eyes,
everyone understood in their hearts. He was determined
to carry out reforms. If there really is a strong
foreign enemy like Naruto said,
is the life and death responsibility of the ninja world
is not shouldered by the yô nights, but
is shouldered by all the ninja present
. Therefore, everyone agreed with Naruto's
plan to lead the team back to
's village. Naruto also set out
to return to the rain village. The fierce fourth great
ninja war has finally
come to an end. Meanwhile, somewhere else,
Madara, led by Hzu, finally
found Nagato and Konan.
Nagato looked through Naruto's memories and suddenly
knew Madara's purpose in looking
to him. Madara carefully observed
Nagato, his chakra was as huge as
, he certainly didn't choose the wrong
person that year. He went straight to the point and asked
Nagato, "Are you sure you know the purpose of my coming
here?" Nagato did not directly answer
but stood in front of Konan, told Konan
to leave here first, and quickly returned to
to inform Naruto. Feeling Konan turn
into paper and leave, Madara did not stop
, because getting back the Rinegan on
Nagato was
's most important thing right now. After a period of
fruitless conversation, Madara launched a
fire to destroy it. B-level ninjutsu is
nothing outstanding, but under Madara's hands it
creates a sky-high sea of fire. Nagato
exclaimed while raising his hand to launch his
ghost path, the fire was absorbed at a speed
visible to the naked eye. But in the
chaos of fire suddenly appeared several
Fuma suriken spinning at
high speed. It turned out that Madara used fire release
just to cover his eyes. He naturally knew that the ring
technique had no effect on Rinegan.
Nagato was surprised, hastily launched
Than La Thien Trinh to push away all
suuriken. Madara saw that, the corner of
's mouth curled up in a smile. He praised Nagato
for playing his eyes well, but
only knew how to use the six basic abilities of
his eyes, so he couldn't win.
got him. Nagato doesn't think so. For
's sake, for the future of this ninja world,
he cannot lose. He let out a
roar and activated his true spirit magic
. In the blink of an eye, more than 30
spirit beasts surrounded Madara and Hzu. Madara
saw this and smiled scornfully, activated half of
Susanu's body, and alone fought
dozens of spirit beasts that were not
weak at all. Suddenly, a psychic
beast crawled out from under Susanu and quickly
pulled Madara away from Susanu. The other
spirit beasts immediately rushed forward to attack
, Madara's body was sent flying.
A moment later, he stood up, brushed the dust off
of his body, knowing that Susanu
's weak point was under his feet. As expected of the person
I chose, opening Susanu twice
in a row was a bit unsightly. Madara formed a seal to activate
tree flowers in the form of a forest, and in a moment,
a tree diaper tightly wrapped around the pine
spirit beasts. Along with the release of the tree
for eternal burial, the spirit beasts
were instantly sealed under the
tree. Nagato sat on the bird
Yatagarasu. Seeing this scene, he couldn't help but
look serious. With just one blow, he killed
dozens of spirit beasts. Madara
in the legend is certainly not
legendary, the bottom is now full of pollen
poisonous flowers. Just as Nagato was about to fly further away,
a vine suddenly came out of the
smoke, choking
Nagato's large bird. The next second, Nagato was pulled
into the pollen. Madara continued to push
to push the precept, wrap Nagato tightly and seal
, launching a fire to destroy the place, preparing
to roast Nagato. Faced with this
combination skill of fire and wood, Nagato had no choice but to
cast Than La Thien Trinh once
again. Powerful thrust to repel all
of Madara's jutsu. But just when
Nagato thought he was safe, a large
Susanu blade suddenly came out from the ground.
rose, piercing his body. A clone
of Madara has been waiting for the opportunity
underground for a long time. Seeing that the enemy
could not get Madara, Nagato suppressed the intense pain
, intending to destroy his Vinegan.
But at this moment, a black liquid suddenly
spread out on his body. Heetsu covered
Nagato, blocking the opponent's
actions. With a scream, Madara finally regained
...
one of his eyes. In
moments, he inserted the Rinegan into his right eye socket,
his chakra suddenly skyrocketed and activated
Rinegan's unique ability. Luan
tomb of Border Prison. Madara raised his face to the sky
and laughed loudly, followed by only eyes
remaining on Naruto's body. Right now Naruto is
with Sasuke and the others on
the way to the rain village. In the sky suddenly
flew a paper butterfly belonging to Konan. That
butterfly finally landed on Naruto's shoulder,
had Konan's message for help written on it.
Seeing Naruto's serious face, Sasuke
stepped forward and asked what happened. After
when Naruto told Sasuke everything,
he asked him and everyone to continue taking
the Ten-Tails back to the rain village, while he
relentlessly rushed to the location
that Conan had mentioned. But Madara soon
disappeared, leaving only the dying Nagato
on the ground. Naruto quickly moved
up to hug the other person. At this time, Nagato
only had one left eye left. He
blamed himself for disappointing Naruto. Rinegan
was taken by Madara. Naruto said in a deep
voice, "The one who should really apologize is
you, because you intentionally let
Madara go, I didn't expect
Madara's actions to be so quick." Knowing from
Nagato's mouth that Madara had restored
his body and flesh, Naruto couldn't help but
break out in a cold sweat. He was very curious
to know how Madara did it. Currently
taking Nagato for treatment is a mission
top. Naruto used Philo to fly back to
Konoha, then asked Chunade to treat
Nagato. He told Nagato to rest assured
to rest in Konoha, and as for his
lost right eye, he would ask Orochimaru to think of a way.
After making arrangements, Naruto alone
returned to Sasuke's side. After
moved the Ten-Tails to the Amegakure, they temporarily
detained the Ten-Tails in the suburbs, and
asked the previous Hokages in
to guard it. At this moment, Madara and
Hessu were standing high above. Looking at this village
crying all year round, he asked Black
Jessu to lead the way, he was preparing to give
Naruto some specialties. As soon as the two
people entered the rain village, Naruto immediately
detected an intruder and judged
the amount of chakra. That's a very strong person.
At this time, Madara high above the rain village was
forming seals with both hands, preparing to bring
Naruto a present, which was
the tremor of heaven that he cast
after recovering his flesh and bone body.
A meteorite several times larger
than the meteorite that Naruto
saw in the ninja war
of his previous life roared towards him. The whole rainy village
was immediately enveloped by despair
. But at this moment, an orange
flash suddenly shot into the sky. Naruto
launched an attack that shattered the meteorite
and immediately used the earthburst
crystal to reassemble the fragments into
a star, preventing the fragments
from falling. Seeing this, Madara smiled
in disdain, immediately pushed the second
meteorite, and at the same time flew into the air, her two
hands pressed on that meteorite, launching the
super weight rock technique, the
weight and density of the meteorite immediately
increased thousands of times. But that
is not all, Madara also activated
super god La Thien Trinh behind him to
immediately push away meteors and meteors.
means falling at extremely fast speed. Seeing
this scene, the corner of Madara's mouth raised
a satisfied smile. "So number
two, what will you do?" Naruto held
tightly, and at this moment, his expression, in addition to shock
, also showed enthusiasm. Come on
, Kurama. Naruto entered
nine-tailed state and split into two
nine-tailed clones. He let the two clones condense the tail bomb
of the beast Rasensuriken, while the main body rushed
into the air, both hands supporting
under the meteorite, the speed of meteor
immediately decreased. When the two
nine-tailed clones threw the Rasenuriken tailed beast bomb
towards Meteor, Naruto immediately used
Flying Thunder God to fly back to the ground. Between
heaven and earth, a tug of war took place with
Meteor as the intermediary. Meteor
finally couldn't stand the pressure and
collapsed. However, the debris falling
quickly caused Naruto to panic
because he couldn't stop it from falling into
the village. At this moment, Chidori Nagashi's screech suddenly rang out in the air
.
Sasuke appeared in one blow that crushed
all the pieces. Seeing
this scene, Naruto looked emotional. He couldn't help but remember
the heroic years of fighting with Sasuke
in the past. Madara looked seriously
at Naruto and Sasuke below. Two
people of Destiny once again joined forces
. Thinking about Obito's sudden
180 change earlier, he
became more and more curious about Naruto
's true background. Naruto stepped forward
to confront Madara. He was extremely impressed with
Madara's strength. Life
before fighting Madara Six Paths,
if it weren't for Hzu stabbing him from behind,
he wouldn't have dared to say there was a 10% chance of
winning. Because in some aspects, Madara
is full of experience, even more
difficult to deal with than Osatsuki Kawya. So
Madara is also one of the subjects
that Naruto really wants to conquer. He asked
if Madara dared to duel with him
? If he loses, he will return
Rinegan to Madara, and if he wins,
Madara just needs to touch his hand.
Madara heard that and pondered for a while. Now
he is alone, wanting to get
Rinegan back. This was probably the best opportunity and
more importantly, also a good opportunity for him
to see Naruto clearly. He told Naruto to choose a
destination, and the place Naruto chose was
the valley at the end. At this time, Naruto had
reached the valley of the end before Madara.
He immediately began preparing for battle.
Sage mode has been activated. A
moment later, with a passing wind,
Madara's majestic body stood
tall on his own statue. He
glanced at the familiar yet strange
surrounding area. Previously, he was
here and had the final
battle with Hasirama. Seeing that Hasirama's statue
was a bit lower than his own statue
, he couldn't help but reveal a satisfied
smile. Naruto interrupted
's thoughts, he asked Madara, "Do you still need
's body to receive the contract content back?"
Madara heard that and told him to stop talking nonsense
and start. He formed a seal with both hands to create
a halo of fire, and a sea of fire
immediately rolled towards
Naruto. Naruto smiled faintly, split into two
shadow clones, then one clone used
toad oil, one clone used wind release,
the three of them coordinated to launch Jira's
field move, sea oil flame. Under
the help of the wind turned into a
sky-high sea of fire, eventually overwhelming
even Madara's fire barrier. Madara
was a bit surprised, this kid
's chakra amount was amazing. His Rinegan
suddenly opened wide, and
launched a prison cycle. Madara's shadow in the
world of Luan Mo passed by like a flash of lightning.
Naruto reacted extremely quickly, immediately
crossed his arms to block, but was still hit
and flew dozens of meters away. Madara
's eyes darkened, Naruto had a
Linegan eye, it was true that he could see parts of
's body, but seeing
's grave without being able to damage
's grave was meaningless. Madara and his
bodies attack alternately at
degrees almost instantaneously. Naruto both dodged
and could only coordinate with his shadow
to dodge Madara's storm
attacks. Madara took advantage of Naruto
's lack of time to pay attention, forming seals with both hands
to launch the Divine Gate. Luckily Naruto
has fairy mode, he can easily
feel the disturbance of natural
energy above his head. In an instant,
the red gate of Minh Than Mon from above
did not press down, he created two tables of
chakra hands to fend off Minh Than Mon.
Madara saw this scene with a solemn expression.
in a situation of extreme pressure,
was still able to perfectly grasp the opportunity to
stop the Minh Than Gate. He became more and more
curious about what kind of god
Naruto was. At this time, the clone
's time has expired and returns to
Madara's body. During the time
Madara was temporarily unable to use
, it was a good opportunity for Naruto to attack.
A flying lightning Kunai suddenly
appeared behind Madara. Naruto flashed out of
from his Kunai and kicked Madara
downwards. Although Madara was not
seriously injured, he did not understand why
Naruto's Kunai suddenly appeared
next to him. Naruto smiled faintly, then
explained that when he threw the Kunai, he
intentionally used the thrust of God La Thien
Trinh to accelerate the Kunai. The kunai that is
accelerated is several times faster than a normal
, if you don't look closely you will completely
not notice it. Madara heard that and stopped
held his hand across his chest and told Naruto not to say too many
words. Even though Naruto didn't explain, next time
he would see it for himself. Bringing
up to this point is the end. Having finished speaking,
Madara activated Susanu to transform into a
two-faced statue, combining with the body
to form three different seals. Naruto
was horrified when he realized that the tomb clone that
Madara had just split out was doing
the same thing. The corner of Madara's mouth curled
up into a belligerent smile, the sky
suddenly darkened, suddenly
meteorites began to fall
from the sky. Naruto asked
Madara with a serious expression, "Is this move appropriate
?" "Don't forget, you are not
now reincarnated in an impure body.
Furthermore, Naruto himself can also choose
to use the flying thunder god to dodge." Madara
smiled arrogantly and said, "It's just
just a few raindrops a little bigger than
, is it worth it?" Hearing that, Naruto
shrugged and smiled, "That's right, you released
and completely released the Nine-Tails' Chakra, then
condensed a Rasensuriken
tailed beast bomb on each tail. The last
meteors were all blocked in mid-air,
but Madara grasped
Naruto's loophole, a kick exploded
's Nine-Tails' head. Naruto's body flew.
in the surrounding mountains, when
he stood up, the scene before his eyes
surprised him. In addition to Susanu's entire
true body that Madara had activated, Madara's
body was also
activating Susanu's entire true body
...
...
His attack could not cause any real
damage to Luan Tom, but Luan
Mo physically had the same
power as Madara's
slashes that devastated the valley of the end.
...
...
He dodged while thinking about his next
strategy. That's just the way it is.
Naruto suddenly clasped his hands and launched a
explosion. Unlike the previous
star, Naruto did not create a
gravity ball but used
Madara's Susanu as the gravity source. The surrounding
giant rocks immediately gathered
towards Madara. Madara looked surprised
but this was an advanced
use of the celestial earth servant, without the need to create a
gravity ball. but using the opponent
as the source of gravity, the greater the chakra of the opponent
, the stronger the gravity.
Very quickly, the rocks completely covered
all of Madara's Susanu. But a sudden change
occurred, water stains appeared
on the earth. Seeing that Madara was about to
break the seal, Naruto immediately flew
to the sky, held both hands under the edge of the
celestial star, then launched the
heavy rock technique that Earth Shadow had taught
to him. The weight and density of the planet
immediately increased
thousands of times. The water marks were
completely erased, Madara could no longer move
. Naruto looked at the tomb man who was
standing motionless before his eyes. He speculated
that in order to escape Madara's seal, he most
intended to swap places with this tomb.
So he condensed a
Rasengan sword and attacked the tomb. At almost
the same time, Madara and his grave clone
switched places.
Naruto's Rasengan sword just barely pierced Madara's shoulder.
Madara hugged his shoulders in shock for a moment, then
laughed loudly, "If it weren't for Naruto temporarily
shifting the attack upwards,
perhaps his heart would have been punctured." He
finally admitted
that he had lost. Silent for a moment, he turned
around and asked, "Naruto, you're not
an ordinary kid, right?"
Naruto smiled and asked Madara,
"Why do you feel like that?" The reason why Madara thinks
like that is because Naruto's
fighting actions and experience so far
are not inherently something that a normal 17 year old
teenager can have.
The reason Madara thought so was because Naruto's actions and
fighting experience so far
, were absolutely not something
that a 17 year old kid could have.
Naruto asked Madara, "Do you believe in Time Travel
?" Madara heard that, his expression
difficult to understand, "That can't be done, right
?" Naruto said in a low voice, "People
always live within their own
perceptions. Before meeting that family, I also
thought that many things could
happen." Having finished speaking, Naruto showed his fist and
said that he was not good at speaking. If
wants to know everything, then touch
with him. Madara hesitated for a moment then raised
his right hand. In the moment
the two touched hands,
Naruto's past life memories hit
Madara's head like a raindrop. The reappearance of the immortal
, the heart-piercing words of
Hesu, the resurrection of Osasuki Kaguya, and
finally the end of the world sinking into
silence. After seeing everything, Madara opened his eyes
in shock, he asked Naruto,
"Is all of this true?" Naruto
nodded firmly, "You are
the loser who returned from the end of the world
thanks to fate. This is the reason why you went
on a completely different path than before
. Knowing the ending that he sought
but failed, Madara couldn't help but raise
his face to the sky and laugh out loud. He did not expect the infinite
moon poison that he had suffered all his life. Chasing after
ended up being just part of
someone else's plan. Thinking of this, he
just wanted to cut Black Jessu immediately
Collecting his thoughts, Madara raised his head and looked at
Naruto, "The Osatsuki family, what kind of people is that
?"
gives two words of evaluation. "Monster."
Madara clearly understood in his heart that you
being able to make the current Naruto call a monster
was enough to prove the
extraordinaryness of that family. Naruto reached out and asked
Madara to give him a hand. Madara looked at Naruto's
obsequious form, and before his eyes
could not help but see the image of
Hasirama. Recalling the glorious appearance of
Konoha in Naruto's future memories,
he couldn't help but think of the original
dream of himself and Hasirama when founding
the village. Maybe that's it. Thinking that
Osatsuki had tricked him for decades, and at the end
secretly stabbed him. Madara was furious, this time he must
...
fight that family himself. He definitely
intends to make them pay their blood debt.
Madara finally agreed to lend a hand to Naruto
, because he wanted to see how
Naruto's ideals inherited from Hasirama would
end up differently. Naruto
was extremely excited, it seemed like he would have to
ask Uncle Madara for more guidance in the future. Fighting
side by side with the legendary Uchi Madara,
is truly an overwhelming feeling of
peace. He immediately intended to invite
Madara to return to the rain village, but Madara
told Naruto not to misunderstand. He only
agreed to withdraw from dealing with that family, but
did not agree to return to the rain village with Naruto.
He will use his own way to become
strong and explore the future path.
As for his Rinegan on
Naruto, he told Naruto that when he finds
a suitable eye, he should return it to
him. Having finished speaking, Madara turned around to
leave because of dealing with Hesu, he couldn't
wait another second. But about
Hesu, Naruto had a rude request
to ask Madara for help. He hoped Madara
could temporarily spare Hzetsu
's life because he planned to rely on Hzu to revive
Kawya. Want to win that family,
Kawya's combat power and information are also
indispensable. Madara was a bit
surprised when he heard that, not expecting Naruto to want to drag
that whole family. But he
has always hated being told
by others. He disagreed with Naruto and immediately
turned around and left, leaving Naruto
alone, helplessly shaking his head in the wind. Madara, after
returning to the base, quickly searched
and found Black Jessu. He picked up Black
Jessu with one hand, eyes widened and asked, "Is there anything
you want to say? At this time HSU didn't know that
Madara had learned the truth about the infinite
moon poison. He was worried and didn't know
how to ask Madara what happened
? Madara initially intended to directly erase
Hesu's book, but thought of his plan.
Naruto, he finally restrained himself from
taking action. After activating Susanu, Madara
used Susanu to grab Hesu, then used a
seal to destroy and roast him.
Hearing Black Jesus' pitiful cry,
the anger in his heart finally
calmed down a bit,
he used the great sword again Susanu slashed Black
Jessu in half, then smiled coldly and said,
"What plan he has has been known for a long time.
Ordinary ninjutsu cannot directly
kill Hu." After threatening
, Madara left there alone. Hesu
saw Madara gone, quickly hid
underground. He could not figure out
why Madara knew the plan to
save his mother. The goal that he had
planned for a thousand years was about to come true.
attack, now returning to the starting point
. Thinking of this, Black Zu was so discouraged that
's face turned black. In order to revive
Kaguya, he decided to use all his strength to initiate
the final plan, which was when
was born of the Uchi Indra clan Indra, at the same time, drew the
...
...
unclean earth reincarnation technique on the ground.
He then split himself in two, half
remaining in the technique. Hessu decided
to use half of his body as a sacrifice.
Because I want to revive Indra with the strongest
status, using his Osatsuki body is without any doubt
most appropriate. Wait until
the day Kaguya revives, which is also when
his body recovers. Along with the descending of the impure earth
reincarnation seal, Black
Jetsu's clone screamed, all for his mother. A large
amount of dust wrapped around his
black body.
Naruto's next strongest enemy, the war god Osatsuki Indra at the end of
has finally reappeared in the human world. After
Indra woke up, used his Sarine
to scan around, discovering that
was an adult HSU. He coldly
laughed, he said Black Jetsu was
the best, so there was enough reason to convince him
to revive with this attitude. In Black
Jetsu's heart, he was confused. No matter what he said, he
was Inra's elder, but in order to
revive his mother, he now had to be patient.
As a conspirator who has been in
the ninja world for thousands of years, HSU has long
mastered how to win people's hearts. He
told Indra about cause and effect
over the past thousand years, as well as
the story about Indra's descendants, the Ui Ha clan.
When Indra heard that his descendants had
been driven to the point of near
extinction by Asura's descendants, Sarin's nearly three-pointed
jade eyes couldn't help but reveal a cold
light. HSU took the opportunity to continue to
seduce, only needing to perform infinite moon
poisons to completely end the
cycle of wrong reincarnation that the Sage of Six Paths and
Asura had created. Indra admitted that what
Hzu said was indeed a good
method to cut off cause and effect in this
world, but how could he do it just by relying on this impure body
of his?
Hu heard that and smiled and told Indra not to
worry. The two most recent reincarnations
are all living in this
world right now and they have all opened Ragen. Just
need to find any of them using
the reincarnation magic, in
the blink of an eye Indra will be able to perform
true resurrection. Indra
closed his eyes in contemplation for a moment, then opened his eyes
and looked in a certain direction. Then choose this
closest person. And the person closest to
Indra is Sasuke who is out
investigating intelligence right now. At this time
Sasuke is looking for information about
Osasuki in a ruined palace. Suddenly
Hesu and Indra appeared before
him. Look at
wearing strange clothes that don't fit this era next to
HSU. He asked Hzu who the other person was?
Hu playfully asked Sasuke if even his
ancestors didn't recognize him.
Sasuke attentively observed Indra,
Uy Tho's body combined with Sarà's,
's opposite, he couldn't help but
had a bad premonition. HSU saw
and couldn't help but burst out laughing. After
learned that the opponent was Sasuki Indra,
Sasuke's pupils couldn't help but twitch
violently. Indra walked up and introduced himself in an expressionless
manner due to some cause and effect. Before
when I passed away, I chose to let my
chakra reincarnate in this world. And
Sasuke can become my reincarnated
. Proves that Sasuke has
some similar characteristics to me. Logically, as
the person chosen by my Chakra, I should
treat Sasuke frankly.
Before Indra finished speaking, Sasuke coldly
interrupted the other person. He asked
what the other person actually wanted to do? Indra
said seriously, "Use your Rinegan to
launch the celestial reincarnation technique on
me in return, what wishes
have you not fulfilled? I can help you
fulfill them all." Sasuke naturally
disagreed. He slowly drew the sword
Kusanagi came out from behind. "So we have to see how much bravery Mr.
has." Indra saw
Sasuke's attitude being so determined,
was a bit surprised. He exclaimed that
's fate was indeed interesting, but he did not expect that one day
he would have to fight against his
reincarnated self. His
eyes turned into the eternal Mangakio
Saringan, the ancestor of Uchi. His
eyes did not undergo blindness and
transplantation, but as soon as they opened, they were born eternal
Mangakio. As the first person to fight
after his resurrection, he hopes
Sasuke will not disappoint him. Even though
Sasuke didn't understand why Indra
was revived, he told the other person, "A
relic of the old era, stop coming out here to
just for fun." Amino suddenly went
into action. Sasuke held Chidori in his hand and used his lightning
to reach behind Inra and slash towards
the opposite direction, but a blow
that was difficult to dodge was blocked by Indra's Susanu. He
turned his head to look at Sasuke's Vinegon, smiled
teasingly, his eyes weren't bad,
it's just a pity that the move in your hand
was too loud.
Susanu Indra's bone fist attacks Sasuke.
Sasuke saw that and also turned on Susanu to
counter the attack. HSU next to
saw the two fighting for a moment
couldn't help but smirk. He laughed
mockingly, "Sauke really hasn't seen the coffin
without shedding tears, yet he dares to fight with his
ancestors." As soon as he finished speaking,
Indra's Susanu evolved one step further, eventually
transformed into his full true form.
Sasuke saw that and opened his entire body
. The two giant machines rushed at
each other, and finally their hands grasped each other,
seemingly clenching endlessly, but Indra suddenly
opened her right eye, launched her dojutsu
lightning technique, and in the blink of an eye a
bolt of lightning fell from the sky towards Sasuke. This
is the doujutsu of my right eye
he can freely control natural lightning
through his eyes. Sasuke's
foothold immediately collapsed, and his entire
Susanu body lost its balance and
fell backwards. Indra saw that and immediately
chased after him, turning out to be Susanu with four arms,
with both hands pressing Sasuke who was losing his balance
to the ground. The other two hands held the great sword
Susanu wrapped around lightning, intending to stab
through Susanu Sasuke's forehead. Sasuke
couldn't help but break out in a cold sweat, his speed was
fast. In a time of urgency, he abandoned
Susanu, taking advantage of Aminos Jikara to switch position
with a nearby rock. Indra snorted
coldly, then immediately used his right
eye to launch the lightning bending technique, a sharp
bolt of lightning came from the sky to attack
Sasuke. Sasuke did not have time to dodge,
launched his hungry ghost path to absorb,
but he did not know that this was lightning
that naturally existed in the natural world.
Rinegan cannot absorb
at all. The wild lightning girl immediately pressed
to sink Sasuke. Sasuke let out
screams of pain. Hu, standing next to the
battle, saw this scene and couldn't help but
exclaim. Unexpectedly, Sasuke, who had
the top strength in the ninja world
in front of Indra, was completely overwhelmed.
Out of the smoke suddenly shot out three
arrows of Sasuke's Susanu, but before
hit Indra, Indra blocked them all.
He laughed contemptuously. Susanu
is not used like that. Having finished speaking,
Indra's Susanu suddenly clasped his
hands together and asked Sasuke if he knew that Susanu
could actually use senjutsu
? The natural energy in the
air suddenly became violent, turning into
fierce tides that could be seen
with the naked eye, constantly pouring into the
side of Inra's Susanu. That terrible pressure
even made Sasuke
's Susanu unable to get close. He was surprised, there was all
natural energy in the air
were all sucked in by Indra's Susanu. Indra's Susanu
even changed his
form because of this. Sasuke found this scene
familiar, and couldn't help but remember
the last battle between him and Naruto
in his previous life. The scene of him channeling
the chakra of the nine tailed beasts into
Susanu. Cold sweat ran down
Sasuke's cheeks, how could the difference in strength
be so great? The corner of Indra's mouth curled up
in a fierce smile. Because of me, old Sasuki
Indra, with a swing of
Susanu Indra's greatsword, a lightning arrow locked
Sasuke's body and flew away. Indra's Arrow
move that Sasuke once considered a great move,
in Indra's hands is like a
normal attack. Sasuke's Susanu was
engulfed in a shower of lightning arrows. She shines
straight into the sky. Waiting for the smoke to clear,
Sasuke miserably fell to the ground. If
hadn't had Yata's glass to defend against most of
's attacks, I'm afraid he would have been broken
long ago. Indra coldly stepped forward and said,
"As expected of being the one chosen by my chakra
. He shot that arrow and still kept
awake. Besides Asura, you are
the second person. Just as Sasuke was about to
use the last of his chakra to create a
meteor burst, a black liquid
suddenly spread out on his body. It turned out that
when Sasuke In the Akasuki organization, Hzetsu
took advantage of Sasuke's
Hasirama cell transplant and secretly placed black spores
on him. Sasuke's eyes trembled
fiercely. Unexpectedly, Rinegan could not
detect Hzesu's black spores. That's
because the Rinegan that Sasuke is currently opening
is just a regular Rinegan without six.
hooked the jade. Its force was not enough to
see through Hesu's yin and yang release technique.
With Hesu covering his whole body,
Sasuke said with a regretful look, "Naruto, I'm sorry
, it seems I have to go
ahead this time."
was soon attracted by the violence of natural energy
just now, and is also a person
who is skilled in fairy magic. He easily
felt the strangeness in the
sky just now. Right now he is
quickly running towards it. At this time, HSU surrounded
Sasuke, launching the reincarnation technique
on Indra. With a flash of yellow
light, Indra finally successfully revived
. After performing the technique, Sasuke's
hair turned silver white,
life continuously flowed from
his body. HSU saw this and planned to go forward
and gouge out Sasuke's Rinegan's eyes. After all,
controlling the ten-tails and unleashing infinite
moon poison requires Rinegan's power,
but Indra told him there was no need
to do unnecessary work. Because of the eyes of an ordinary
reincarnated person, he completely
didn't care. As long as
's power and Asura's power are combined,
will naturally be able to create
's own Rinegan. Hu heard that and couldn't believe
was able to see Indra. Do you know
the whereabouts of Asura's remains? Indra did not
answer Black Jesus. At this moment, he could feel
that an unknown person
was quickly approaching here. That person's
strength was exceptionally strong,
even made him feel a bit threatening.
HSU heard that and immediately guessed that Naruto
was the reincarnation of Asura, which
can be said to be the strongest existence in the
ninja world today. Hearing that, Indra revealed
an interested smile, but just after
restored his body, he was in no hurry to meet
Naruto because he had more important
things to do. He and Hessu retreated from here together
. A few minutes later,
Naruto finally arrived. Seeing
Sasuke lying on the ground dying, Naruto
quickly stepped forward and hugged him. He worried
and asked Sasuke what
happened in the end? Sasuke interruptedly said the five
words HSU and Indra. Naruto's pupils
couldn't help but tremble, could it be that the pawn that
Hzu chose to revive Kaguya was
Indra? Seeing
Sasuke's white hair, he knew Sasuke must have
activated the reincarnation technique. Without saying a word, he
immediately put Sasuke
on the ground. Then, both hands were placed on
's chest, triggering the blue spell to transfer
Mrs. Chio's birth. Looking at
Naruto's life force constantly transmitting to Sasuke,
the Nine-Tails couldn't help but frown and told Naruto
to stop, you don't want to live anymore
? But Naruto did not listen to the Nine-Tails'
advice. In his previous life, it was Sasuke who
saved him from the hands of the god Uki. In some
ways, he still owed Sasuke his life.
Moreover, if even Sasuke you
couldn't save, then what is the meaning of your
reincarnation?" The Nine-Tails heard that and did not
say anything. Sasuke is still barely
alive, with
Naruto's strong life force, wanting to save his opponent's life is
not enough to cause him to die. But
shortening his lifespan is certain.
could be 10 years, 20 years or maybe 50
years, maybe. At this
...
...
...
...
...
...
moment, the two people's consciousness suddenly appeared with
in a dim space.
This is where they met the Six Paths
Sage. One of the conditions for the
Six Paths Sage to appear was when
the two were in a state of
death. Not long after, the appearance of the Six Paths
appeared in front of them.
Naruto excitedly went up to greet him. Luc
was bewildered. He didn't know
why Naruto knew him, which made
even more surprising than his reincarnation.
Asura and Indra's reincarnation were
together again. Could it be that the cause and effect of
thousands of years of fate of the two cousins has been
resolved on these two people?
Naruto smiled slightly, then he stepped forward
intending to use a touch to tell Mr.
the truth. But the Six Paths Immortal
only swung his staff once. Naruto and Sasuke's
past memories all
appeared on the surface of the water. After learning
what would happen in the
future, the Six Paths Immortal
's heart was shocked. He did not expect that the
people that Kawya feared in the past actually
existed. It seems that the action of sealing
of Kaguya and Hamura now reviewing
was not entirely correct. Suddenly
tailed beasts emerged from the water. Nine-Tails
saw the old man Luc Dao lose his temper and laughed
cheerfully. The Sage of Six Paths remembered
the scene of the Nine-Tails burning Chakra to protect
just now. His insides were both
sad and happy. It is possible for Kurama
to go to this extent for humanity. Naruto,
you are truly an extraordinary person. More than
, he also resolved the thousand-year
resentment between brothers
Asura and Indra. It's time for the child of this generation's
prophecy to change the
world. The Sage of Six Paths told Naruto and
Sasuke to show their dominant hands. Then
he transmitted all his yin and yang power
to them. Not only that, he also taught
Naruto and Sasuke the method of condensing
yin and yang forces. So in the future they can
forever possess the power of yin and yang and the power of the six paths
. After completion, the appearance of
Immortal of the Six Paths began to blur. Maybe
seeing Indra and Asura reconcile, he
had no more regrets. Holding life
and death, he naturally learned that Indra had
resurrected. He asked Naruto and Sasuke to
stop Indra and apologize
on his behalf. Before, it was all about range
his eyes were narrow, causing the two
cousins to become enemies. Naruto raised his
finger to reassure him. Then the
future of the ninja world is left to you.
As soon as Naruto finished speaking, the Six Paths Immortal
immediately disappeared between heaven and earth.
Naruto and Sasuke's consciousness returned to the real
world. The wound on Sasuke's body has just
completely recovered. Your
's Rinegan has also evolved into the green
goblet Rinegan. The dragon's palm also has a mark in the shape of a
crescent moon. Naruto received
positive force, nine dog path gems appeared
behind him. Naruto received green force
standing in the wind, now he
seemed to be able to change everything. He
asked Sasuke to tell
what happened in the last battle. Sasuke told
details of his battle with Indra to Naruto
. Naruto couldn't believe
after hearing it. He didn't expect that the person in
's legend would be resurrected. But he has a shocking
plan. He intended to
push the boat so that Indra would become the one
chose to revive Kawya. Sasuke heard that
was extremely surprised. Indra's
uncontrollable factors are too many. Do you think
should seal him sooner? Naruto shook his head without force and said, "It's already late, because that guy
...
is not someone who can easily be
sealed. Furthermore, you told Sasuke not to forget,
their final enemy is the god uki. If
they can't even get past Ira's door
, then there's no need to talk about the
victory behind." Seeing that Naruto had made up his mind, Sasuke didn't say anything anymore. He
...
described to Naruto that before kissing
in love, he had heard Indra mention the name
Asura. Indra's next action will most likely
involve Asura. Naruto
used the Flying Thunder God to bring Sasuke back to
the rain village, then summoned everyone
to discuss the next solution.
At this time in a gloomy forest, Indra
took Black Jesus to a place that no one had ever been to for thousands of
years.
He raised his eyes to look at nothingness, a
aura that made him disgusted hovered
in the air. "This is where
the Sage of Six Paths is buried." After Indra
finished speaking, his eyes turned into eternal
eyes. Only people with the power of six paths can
open up the hidden space before their eyes.
Asura needs the teachings of the Six Paths Immortal
to be able to comprehend the power of the Six Paths, and
is the one who has fought with him all his life. Indra
yin and yang force to him is just
a more advanced type of magic.
As the inventor of home magic, he understands
clearly that this magic is not a difficult thing.
A black crescent moon mark appeared
on his left hand. Along with a
flash of light, a door suddenly
appeared in front of them. When the two
stepped inside, what appeared before their eyes was the
tomb of the Six Paths Immortal and a set of
bones sitting cross-legged next to it. This skeleton
belongs to Asura. HSU saw this ironically
tomorrow. Use this method to guard Hagoromo.
Asura is truly a stupid filial son
. Indra sank into a short
memory. A moment later, he told Black Jessu to take out
the sacrifice. Black Jessu took out a white
Jessu, and was about to tell Indra the method of reincarnating
of impure earth, but Indra coldly
said, "No need, don't forget, when I was just
revived, I was also in an impure earth body. I have been hit
jutsu once and already know the principle."
with this mortal's
With the descent of Indra's seal of dharma, the evil
earth transformation was truly initiated.
Asura's bones dissolved into dust
covered Bach Jessu's body. Before
could fully reveal her body, she actually emitted
a powerful chakra storm. Hu saw
so he stayed away, next was your
performance. Indra stood
steady in the chakra storm, eyes looking straight
does not blink. Under the influence of true reincarnation of the impure earth
, Asura revived with
a youthful appearance. I didn't expect that we
would meet each other this way. Your brother
I looked at
Indra's flying Susanu, shouting, this is the resting place of
father, can we not fight here?
Indra naturally disagreed. Susanu's greatsword
slashed straight down at Asura. Asura
quickly used the jade path to turn into
two crossed black sticks to block the great
peach. Because he could not bear to destroy his father's
resting place, plus without the help
of the tailed beasts, Asura quickly lost
in the confrontation with Indra. Indra
advanced to peel the opponent's neck, launching
six paths of darkness to absorb. Six paths chakra
continuously poured
from Asura's body into Indra's body. After combining
's strong power,
's two Sarin eyes evolved into Rinegan Luc Cau Ngoc.
A sun-shaped seal appeared on his right
hand, and each path jade ball
also appeared behind him. Asura's
despair reached its peak. He
shouted at Indra not to make another mistake.
Indra looked at his younger brother who was slowly melting
into shreds of paper, pondered for a moment, then
said, "My stupid brother, our
destinies have been intertwined for thousands of
years, it's not like we can stop
if we want to stop." Having finished speaking, Indra used a black stick
to chop Asura, then threw
into the air and launched a celestial earth blast to seal
and seal him inside. After the dust
settled, Hessu came to Indra's side and complimented
, "As expected of you, you easily
accomplished what Madara spent his
entire life doing." Hearing that, Indra coldly
said, "Don't compare me to someone who has changed
's life. Now that he has received the power of the six paths, he
is no different from the six paths. As long as
has the ten-tails, he will be completely
immortal, becoming eternal." Black
Zu smiled cunningly in his heart, the day he
revived his mother was almost here. Right now
Naruto is convening everyone to
discuss a plan to deal with Indra. Suddenly
Minato transmitted urgent
news, the ten-tails they were holding had disappeared.
Naruto heard that, his face was serious,
had the ability to ignore the Four Red Ocean Formation to move
to the ten-tails. In today's
ninja world, there is no second person who can
do it. He guessed that Indra had begun
to take action. Naruto immediately called an emergency
meeting of the five kage. He told everyone
about what happened near
here in the ninja world. After Indra
obtained the ten-tails, the next step was to release
the infinite moon poison. Naruto thinks that
this is a good opportunity to reveal
Osatsuki's secret to the entire ninja world. Because
so that I can have absolute
trust in the ninja world in the future, I want
as many ninjas as possible to not fall
into the infinite moon poison. What needs to be done is
for the Kage to think of a way, for the ninjas to gather
as much as possible to the rain village,
together to witness this
historic battle with Indra. And Naruto
's method to avoid infinite moon poison is to take advantage
of Obito's orange space. After
finished making arrangements, he and Obito
discussed countermeasures. At this time on a
grass field, Indra looked at the Ten-Tails that he
summoned, and fell into a short
contemplation. He did not know why this
Ten-Tails had a feeling of intimacy
. Hu stepped forward to praise, it's truly
a shame that you were able to easily steal the Ten-Tails
that Naruto worked so hard to seal
. Ragen, Indra's Luc Cau Ngoc appeared
unpredictable, he once
emphasized, don't compare him to an ordinary
reincarnated person. Although Hzu
did not like Indra's arrogant appearance,
but in order to revive Kaguya, he remained loyal.
becomes an entourage. At this time,
Indra jumped on the head of the Ten-Tails, joined both hands in
seals, and activated the six paths and ten-tailed old seals.
Along with the Ten-Tails transforming into a liquid
that poured into his body, his black hair
turned gray, and the number of path
gems on his back also turned into 12.
The additional 13th path jade created
a six path staves in his
left hand. Becoming Jin Churiki of the
ten-tails, Indra stood in the wind. HSU saw
like that and couldn't help but exclaim in his heart, Inra's
strength was far beyond his
imagination. If Kaguya could borrow
's body to revive him,
's strength would probably be far beyond his peak. The Jinchuriki
of the ten-tailed beasts is different from the Jinchuriki of other
tailed beasts that can release the ten-tailed beasts
at will without affecting the
synchronization of power between the Jinchuriki and the ten-tailed beasts. HSU
suggested that Indra release the Ten-Tails now so that
it can evolve into a divine tree, waiting until
the flower buds bloom to be able to unleash
infinite moon poison. Hearing that, Indra released
and released his ten-tails. He said clearly
, "Absorb the power of this land
to evolve until you become
into the strongest form of a divine tree."
At this time on a distant mountain peak, Madara
had just finished cultivating and was looking towards the God
Tree. The huge flow of chakra
suddenly appeared, making him extremely uncomfortable. Since
it wasn't Naruto or
Hasirama's chakra, he decided to take a look. At
this time, the Ten-Tails is absorbing natural
energy to transform into a divine tree. Everything
went so smoothly that Black Jetsu couldn't
help but feel a little worried. Logically, Sasuke
was killed, that Naruto should come out here and cause
trouble. Why hasn't
appeared yet? But now he
can only be unchangeable and adapt to all changes.
Before transforming into a divine tree,
The Ten-Tails also had two transformations
state, as long as you safely overcome these two
states, no one will be able to prevent
from happening indefinitely. After
when the infinite moon poison is completed, Indra
will fall into an extremely weak state, which
is when he has a heart-to-heart with
the opponent. At this time, Indra was floating
in the air with his eyes open, looking towards
the horizon. Not far away, a figure
was quickly approaching. After Indra
described it, Hessu chuckled and said, "The one who came
was another reincarnated person, Uchi
Madara." Hearing that, Indra showed interest
, he intended to use Madara to test his
strength after becoming the Jinchuriki of the
Ten-Tails. I only saw him sealing with two
fingers, the divine tree that had not yet formed on the
side immediately condensed a tailed beast
jade. The tailed beast jade carried an amazing
wind towards Madara. Madara
saw the tailed beast jade suddenly fly towards
and was a bit surprised. It was the first time
had seen it on such a large scale, but
had just dodged it because of the fight, looking a bit embarrassed.
He crossed his hands and formed seals, launching
the great technique of wood-dun phased-in. Pairs of
wood-dun hands emerged from the ground
to support the tailed beast jade, and finally
changed the trajectory of the tailed beast jade. The tailed beast jade
flew diagonally into the sky, finally exploding
in the air, lighting up the night. Black
Zu saw this and couldn't believe it. Just one
technique blocked the Ten
Tailed beast jade. He had to admit that Madara had become
stronger again. The corner of Indra's mouth raised a
curve. Seeing that Madara had some
similarities to him, he immediately showed his eyes.
The corner of Madara's mouth curled up into an arrogant
smile. He repeated the words Saas
Suuke had told him to Indra.
Relics of the old era, don't come out here to
just for fun. Having finished speaking, he turned on Susanu
's three faces and launched a super heavy rock
heavenly obstacle. A meteorite
was hundreds of times heavier than usual.
screamed. Seeing that, his eyes widened
, he shouted at Madara, don't forget
now I am not an impure body
of the earth. That meteorite falling on Madara
will also be a big deal. But Madara
's mind was extremely calm. Behind Indra
is the newly planted divine tree. If
Indra chooses to dodge, it will be difficult for the divine tree
to avoid being seriously damaged. So
he guessed that Indra would find a way to stop
the meteorite. This is also a good
method for him to probe
the opponent's information. At this time, Indra raised his eyes to look at
the large meteorite that was constantly
approaching. He could see that this meteorite
seemed to have been crafted with some kind of
magic, so it was especially heavy. He complimented
that Madara's moves weren't bad, but in
his eyes were still lacking a bit. As soon as the words
ended, Indra planted the six-pathed staff
in his hand into the ground, then clasped his hands
together and launched the six-pathed precept
birth. The immense tree world grew into
the sky, intertwining with each other, forming a
super-large wooden table that supported the
meteorites, and finally became strong enough to support the
meteorites. Madara was a bit surprised,
could use wood release on a larger scale
than Hasirama, so even if
used a second meteorite, I'm afraid
would hardly be effective. Indra slowly lowered both
hands and calmly said, "I have received your
greetings, so it is
my turn to return the favor." As his right eye
suddenly opened wide, the sky was suddenly
torn apart, and a black six-path lightning
appeared above Madara.
Madara's pupils shrank, the speed of that lightning
was completely impossible to dodge in the
normal way. He opened his Rinegan wide, intending to
use the tombstone clone to take
the damage on his behalf, but at this moment a hand
suddenly placed on his shoulder. Dynamic road!
The next second, black lightning collapsed the place where
stood where the two stood into a deep abyss.
But after the smoke cleared, Madara
stood at the bottom of the abyss unharmed,
as if the attack had no real
impact on him. When he turned around,
discovered that Obito had arrived. Just now
was the penetrating ability shared by
Obito that helped him avoid the attack.
Although Madara did not expect Obito to come
here, he was not happy that the other
helped him. Even if Obito doesn't come, he
can stop it himself. Obito coldly
said, "Madara is still as hateful as ever. If
it wasn't for Naruto's trouble asking him to come
here, even if he beat him to death, he still wouldn't have come. No matter
why Jin's rival, he still hasn't settled
with Madara." Having finished speaking, Obito remembered
how Naruto looked when he relied on him. For
Naruto, he was willing to temporarily put aside
old resentment. After talking for a while,
he told Madara to take advantage of
's abilities. After a short fight with
Indra, Madara also clearly understood that the opponent
was not someone who could win
alone. Just now, even if he could
deal with it on his own, at least
would have to lose a clone. The blue Susanu
rose from the bottom of the abyss, and the two
Uchi who had conquered the ninja world were
once again standing together. Madara said
that even if it's a group collaboration, he
must be the leader. Obito closed his eyes and said,
"It's okay." Indra looked at Madara unharmed, somewhat in disbelief. Seeing
...
, the man next to him has some
ability. HSU crawled next to Indra
and introduced him to Obito's ability to penetrate
. After listening, Indra looked
interested. As expected of a descendant of our
clan. Well, let's get a little serious
then. Dark purple chakra erupted from
Indra's body, piercing heaven and earth,
transforming into a shape that made even
Madara's entire Susanu body was also
ashamed. This is the Six Paths
Susanu that the Six Paths Sage used
when fighting Kaguya. Thousands of meters high
Susanu filled the field of vision, Obito
couldn't help but break out in a cold sweat. Can this
also be considered Susanu? Madara
's eyes stared, unexpectedly there was another form on Susanu's
legs.
At this time, because
's other Linegon eye is still with Naruto, the limit of
uses of his grave clone is only
two. He let his body and clone rotate
at the same time, opening up Susanu's true body,
and at the same time Obito was also inside his Susanu
. Madara controlled the tombstone to
and continuously slashed
to attack Indra's body, but
could not penetrate
's defense. Seeing this, Indra
said coldly, somewhat amused. Several
black lightning arrows suddenly formed above his head along with a
swing of his greatsword. Tens of thousands of lightning arrows shot towards Madara's grave
...
. The Susanu of one of the
tomb clones immediately shattered.
Indra immediately stabbed
towards
Madara's remaining tomb clone. But Madara saw the right opportunity,
activated the tomb rotation and switched positions
with this tomb rotation clone. While
leaned forward to avoid the attack, his
Susanu's hands tightly grasped Indra's Susanu
's wrists, shouting at the same time: "Obito."
Obito next to him immediately understood
Madara's strategy, immediately shot
Camui on Susanu Indra's forehead.
Camui tore through the defense layer of the six paths
Susanu, Madara's eyes stopped, his
tomb used his teleportation to penetrate
the gap of the opponent's Susanu, directly
knocking Indra out of Susanu. This move
surprised Indra, he
chuckled, "As expected of a reincarnated person."
mine." Having finished speaking, he formed a seal with two
fingers, controlling the six paths of Susanu from
far away, one sword pierced
Susanu Madara's forehead. Madara's Susanu shattered
in the air, but the two people under Obito's
shared penetration were both
unharmed and fell to the ground. Indra saw that,
khanh cam mui was indeed a good ability.
Hu observed from afar that Indra was
happy, he could see that the other
seemed to be very appreciative of Madara and Obito. Madara
looked at the divine tree that was constantly growing
in the distance, sinking into contemplation. For
them, the divine tree was a living target that could
not move. As long as they made good use of the
tree, they could definitely restrain Inra.
to some extent. He turned on Susanu
again and let Obito stand on his
Susanu's palm. He told Obito that there was only one chance that
...
would defeat the opponent. Hearing that, Obito couldn't help but sneer
...
, not expecting that arrogant
old man to say those words. Madara
spread his wings and flew towards the divine tree, then
took advantage of constantly changing positions with
Luan Mo to avoid
Indra's attack. Hessu immediately guessed
's intention, he worriedly told Indra to quickly
protect the divine tree. Hearing that, Indra
quickly flew towards the divine tree. Indra was hooked, Madara suddenly turned
...
and threw Obito in his hand towards Indra's
Susanu head, and he continued to
advance, trying to destroy the divine tree.
Indra had to continue moving forward, and
had to launch the jade path behind him to attack
to attack Obito, but
Obito maintained his condition throughout
penetrated, entered
Susanu where Indra was and extended his hand straight
towards Indra. At this time, Indra was a bit worried
, he took the black stick and slashed at Obito
but was pierced by his arm
Obito quickly grabbed Indra's
outstretched arm, and at the same time
eyes activated the Ten Thousand Worlds Orange Mui. The
casting speed of both eyes combined with Van
Gioi Ca Mui uses up all of this synergy
, even if the opponent is Indra at such a close
distance, it will be difficult to escape.
Indra was finally sucked into
gong. Susanu of the Six Paths without Indra's
support immediately disintegrated. Madara
saw this and turned around to catch Obito who was
falling. After landing, both
showed smiles that they hadn't seen for a long time, and
finally succeeded. But at this time
suddenly rang out a
teasing laugh in the air. It's unbelievable that the two
of you could deliver such
such a short time. A black
consecutive attacks in
space-time door suddenly
appeared next to it, flying out two lightning spears
that sought jade paths, attacking Obito and
Madara in turn. Obito couldn't believe it, he didn't
expect that someone could escape
from his orange space. Does Rinegan Luc Cau
Ngoc have the ability to travel through time and space
? Due to the side effects of using
the Van Gioi Camui just now,
Obito is now unable to enter
penetration mode. Madara discovered the clue, and in the last
minute, he used his tombstone clone
to switch places with Obito, while he
and another tombstone were pierced through the heart by the jade spear
. Obito saw that
couldn't help but be stunned. He asked
Madara in a complicated way why he saved him. Although Madara's
breathing became weak, he still
maintained his supreme dignity. said,
"So, that girl's enemy is considered
I have already paid you, the two of us
no one owes the other." The most important
reason Madara saved Obito was because Obito was
the person Naruto sent, in his heart he thought
had to give Naruto an explanation, even though
Naruto was also the first to open
his heart. "Your words are also
kind." Madara told Obito to quickly use Camui
to escape, telling Naruto, "I
can't keep my promise to him
anymore." Hearing that, Obito clenched his fist,
self-righteous guy. "It's
better for you to tell Naruto yourself
." Having finished speaking, he opened the mangyo again, squeezed
out all his strength and finally launched the
cam, sucking both Madara and himself inside. Obito
exhausted by Chakra and Madara exhausted by
life force are both located on
square blocks. At this time Madara was not the
Jinchuriki of the Ten-Tails, being stabbed through the heart
would undoubtedly die.
But as he was near death,
Hasirama's face on his chest began to
melt. Senzu's life force infused
into his entire body, constantly restoring
his vitality. At the same time, his
faint Linegan eye was also undergoing some
change. Outside, Indra
had no intention of pursuing and killing
Madara and his teammates. Because compared to this,
he is more interested in the divine tree that is about to bloom
. At this time, Naruto and Sasuke were discussing
about dealing with the infinite moon
poison. According to the information provided by Naruto,
people reincarnated from impure earth will not be
affected by infinite moon poison. So
Tobirama came up with a bold idea.
He suggested that all the ninja make
willows, then use those white coins to purify
the earth and reincarnate. This not only helps
everyone have an auto-immune
body against unlimited moon poison, but is also more suitable
for the next battle. Hearing that, everyone
silently looked at Tobirama. Sasuke
commented that Tobirama was truly a naturally evil Hokage
. Tobirama told everyone not to
look at him with those eyes. He just wanted
to ease the tense atmosphere at
the scene. Suddenly a vortex
black spacetime appeared before
everyone's faces. Obito brought the unconscious Madara
out from the vortex.
Naruto quickly stepped forward to look at Madara's appearance
, his eyes slightly condensed. Obito
blamed himself and said that Madara was hit because he saved him
. At this time,
Hasirama's face on Madara's chest disappeared.
Naruto could feel a change in
Madara's body.
He sat down, placed his hand with positive
force on Madara's chest, then used positive
force to help him heal the wound in
's heart. At this moment, his
left Linegon eye suddenly felt uncomfortable.
The next second, Hasirama excitedly
shouted Madara's name. It turns out that Madara
, who was in a coma, has woken up. After combining Hasirama's
cells with Naruto's
positive force, Madara's
Rinegan evolved into the
Jade Rinegan. His eyes on
Naruto also evolved. Madara
stood up feeling the unbelievable
change in his body. Now he
is not Uchi Madara, nor is
Senju Hashirama, but a super
Uchi who has forgotten his name. Madara felt
helpless but moved to push Hashirama
away who was hugging him. He told Hasirama
not to be like that, he wouldn't be defeated
that easily. Looking at this scene, everyone with
faces looked at each other and smiled, the tense
atmosphere at the scene was immediately
eased. Naruto went forward to congratulate
Madara had finally transformed. He
decided to return the Rinegan eye on
himself to Madara. Since Rinegan can only
have a full pair to exert
its true power, one-eyed Madara
fighting Indra is unfair.
Madara heard that, coldly snorted and said, "Losing is
losing, only weak people look for excuses, I
am not a person who refuses to lose."
Naruto smiled slightly, then removed the
Rinegan eye from his body. Now that
has the power of six paths, he no longer has to
rely on Rinegan's power anymore. Moreover
, this eye originally belongs to Madara, it
can only exert the greatest effect
on Madara. Madara took
eye, placed it in the missing left eye socket with
with a passing wind, he could
clearly feel his synergy
skyrocketing, the number of clones rotating behind
's back also became eight. Naruto uses
positive energy to restore his
missing eye. From beginning to end, he still
liked these blue pupils of his
the most.
At this time on a fertile field, Indra
wholeheartedly looked at the buds of the divine tree that were about to
bloom. Suddenly, the voice of the divine tree rang out in the air, reminding Indra
...
to absorb everything into his body. Seeing that,
couldn't help but move forward, telling Indra to quickly
absorb the divine tree, just becoming the
Jinchuriki of the divine tree could easily
perform infinite moon poison, and
would receive stronger chakra than at
this time and truly immortal life force.
Indra heard that, pondered for a moment, then
jumped up and placed his hand on the divine tree. A moment
later, the divine tree suddenly turned into liquid
and rushed into his body. Feeling
the change in his body that went beyond
's imagination, Indra exclaimed, "Is this
the power of the divine tree? Compared to the Ten-Tails,
has truly entered a completely new
realm." Seeing this, Hac Zu showed hope
, has he finally come to this step
? He suppressed his fluttering heart,
said in a deep voice, "You have the power of
Jine. When you get close to the moon, the eye of
the moon hidden on your forehead will open."
Indra flew straight up into the sky, stopping
high enough that the moon just filled
eyesight. Along with the main Linegon eye
blood-red jade hook on the forehead opened, the limitless
moon poison was officially released
, the white light was so strong that it could
hide everything, illuminating every corner
of the Earth. At this moment, no matter who
is, in the moment that white light
shines through, their eyes will turn
into Rinegan Luc Cau Ngoc. This is
proof of falling under magic. At this time
in the rain village, Naruto had prepared the
ready, transmitted the Nine-Tails' chakra to
each ninja present, then relied on the
chakra connection between him and Obito so that each
ninja could maintain a state of penetration.
Obito's original
penetration time limit was 10 minutes, now adding
the increase of
Naruto's nine-tailed mantle, the penetration time is enough to last
long until the infinite moon poison ends.
A moment later, the white light emitted by the moon's eye
gradually receded.
All the other people on earth
have fallen into the infinite moon poison. Hu saw
and said, the next thing left was to hang them
on the tree. Indra clasped his hands together and released a
divine tree under his birth form. The divine tree
once again descended to the ground, its
spread to every corner of the
earth, hanging all those who fell into the illusion
up into the tree. At this point, the infinite moon
poison is finally completed. Indra breathed
a sigh of relief, slowly lowering to the ground.
Hau complimented Indra on a good job, and at the same time slowly
approached behind the opponent. After
getting close, he suddenly put his black
hand behind the opponent's heart, but
something unexpected happened. Indra
took a step faster, turned around and grabbed
Black Jessu's arm.
shouted in surprise, "What?" The corner of Indra
's mouth carried a cold smile, "The sailor has
revealed, finally waiting for you
to be unable to hold back." Hu couldn't believe
was asked when Indra had found out
come on. Indra calmly said, "A person
helped me unconditionally, in the dark
there was definitely a big conspiracy, so he
was already on guard against Hessu. Hesu was worried and wanted
to retreat, but Indra pinned him down.
He was terrified in his heart, after
consecutive battles and using infinite
moon poison, he still had
great power. Even though Indra didn't know what Hessu's purpose was, but once he hadn't used it in his whole life, he used a black stick to chop Black Jetsu and threw it into the air, screaming in despair, "Mom!
...
...
...
...
I'm useless!" Then he was sealed
in the celestial earth. After completing
, Indra turned his eyes to look at the rainy
village. Just now when the infinite moon poison
exploded, he could feel a mysterious
power blocking the light. The
highest fighting force of the ninja was
largely there. That was it. What did Uzumaki Naruto
HSU say? It was time to go meet him
, Indra turned into a white
light, rushing towards the rain village. At this time,
Naruto took the ninjas out of Obito's space. Suddenly
...
transmitted shocking news. coming here. Naruto didn't
...
...
feel strange, just smiled and said, the
thousand-year-old plotter has encountered a
problem this time. Sasuke saw that Naruto was not
panicked, a bit surprised, he reminded
not to forget that the sealed HSU had
which meant Kaw could not be revived. Naruto
told Sasuke not to worry,
said now It was too early to revive, he
believed that Hzu definitely had some
moves left. Naruto's words
gave everyone a sedative
The experts of the villages gathered here
were all eager to try their hand.
...
...
heaven and earth changed color, standing tall before
the faces of the ninjas. His cold
eyes scanned the entire school. Where his eyes
passed, none of the ninja alliance
did not tremble, some ninja even
were directly made unconscious by this pressure.
Rattan Terbi hugged her proud chest
tightly. She originally thought that the First Hokage and
Uchi Madara were the pinnacle of
ninja strength. Later, the appearance of Naruto
renewed her awareness. But this
enemy before him was completely different from
any strong enemy he had ever encountered. Just
standing in front of him can realize that he
is stronger than Naruto, stronger than
anyone. Indra scanned around and exclaimed,
"Is this the situation of the Ring Sect after thousands of
years? Is its strength that weak?" Having said
, his eyes focused on Naruto.
"A hateful Asura aura.
Are you Naruto Uzumaki?"
Naruto strongly responded that the other person had any
advice. Indra told Naruto to let
unimportant people leave. He doesn't
like wasting time on weak
people. Having finished speaking, he raised his hand and pointed
at Naruto and Sasuke, Madara and Hasirama
and Obito respectively. He told these five people to stay,
the remaining miscreants should go home and
sleep. As soon as these words were uttered, the
just exhausted ninjas all let out a loud roar.
Dare to look down on us. A few hot-blooded
village ninjas rushed forward, but before
could get close to Indra, the sky suddenly
let down a black bolt of lightning, intending to scatter them.
Fortunately, Naruto's nine-tailed hand saved
them. Madara saw this and said in a deep voice, "That
is the doujutsu of the opponent's
left eye, using the natural lightning
to fuse with the force of the six paths, creating a
black storm, which can be said to be a difficult move
to defend. The ninjas present looked at the bottomless
hole before their eyes, and no one could
tremble. Monsters like that, we must
how to fight him?" At this moment
Madara suddenly jumped up, laughing loudly, he
laughed and said, "Indra is right, Tap Nham
if you don't want to die, then stay away." Four
other Hokage also stepped forward to shield
from everyone's faces. Minato told Naruto not to
act hastily, let them probe
information first. As soon as the words finished, in the air
Then there was a terrifying explosion,
sending Indra flying away. This was
's attack on Madara's grave. Indra looked up
and said teasingly, "Isn't
my defeater?"
Rinegan revealed a bright
light. He confidently said that
was different from before
also discovered this. Compared to
in the previous battle, the number of
clones of Madara had changed from two to
eight. More importantly, the hateful
Hasirama face on Madara
had also disappeared. Hearing these words,
Madara's eyebrows tightened, warning Indra that he had said no
...
should say. Regarding the defeater
's threat, Indra completely ignored. A
pitch black jade spear
condensed in his hand. The lightning
technique launched, Indra
's body turned into lightning, moving towards
's face at a speed far beyond
's expectations. In the blink of an eye, the Lightning
Spear Dog once again pierced
through Madara's heart.
Madara's aura weakened for a moment, but he
who should have died, suddenly
appeared intact behind Indra, only
was a tomb clone who had lost a bit of his eyesight his evolution, are those
...
...
shadows effective in replacing the dead
? This is the new ability that
Madara has after opening Rinegon Luc
Cau Ngoc. Not only does the number of
shadows increase, but Luan Mu no longer needs to be recurring
returns to the body. If the artificer is destroyed
, the shadow that will temporarily replace the artificer
will disappear. In other words, now that
wants to destroy Madara, only
can kill him nine times in a short time
can do it. In addition,
Madara also activated another
fearsome ability. Although Indra did not understand Madara's
new ability, he knew that it was always right to
prioritize directly destroying the opponent's
shadows. But
Madara was not the average person, he let
seven shadows attack together, while his
body came in front of the four Hokage.
Along with Rinegan's evolution, in addition to
increasing the number of tombs, Madara
also gained the hidden ability of
tombs. Having finished speaking, Madara opened the Rindegan,
activated the world to rotate. The four
Hokages behind him and himself in the
blink of an eye were all in the space of the black and white
tomb. Tobirama wondered what Madara
had done. Madara said briefly, in this
space, they can see the
world outside, but the outside world
cannot see them, unless the
direction has Rinegan or the Six Path Immortal
technique. In addition, only people who possess the yin
yang power of the six paths can attack
people in the grave world.
Tobirama heard that and immediately complained to Madara
Isn't that useless?
Indra's opponent is an existence that possesses both
Rinegan and the yin and yang powers of the six paths.
Hasirama told Tobirama not to interfere. He
believed that Madara would not do such
nonsense. Madara ignored Tobirama,
continued to say, "In the world of Luan Mo
there is another benefit, that is, this place is not
bound by physical laws
outside, so it can perform
actions like teleportation
in time, the same ability as Luan Mo Hu
Shun also comes from there." Four Kage
suddenly understood, Minato tried floating in
mid-air, he exclaimed that indeed
could not feel the constraints of
gravity. He wants to call this move
super weightless wind spirit technique.
Tobirama let go of his arms crossed over
's chest, looked at Indra who was surrounded by shadows
, and said darkly, "Then let's
do some backstabbing
." At this time, in the fight with
Unicorn Tomb, Indra destroyed two
Luan Mo shadows. He thought he could get some rest thanks to
, but
turned around and saw four other shadows
approaching. When he looked closely,
realized that these shadows were not
Madara but Hasirama and the other
people. Minato in the Luan Tomb world was
the first person to rush forward in
zero-gravity conditions. A Rasengan shot
successfully hit Indra's back. Seeing that
the Rasengan was effective, Minato was happy to
discover that the Rasengan did not have additional
techniques but could also cause damage to
the opponent. Madara mutters that it's
natural, Luan Mo itself is
a jutsu equivalent to the force of the six paths,
otherwise it wouldn't be just the force of the six paths
that could damage the force of the six paths
. After dusting off his body, Indra
tried to pursue Minato, but in
the air suddenly rang out the sound of a flying
thunderbolt. The gray blade light under
increasing the effectiveness of the tomb space
directly chopped off Indra's head. After
succeeding, Tobirama gave a
wishful smile. No matter how strong a person is, if they lose their head
it's useless, right?
Indra's head was floating coldly muttering
, "These people are really troublesome."
His headless body suddenly moved
at extremely fast speed, his two hands
front and back grabbed the heads of
Tobirama and Minato respectively. Tobirama was frightened,
immediately intended to activate the Flying Thunder Spirit to
escape, but discovered that
could not activate it. This is the
binding power of Yin Yang Non. Indra's
head laughed in the air,
died. Two
small holes appeared in his palm, two jade spheres turned into
attack form, about to pierce the heads of
Tobirama and the others. In just
inches, Hiruen quickly rushed over to save
Minato, but it was too late to save Tobirama
. Just when Tobirama was about
to be wiped out by yin and yang release, Madara suddenly
activated a tomb rotation, he exchanged a
tomb rotation shadow with Tobirama. That
tomb shadow, after being hit by the jade path seeking
weapon, disappeared into
nothingness. The rescued Tobirama looked at
Madara with a complicated expression. That guy
still saved me? Indra's body immediately
picked up the head from the ground and placed it on his neck,
the head immediately joined
the body. Seeing this scene, everyone
exclaimed in surprise, "What a scary
monster." Hasirama saw that his younger brother
was almost destroyed, angrily launched
the heavenly hand, the Buddha on top of the
tomb world came. Seeing this move
, Indra discovered that Hasirama
was another reincarnated person of
Asura. No wonder there was a
aura on his body that made him nauseous. Several
jade spheres turned into a line of
comprehensive defense barriers, surrounding
Indra. People outside without
Rinegan could not see what happened
in the space of the tomb, they could only
see that on the fence of
Indra's jade bridge suddenly appeared horrifying
explosions.
's punches in the tomb world are even
faster and stronger. In addition,
himself also belongs to the magic of immortality.
After a while of attacking, on the bridge fence
The jade path has cracks.
But just as they were about to break through, the
fists of the Heavenly Hands were about to run out
. Madara saw that and immediately followed,
launched a super heavy rock tomb,
causing disaster. An invisible
meteor from outside tore into the
sky. Madara shouted for Hasirama to catch
, this is a meteorite that has
reduced in weight. Hasirama raised his head, showing
a nostalgic smile. This scene is very
similar to when they threw rocks across the river in
years ago, only this time the rocks have changed into
meteorites. After
Hasirama's large Buddha statue used both hands to catch the
stone, he used his unparalleled strength and
threw it straight towards Indra without stopping
. Just before colliding with his opponent,
Madara suddenly formed a hand seal with two
fingers. Meteor Super light rock
immediately turns into super heavy rock
. The mass and density of the meteor
suddenly increased a thousand times. Indra
was slammed deep into the ground.
In addition to the jade ring fence
being completely shattered, one of his forests
was also broken, thrown thousands of meters away. At
the same time, Madara's tomb world also reached
its limit and was dissolved. The
first time using this technique was a
huge burden for him. He knelt to the ground
breathing heavily. A moment later, Indra soared
into the sky, laughing loudly and saying, "The last time
was not bad, continue to make me happy."
Tobirama looked at Indra with a serious
expression. "Does even
's attack of that level have no effect?" Sasuke and
Naruto saw this and jumped forward. cover
for Tobirama and the others.
Naruto shouted, "Let's go, guys."
Having finished speaking, Naruto and Sasuke
took turns rushing forward, launching a
fierce attack on Indra. Faced with
this childish attack, Indra quickly
formed seals with both hands. Six great paths
when the lightning magic was launched, the sky
immediately rolled with dark clouds, turning
into infinite lightning bolts that descended
to attack. Naruto relied on his demon
magic body, continuously dodging the incoming lightning
. As for Sasuke, his right hand
condensed electric current, and at the same time his right eye
condensed and activated Takemi Kazuchi. All
even the lightning that landed on his head were miraculously
changed by him.
's thunder finally gathered behind Sasuke,
transformed into Kirin's form. Along with
Sasuke swinging his hand towards Indra, six
Kirin paths rushed towards Indra. Indra was a bit
surprised, the last time they fought, Sasuke was
beaten up by his own lightning. Did
think of a way to break
in such a short time? He used the jade path
to turn into a shield, blocking it in front of him to
resist the attack. But as soon as the attack
ended, a Kunai Flying
Thunder God suddenly appeared behind
him. The next second, Naruto used the lightning
body technique to arrive, holding the black stick
in his hand and swung it towards Indra's head. Seeing that,
immediately showed an arrogant smile,
's coordination was not bad. Only to see him quickly seal
with two fingers, a spear
of lightning made from black inflammation and
lightning, quickly stabbed towards Naruto from
behind him. Naruto couldn't believe it.
quickly turned into a chakra hand,
grabbed the incoming lightning spear
, and at the same time raised his right hand and shouted,
"J, lend me chakra." Tien Phap Dung
, the super giant jade loa with all his hands, Ly Kiem
immediately condensed in his hand.
Naruto threw it at Indra, then used
Flying Lightning to return to the ground. Along with
worrying about the entire sword exploding,
the heat wave spread everywhere, even
Indra who was using the jade path to defend
also frowned slightly. He opened his left eye wide,
activated the ameterasu body substitution technique. After
when his body dissolved into black inflammation, his body
reappeared in a far away place.
At this moment Sasuke signaled Naruto.
Naruto immediately understood what Sasuke meant. He condensed
a ball from the complete speaker in
hand, and Sasuke condensed the six paths
heavenly bird. The two then rushed towards
each other. In the moment they passed
each other, Sasuke used his heavenly hand to swap
to switch Indra between the two. Indra
didn't understand why he suddenly
appeared in the middle of the attack spiral. The
seal effect of Tu Dun Loa Toan Hoan
made him unable to move freely.
Naruto stretched out his eight chakra arms behind
his back, each arm condensed a
super huge jade trumpet sword with
properties of a tailed beast. He told Sasuke to quickly
dodge, and at the same time threw all his swords
at Indra. The light of the
earth-shattering explosion immediately
covered the opponent, but Naruto's
attack was not as smooth as
thought. Purple chakra suddenly exploded
on Indra, blocking all
of Naruto's attacks. With
the further release of Chakra,
Indra's six paths of Susanu stand tall between
heaven and earth. Seeing that this Susanu was several times larger than
Sasuke's full body Susanu,
Naruto couldn't help but swallow his saliva. Is this
the Susanu that the Sage of Six Paths used to
fight against Kaguya in the past? Indra
chuckled, commanding Susanu to clasp her
hands together. He wants to teach Naruto and Sasuke
what true sealing techniques are.
Along with the surrounding ground shattering,
the leg and earth blasts were launched.
Indra used himself as the
nucleus of the celestial earth radiating a black force
field, distorting everything
around. Terrible suction force, pulling both
Naruto and Sasuke towards him. Sasuke
exclaimed in horror, "Is that guy crazy?
Does he want to seal himself
in the celestial earth?" Naruto
faced the danger without flinching
, he used his Chakra hand to grab
Sasuke, and tried to use Philo to escape
. But at this time he was surprised
to discover that, in this strange gravitational field
, he could not feel the
marks of Philo next to him. outside. That's because
the force field created by Indra, and at the same time
also changed the sensing field between
fathers. Naruto shouted loudly. This time
is really not good.
can't blame Naruto for miscalculating. That's even more
...
...
...
difficult to deal with than Kawya. After all, Kawya is
just a novice in combat. Fortunately, Obito suddenly
...
appeared strongly in the outer circle and
quickly teleported Naruto
and Sasukedi The world of ninja
...
...
were all present. Indra looked at Madara who was
surrounding him, he smiled fearlessly. "This is how
...
should fight." Susanu stood tall
thousands of meters, Indra shouted,
"Come and challenge, you descendants of
."
Naruto as well as Susanu's true forms of
Sasuke and Madara also stood tall between
heaven and earth. Several silhouettes surrounded
Indra in the blink of an eye, Indra
...
's sword light turned into three heads and six arms, holding
No Makako Iumi in his left hand, and
Susanu's scimitar in his right hand Susanu's
slash on the nose rained down, strongly
breaking the attack of Naruto and
team. Seeing that the attack failed, Naruto
told Sasuke and the others to hold back
printed out, he needed some time to
prepare a jutsu. Hearing that, Sasuke immediately
controlled Susanu to also use his bow and loaded
arrows, several arrows containing six paths of force flew
straight towards Indra's Susanu's forehead.
Indra smiled scornfully, swung two
swords to block Sasuke's attack and continued
to swing the sword forward. A beam of
sword energy from the tip of the blade cut off Sasuke's
Susanu's head from afar. Before
Sasuke could react, several Susanu arrows
rushed towards his Susanu's opening.
Luckily, Sasuke promptly used
his strength to dodge the attack. Taking advantage of
Sasuke attracting Indra's attention,
Madara's Susanu and Luan Mo rushed out from
Indra's left. The great sword Susanu attacks
fiercely. With a loud bang, the
wing of Indra's left hand holding the sword was cut
off. His eyes became fierce, a
lightning spear condensed in Susanu's
other hand. Indra wielded the powerful lightning spear
and pierced the head of Madara's Susanu.
Luckily,
Madara's Rinegan ability worked. Finally,
a tomb clone replaced him and went to
's place of death. Suddenly a blue Susanu
burst into flames. Two black
swords condensed in Susanu
's hands. This is Obito's Susanu and
that pitch black sword is the
Camui Suriken that Kakashi once used
. Obito aimed his throw towards
Indra's Susanu's right arm. Cam
Suriken, after hitting the target, created
a violent vortex, separating Indra's right
arm from his body. At this time, his six
Susanu paths were in an armless
state. Everyone took advantage of the victory and rushed
up, once again condensing their great moves
, preparing to completely destroy
all of Indra's Susanu. Indra
's eyes turned blood red and green
because of anger, Susanu resisted the destruction,
just recovered at an incredibly
speed. In the moment of complete
recovery, Susanu's original dark purple color
turned blood red, and a sky-high
murderous aura suddenly rose up. Indra's great sword
Susanu, after condensing,
accumulated power and swept horizontally. Everyone's Susanu
was instantly cut off
at the waist. Sasuke, Madara and Obito were all
surprised. Everyone hastily retreated to
different directions, preparing to fight around
. But Indra suddenly shot six
blood-red long spears in six
different directions. Immediately after that, he formed the seal
with two fierce green pillar fingers
formation. A hexagonal barrier filled with
air was quickly erected. The six
sides of the barrier wall, including the top, are
covered by the armor of the six paths of Susanu.
This barrier is not only
indestructible, but can also shield
space-time rings. Sasuke
said in surprise. This is an even more advanced formation than
Four Red Yang Formation, I didn't expect that he would have
the ability to use it alone. Indra laughed
and said that Sasuke and the others
had no way to escape. As soon as the words fell,
the fierce six-pillar divine formation began to shrink
rapidly. The space in which Sasuke and
the others could move was
constantly shrinking. They used
all kinds of techniques to destroy the barrier,
but the barrier was unharmed. Indra's blood red
Susanu fiercely
brandished the great sword in his hand. The
crimson slashes filled the barrier like
roaring mountains of seafood. Even though Sasuke and the
others reopened Susanu, it was just
like a fish on a chopping board that was
wildly destroyed. Obito saw that and immediately
decided to abandon Susanu and go
out. While falling, his left eye
focused on the barrier in front, emitting
an orange smell. Powerful hood swirl
broke a large hole in the barrier. Limit
of spatial separation has
been removed. Sasuke and Madara immediately
used their space-time abilities
to escape the barrier. Indra's face
was solemn, the ability of that person named
Obito was indeed a problem. He
dispelled the evil divine formation, even the
Jinchuriki of the divine tree, maintaining
this barrier is also an extremely
heavy burden. Plus he opened the six paths
Blood red Susanu fought continuously.
At this time, his chakra was no longer as strong
as it was at first. Sasuke believes that if they just
gather their strength to attack one more
wave, it will definitely make the opponent
exposed. But this requires a
more powerful and overwhelming move. So are you
ready yet? Naruto! At this time
Kurama was hiding, sitting cross-legged. Naruto
relied on Sasuke's shield and the
others used Kurama's body to
absorb the natural energy on
the ground. At this time, his level of six paths of immortality
had far surpassed his previous life, natural energy
gathered together like a whale swallowing waves. Along with a column of semi-transparent
...
golden light soaring into the sky, the huge
energy caused Kurama
's appearance to change. This time it's not the three-headed
six-armed Kurama mode, but the four-headed and eight
-armed Kurama mode, the size is also three times larger than the normal
state, and more than 10
path jade balls are deep into a
string of beads worn on the neck. Indra looked at the appearance
of the Nine-Tails with some surprise. This is Asura's
strongest move. I didn't expect that
would be able to use
again. However, he confidently believes that this
is still not his opponent.
Naruto smiled and said, "Later the situation will
reverse." He placed Obito and Sasuke
along with the others inside the Nine-Tails
, then asked Sasuke and Madara to cooperate.
opened Susanu and covered Cuu Vi's body.
The purple and blue Susanu armor
turns covers half of the Sheep-Tails' body.
Naruto calls this move six paths of majesty
Kurama, Asura mode. Kurama wielded eight
Susanu scimitars and launched a
spinning attack towards Indra. Indra
was forced to use all his strength to defend. After
a period of attack, he and the remains of
Susanu gasped. The armor on
the Nine-Tails' fused body was also torn, it was
time to decide victory or defeat, the Nine-Tails' two
arms were placed in front of his chest to seal, the remaining six
arms were raised above his head,
together freed Father. This move
is the Asura Chi Jade that
he used in his previous life to confront Sasuke's Indra arrow
. It's just that this time the scale is
many times larger. Because he still had to conserve
's strength to deal with Kawya, Naruto decided
to use this move to send Indra
off the stage. He looked towards Obito,
Obito immediately understood and immediately transmitted his brother
's power into him. The initially yellow
energy ball turned
into pitch black in the blink of an eye. Naruto calls this move
the Six Paths Kamu Asura Chi Jade. He took
aim and threw it towards Indra. Indra
looked fierce, and at the same time shot
Indra's name out of his nose. But when the two great moves met
, collision did not happen. Asura orange
Chi Ngoc corrupted again through arrow
Indra. finally hit
Indra directly. With a loud bang, Indra
was engulfed in the light of the sky-high
explosion. A moment later, the
fragments of the jade path covered a pathetic
figure that fell to the ground. Indra's
hair was messy, her ears were ruffled, she laughed loudly, and she was
able to cause my strength to be consumed to
this level, but unfortunately you guys still don't
have any chance of winning." Seeing that the
wound on his body was continuously
recovering, his wound suddenly
suddenly gushed out a large amount of black
liquid, Black Jetsu's face appeared
above it. He smiled and asked, "Indra, are you still
okay?" Indra saw that Black Jesu was a bit
surprised. He remembered that Black Jesu had been sealed by him
with a celestial earth servant. And the reason
why Black Jesu could still appear is because
at that time he used half of
's body as a sacrifice to revive Indra. Now that
Indra is weakened, he is finally
able to go out and plunder his body. Indra
did not expect HSU to have such a
long plan. However, he did not
panic. After making up for the lost
power, he will in turn suppress Black
Jessu. But at this moment he was
surprised to discover that he was completely unable to
move. Black smirked, "It's useless, your
body has gradually been taken over by your mother during the battle
." Suddenly
, the ground flooded out, blue
chakra erupted, constantly pouring into
Indra's body. Seeing this, Naruto immediately reminded
everyone, "Pay attention, Kawya is coming."
At this time, Indra's body swelled into
a sphere. He glared at Hessu,
swearing that he would definitely make Hessu
regret it. Hesu naturally considered this
Indra's last struggle. Along with
Indra's pitiful scream, the tyrant
Kaguya was officially revived. Naruto returned
to the past, and finally had to fight
against Kawya. But he didn't expect that Kawya's strength
would be stronger than
's previous life more than once. The terrifying pressure when
faced each other head-on terrified Sasuke.
He asked Naruto, "Is this really the old Sasuki
Kawya in your memories?" Seeing that
Naruto also showed a surprised expression, everyone
understood that this was an unexpected
situation. Kawya floated in
the sky looking down at Naruto and the
others. HSU briefly explained to her.
Sasuke and Madara are reincarnations
of Indra, and this blonde boy is
reincarnation of Asura. Kawya glanced
over Sasuke and Madara, then stared
at Naruto. She could see that
Naruto's Chakra was very dense, not even inferior to Hagoromo's
.
Hessu added fuel to the fire and said, "The
biggest problem is this Uzumaki Naruto. If
it wasn't for his trouble, mother would have
revived." Obito asked Naruto what to do
, should he fight right away? Naruto knew
that fighting was inevitable, but
before that he planned to through negotiation
planted a seed in Kawya's head. He
stepped forward and said, "My name is Uzumaki
Naruto, seriously, I should
call you grandma." Hesu saw that
Naruto had just played the love card, he
told Naruto not to get too close, and
reminded Kawya to pay attention to Naruto's
mouth. Hearing that, Naruto couldn't help but
give a scornful smile. He laughed at
Hzu meditated, Kawya was able to revive
completely because of his hidden arrangements. If
you wanted to destroy HZU from the beginning, then
HSU absolutely wouldn't survive the second
episode. HSU heard that and scolded Naruto
for talking nonsense. Just as he was about to refute Naruto,
Naruto said something shocking. "Grandma
Kawya, you still remember Osatsuki
Isiki, right?" As soon as he heard the name Isiki, Kawya's
eyebrows moved slightly. Naruto knows very well that
the people Kawya despises are also
the Osatsuki who destroyed
his future. He talked to Kawya step by step, hoping
they could join hands to reconcile, work
together against those enemies and protect
the land they both loved
deeply. Although Naruto's words were very touching
, Kaguya, who had been betrayed by
her own child and sealed away for a thousand years,
had long since decided not to trust anyone
anymore. In the end,
's negotiations between the two sides did not make important progress.
Kawya told Naruto that if he really wanted to protect
this land, he should obediently donate
to Grady.
's heavenly command was activated, everyone immediately appeared
in a space of lava. Everyone
had seen Naruto's memories so
didn't feel strange. Among the few
only Obito was unable to fly and fell
into the lava. Naruto used the jade path
to make a disc for him to stand on. Hu
saw this and was extremely confused.
did not expect Naruto and the others to suddenly
be transported to the
space of the central heaven without any panic
. He began to offer plans to Kawya.
The only way for these people to
defeat Kaguya is to rely on the yin and yang power of
Naruto and Sasuke to seal it. So he
asked Kawaguya to choose Sasuke as
's first target. Kawya's long hair suddenly
suddenly turned into countless sharp spikes. Naruto
immediately spread the pearl in front of
, forming a protective barrier.
The rabbits are all blocked. Kawya saw
so he continued to attack fiercely, capturing ten
air attack gods. Countless punches with more
power than a statue came. The
jade path immediately shattered, Naruto and
the others were immediately exposed under the
rain of fists. Fortunately,
Naruto's taijutsu was no longer the same. The green layer
of the senjutsu outside his body
transformed into lightning, opening the
six path of immortal lightning chakra mode, preempting the
attack. In his previous life, in this
lava space, Naruto once confronted
with Kawuya's ten divine air attacks,
was eventually sent flying to the beam. This time
, on the contrary, Kawya
's rainstorm was repelled by Naruto. Even though in the short
fight, Naruto had
the upper hand, but he did not
feel happy because he knew that Kawya had not used all his strength, and he had
...
give it your all. HSU was horrified,
Naruto was able to block
's attack. As for Kuya, he looked at Naruto with a
faint smile. Then, dozens of
sharp bones suddenly grew out of her back.
She shot an iron spike at Naruto
and the others. Naruto's pupils shrank
, reminding everyone to pay close
attention to this move. Once stabbed, they
will fall to pieces. Everyone tried
to avoid it, but it was clear that Kawya especially
took care of Sasuke. In Sasuke's heart,
was wondering, why is it always me who is
injured? Several foul-smelling iron hammers flew towards him from
in all directions,
almost covering all the positions that he could
avoid. Madara was next to him and told
Sasuke to switch places with him, he had
ways to deal with it. Sasuke was very pleased, his heavenly force
was activated. Madara was
changed to Sasuke's position, with foul iron
piercing his chest. Feeling the destructive
change from the inside out of
's body, Madara muttered, "So that's it. Erasing
the enemy completely from the cellular level,
is truly a sure kill." One inch
of his body went to his death.
Madara's essence reappeared at
's side, his eyes suddenly became
frozen, launching a tragic prison.
A shadow passed from nowhere and
sent Kawya flying, but the direction she flew
from was right above Sasuke. Now
is the best chance to strike
against Sasuke. Kawya used Hoang Tuyen Bi
Luong Ban, suddenly shooting iron foul bones
from a dead angle towards Sasuke. Naruto
shouted, Sasuke be careful. Just as
was about to be hit, Obito used Camui to help Sasuke
neutralize the attack. Naruto rushed
savagely. knocked Kaguya away.
He also didn't expect that adding iron and foul bones was once
an effort-consuming move for Kawya, but now
Kawya can use it in this way.
arbitrary. Sasuke was still scared,
really couldn't let his guard down for a moment.
Seeing that the lava space does not take
any advantage, HSU asked Kawya
to convert the space. Kawya suddenly
moved space to super
gravity space, immediately everyone
lay flat on the ground unable to move.
Kawya raised his hand towards them, firing several
foul-smelling iron hammers. In an instant,
Madara activated the tomb rotation world, teleporting
everyone to the tomb rotation space.
In the tomb space that is not affected
by gravity, this is the best
way to overcome this super
gravity space of Kawya. Madara explained
to everyone, the duration
of this space is only 5 minutes, so
they must during these 5 minutes force Kaguya
to teleport to other
spaces. Naruto smiled confidently and said, "5 minutes
is more than enough." The six-path senjutsu
mantle on his body burned fiercely. Naruto
was like an arrow leaving the bow, taking the lead to launch
a fierce attack. Sasuke, Obito
and Madara followed closely behind. Rinegan
on Kawya's forehead could clearly see the movements
of Naruto and the others, but
unfortunately under super gravity, her body
could not respond effectively.
Naruto used a toad strike to send
Kaguya flying away. The shadows of
Madara's tomb alternately passed through the air.
Sasuke and Obito each use their own
way to attack. Only seeing
ripples of air in the
space of super gravity stacked on top of each other,
Kawya was bounced back and forth between those
ripples. Seeing that a massive attack from everyone
was about to hit Kawya, Kawya suddenly
teleported to the ice
snow space. Ice and Snow have frozen all
attacks. At the same time, the time
of Madara's grave world also reached
its limit and expired. Although late
has finally escaped the force of super-massive space
, but the danger has not disappeared.
Iron bones protruding from
Kaguya's hands, directly piercing through the ice
snow towards Naruto and Sasuke. Sasuke
saw this and activated Kagosuchi to help all
ice breakers escape. After escaping
, everyone immediately kept distance
from Kawya. Hzu again offered his plan to Kawya,
now they are one against four, it is difficult to avoid
being passive, it is better to separate them and kill
one by one. Hearing that, Kawya immediately
raised his hand. Huangquan Bi Luong Counter
was activated, a black hole
suddenly appeared behind Sasuke.
Kawya's hand stuck out. Just as Ya was about to drag Sasuke
to another space, Obito promptly
launched Camui to erase the black hole behind
Sasuke. Hu saw this and gritted his
teeth, not expecting Obito to have
Camui eyes and be able to activate Camui
so quickly. Having Obito here and wanting to attack
secretly is clearly not easy. If so,
he offered Kaguya a plan, first
eliminate Obito. Kawya used Hoang Tuyen Bi
Luong Ban with a similar move, reaching
out from behind Obito's back, but in the end
was pierced through. But at this moment
suddenly a strange
smile appeared on Kaguya's face. With one hand she continued to penetrate
through Obito, with the other hand she used Hoang Tuyen Bi
Luong to open a black hole. The space that
that black hole connects to is the space of Obito's hood. A foul iron
...
bone suddenly shot towards Obito in
ca huong space. Obito couldn't believe
, he didn't expect Kawya could open
his cam space. But thinking about it
is right, after all, Obito can use
orange to open Kawya's
shared heavenly space. The speed of the core
was so fast that Obito had no time to dodge
. After being pierced,
's body began to peel off like shredded paper. Kuya saw
then gave a satisfied smile. The black
coin under her sleeve let out
mocking words, finally destroying
this ant-like traitor. But
at this time, Obito's voice suddenly sounded
in the air. Don't underestimate
Uchi's strength, uki. Obito suddenly
appeared behind Kawya and launched
a black light that directly
severed one of Kawya's arms. As for
, Obito
's body that had just turned into paper had turned into a translucent illusion. Madara
gave a faint smile. Izanagi why
that kid Obito dares to sacrifice an
eye? Just now when Khiya sneak attacked, although
Obito dodged the attack, he
always had a bad feeling. Because Hzu
had worked with him for more than 10 years,
could be said to have clearly grasped
's penetrating ability, not to the point of launching such a useless
attack. Therefore, he
took early precautions in case it was solved.
Kawya was injured and transported to
the water sphere. Here she can absorb
the chakra of those who fall into the
period of poison to replenish her energy. At this time,
tailed beast swords were ready. He praised Obito for doing
Naruto's nine
well, and at the same time threw all the swords
at Kawya. Kawya got mad and transformed into
jade rabbit form, a giant arm behind
jade rabbit's back stabbed straight into the ground.
Chakra surged into her body like a wave.
Naruto's face was serious. Kawya is
absorbing the chakra of those who have fallen
into the infinite moon poison. Suddenly,
gray spots covered
Kaguya's jade rabbit's body along with a heavenly roar from
the jade rabbit, and foul iron rained
down on the ground. This overwhelming range is completely
impossible to avoid. Naruto reacted
extremely quickly, immediately using Chakra's hand to grab
and grab Madara, Sasuke and Obito. Under
sharing Obito's penetrating ability,
few people have a place in this
rain of golden bones. The
rain of bones lasted for several minutes before stopping. Rabbit
Ngoc suddenly stretched out countless arms,
grabbed Naruto and the others.
Naruto told everyone to pay close attention,
once touched by that arm,
's body would be absorbed. After a while of contemplation,
Kawya clearly understood in his heart that fighting
this group of people must have methods and
tactics and cannot fight haphazardly. She
opened her mouth wide and prayed for yen in the jade path
. Wait until this jade path
swells to fill the space, you will win.
Ya's body slowly slid to the side of the
jade bridge. Now what she needs to do is buy
more time and keep Naruto and
others in this space.
Naruto looked up at the black ball that was
rapidly expanding in the sky. Because Kawya's chakra in this
life is stronger, the initial
state of this Ngoc Trung Yen
quest is greater than before. perhaps
's swelling speed will also be faster. In other words,
time left for them is not much. If with
the premise is not to seal Kaguya, then
is now truly a desperate situation.
But faced with this overwhelming disadvantage,
the corner of Naruto's mouth showed a
fearless smile. He used positive force
to help Obito heal his eye that had lost
light. Then, the four of them launched
the final attack. Obito
aimed at an open space, using his cam to lock
on Kawya's head, but Kawya's hair
curled up, forming an extremely thick
defensive barrier that stood still. Naruto split
thousands of shadow clones with Madara holding
Kaguya's legs, and at the same time the main body came
next to Sasuke. He told Sasuke to use the green
path of the bird of heaven and had Obito infuse his brother's
power into it. After stating
his battle plan, Naruto used
his Chakra hand to throw Sasuke towards Kawya.
Sasuke held the black bird of paradise in his hand, quickly
approaching Kawya. Kawya saw that and immediately
shot a bone-studded iron cannon at him. Obito
shouted loudly, Sasuke continued to move forward,
at the same time used his hood to help Sasuke block
all the deadly attacks. In
the moment Sasuke approached Kawya, Kawya's
hair quickly grew longer, intending
to grab Sasuke, but Sasuke suddenly
launched his heavenly force, exchanging position
with the air next to Kaguya. The lightning
in his hand stabbed out Camu Luc Dao Thien
Dieu. Thien Dieu simultaneously possesses the force of Ca Mui
and the power of six paths, far more powerful than Ca Mui
Mui Loi Thiet. The Camui vortex suddenly
exploded, almost breaking Kaguya's neck, her
hair and head were swept into the smelly
space. Seeing that, Naruto smirked
and smiled, it's time. He condensed a complete
jade pearl in his hand,
then used the flying thunder god to appear
next to Kawya. Loa Toan Hoan hit
Kawya straight in the chest. But a sudden incident
happened, Kawya fought against Toan Hoan speaker
and suddenly reached out to strangle
Naruto. Naruto's chakra frantically
poured in from Kaguya's arm. He saw that
was unstable and used the Flying Thunder God to
escape, but found that
was ineffective. Hoang Tuyen Bi Luong suddenly
suddenly opened up from the air,
Kaguya's head turned back down, turned
back to her neck. Her three eyes
glared at Naruto, "Give back all of my
chakra." Naruto was scared. If
at this time Kawya uses the iron foul bone
, he will definitely die. Not choosing
an attack to defeat him was because Kawya also visited
blue chakra on Naruto's body. Everyone
saw that something was wrong and tried to help, but
Kawya suddenly used her long hair to cover
herself and Naruto, and at the same time
's face was covered with soil and iron and bones like bamboo shoots growing from
around, completely blocking the way.
Naruto shouted loudly to tell everyone where to go,
at the same time let out a loud roar,
earth-shattering, strengthening the speaker's power completely
. After the chakras of the two sides created
a bond, a miraculous
phenomenon occurred. Naruto suddenly faced
Kaguya, appearing in a brilliant
galaxy. This scene was familiar to
Naruto, but for
Kawya it was the first time. Naruto smiled
and explained, this is a chakra phenomenon called
the state of unclear mind. They can appear here together with
, proving that there is spiritual
recognition between them, and
are no longer enemies who only know how to kill
each other. Hearing that, Kawya immediately lowered her eyes,
she couldn't deny it deep inside
her heart. The perception of Naruto is very complex.
The deepest reason is not
the strength that Naruto showed during
the battle, but
Naruto's words before the battle had
reached a deep place in
Kawya's heart. But at the same time,
's inner self is also extremely conflicted. Your grandmother was
betrayed by her two beloved sons
and a thousand-year seal was
sealed on her heart. Naruto raised his right hand
and said meaningfully. I'm outside
just need to stretch out this hand to
seal it with Sasuke. And you only need
your fingertips to grow and your iron bones
to be able to end my life
immediately. How? Do you want to give each other
some liberation? But Kawya was
silent for a moment and then hesitantly asked, "Aren't you
going to seal me?" Naruto shook
his head and smiled, "If you really want to seal
Kawya, you've had too many chances, no
need to wait until now." He mentioned
the god Satsuki that they both shy away from.
As soon as Kawya heard this name,
immediately looked at Naruto in surprise. She asked Naruto
why he knew information about the god
supreme of their family? Naruto told his
truth. The past me
indeed sealed her away once, bringing
decades of peace
to this ninja world. But then her clan
came, and everything I cherished was finally
destroyed at the hands of the
God of Death. Hearing that, Kawya's eyes trembled violently. Could it be that you are? Naruto revealed
...
a sad look in his eyes, continuing to say,
"That's right, I was originally a soul that
died long ago in the future. Thanks to
fate, I traveled back to this
era." Naruto, after watching all
of everything that happened in the past
and the future, said, "My purpose for returning
is only one, that is to appreciate the drama that
is afraid of, which is also what I
personally experienced in the future, and will no longer be able to
act."
Naruto's sincere words made Kaguya rarely
moved, but very quickly, Kawya
's insides once again fell into deep
confusion. She trusted humans
once, but what humans left
to her was only cruel betrayal.
On the one hand, Kawya longs to be able to re-establish
relationships with humans, but deep inside
he is even more afraid of being hurt
again. Naruto could see the knot
tied in Kawya's heart, but because
of his background and experience was not good at speaking,
he temporarily did not know how
should arrange his words. Just when he was
worried, a rough voice suddenly
rang out next to him. Naruto let me see you
appear as the Sage of Six Paths.
When giving Naruto the power of the Six Paths, the Sage of the Six Paths
left a part of
's chakra on Naruto's body. It's all
to prepare for this moment. As soon as Kawya looked
at Hagorumo, her eyes couldn't help but feel
blue veins, a terrifying pressure radiated
from her body. Immortals of the Six Paths advance,
bowed and said, "Mom, I can understand
your feelings. That year it was me and
Hamura who stubbornly sealed you away, but unexpectedly
everything you did was to protect
us. But even so, you always put
through the thoughts and feelings of your children. Due to
's lack of communication, the thoughts could not be conveyed to
. Finally, care and protection
's mother turned into domineering and
authoritative in our eyes. Kawya was at a
moment speechless. If the way we
...
...
...
treated each other a little, maybe
wouldn't have happened later." Hearing this, Kawya
said sadly, saying, "These
things are no longer meaningful, now there is
no return. The people of
this land have all considered me a devil."
The Sage of Six Paths shook his head, and pointed
at Naruto, "The young man in front of me, I
believe that he does not have this thought.
For the sake of the land that they both love,
he did not hesitate to risk
to free his mother. Naruto has the
power to change people's hearts. I believe that
under his guidance, people
will one day accept their mother again. At this
moment in the outside world, Naruto and
Kawya were still in a tug-of-war position. Sasuke and
the others stood in a place where there were no
bones, intently watching the
turn of events. Madara frowned and said, "Kaguya's
chakra absorption action has
stopped. What
happened to that Naruto guy?" Suddenly, the swollen jade path
began to disintegrate. Sasuke saw that
immediately relaxed his clenched fist.
He knew Naruto had succeeded. At this moment
Kaguya let go of her hands that were peeling Naruto
's neck, her eyes were no longer cold,
instead showed a bit of expectation. It was
Naruto who helped her clear up the misunderstanding
thousands of years between her and Hagoromo. She was
ready to trust Naruto again.
Naruto gave her a thumbs up, indicating
no problem. Thien Chi Ngu Trung
is dispelled. Kawya and Naruto and
others return to the
ninja world. HSU saw this scene and immediately
understood everything. Is this
mom's choice? It's time to end this battle
. Kuya Giang prepared both hands to
eliminate the infinite moon poison, but
suddenly happened, her face became
extremely painful. A cold male voice
and aura rang out from Kaguya's mouth. So
is like that. Uzumaki Naruto, is this your intention
? Naruto couldn't help but feel
cold, could this voice be
's name? Dark lines
suddenly appeared on Kawya's body, eventually
covered Kaguya's face, the people transformed
into Indra's appearance. Indra smiled
evilly, thanking Naruto for helping him
weaken Kaguya, so he could reverse
take over Kawya's consciousness. Indra
had swallowed Kaguya and appeared
once again. Naruto couldn't help but break out in a cold
sweat. At this time, Indra's eyes were no longer
Rinegan. After possessing Osatsuki's pure
body, his eyes turned
into white eyes and evolved into a more advanced
Tensegan, and on
's forehead opened a Linegon Nine Sentence
Jade eye. He floated in mid-air, looked
down at Naruto and said, "The soul of the future
returns to the past and wants to be the savior
? And even choose me as a pawn
in your plan?" Naruto turned
around to face Indra. You are
grateful, Indra has far exceeded your
expectations. To be honest, being a sacrifice
is truly a bit of a pity. Even though
thought it was very silly, Naruto still
asked Indra, "If you know the truth, why don't
join us in fighting Osatsuki?"
of the future?" Indra without hesitation
refused Naruto's invitation. "The guy of the past
doesn't need to rely on anyone, the guy
of the future even doesn't need to. He vows to
fulfill the cause of solitude
to the end. There has only ever been
of the king." Indra suddenly made a seal with
with both hands, the ground immediately shattered.
Blue chakra erupted from underground
, finally pouring into
Indra's body. He continued to absorb the chakra
of those who fell into the infinite moon
poison. Obito saw this and activated Camui intend
to stop the brutal act. of Indra.
Indra struck first, but suddenly
suddenly used his body teleportation technique
to fall behind Obito. In
Kaguya's body, he could clearly see that in this group of
people,
's space-time ability was the biggest uncertain factor. Because
, the first person he wanted to destroy was
Lightning
stabbed at Obito. Obito immediately entered
a penetrating state. Inra
's hand finally penetrated Obito's body, but
the corner of his mouth slightly curled up, suddenly
stretched out his free hand,
activated Hoang Tuyen Bi Luong Ban.
The space that the black hole connected to was
's space Obito.
Indra's hand reached into the black hole, directly grabbing
Obito's entity. An iron shot
stabbed at Obito with such speed that
...
even made Obito unable to launch Isanagi. Indra had already calculated where his entity
...
...
...
would appear in
space. Indra smiled evilly, sensing
that the distance of the distant space
was one of the abilities of
this thing called Gan Tens. Naruto quickly
walked forward and hugged Obito, looking at his body
Obito along with his broken bones,
his heart was in pain, he immediately used positive
force to maintain Obito's life.
Obito told Naruto not to waste his energy,
he was very grateful to Naruto in both lives
for saving him from this hopeless
world, but unfortunately he could not help
Naruto to the end. He told Naruto to
retain Chakra to deal with Indra. He
believes that Naruto can definitely defeat
his opponent. With Obito turning
into dust, Naruto shed tears of
hatred, but in reality it didn't give him much
time to grieve. I only see Indra
spreading his arms wide, this is the sign
of using the central branch of heaven.
Naruto quickly went to Sasuke
's side and activated the Flying Thunder God Formation, directly
teleporting Sasuke alone to where
Flying God Kunai was. Sasuke suddenly
appeared in the distance with a surprised look on his face.
He shouted to the sky, "Naruto, what
are you planning to do? And the reason Naruto teleported Sasuke
away is because Obito is no longer there.
If several of them were trapped in
a certain space, it would be very passive.
It's unknown what risks
lie ahead, so Naruto decided to leave himself and
Madara, who had Going to the grave to protect
first to explore. With the activation of the heavenly
, Naruto and
Madara were transported by Indra to an endless
desert. This was the
desert space of Kawya, the surrounding
environment also made the air
hazy, Naruto said with a smile Madara, "Uncle Madara, I'm
...
telling the truth, I also
have no absolute certainty about the next battle. No
this desert will most likely be our
burial place." Madara took off his
battle armor, rubbed his hands, the corners of
's mouth curled up in a warlike smile.
"Call me Madara Sama." Indra reigns
in the sky, coldly looking down at two
people, the final battle was about to begin
. Obito was reincarnated by U Earth.
At this time, Naruto and Madara were transported by Indra
to the desert space. Indra's two
hands suddenly made a seal, and in a moment the sky
thundered and thundered. The entire
desert followed the instructions of his palm to attack
towards Naruto and Madara. Naruto
looked at this sand wave hundreds of meters high,
couldn't help but wonder if Gara saw
this scene, he didn't know if he would be so surprised
that he wouldn't dare to play with Cat
again in the future. Madara saw that, formed a seal with both hands,
activated the tree under his birth form. Talking about
blocking wind and fixing sand, there is nothing more suitable
than planting trees to create a forest. Thousands of
saplings frantically grew in the
desert, instantly turning into a
sea of trees blocking the fierce sandstorm.
Naruto and Madara finally have
a foothold but the sandstorm is still
raging. Indra suddenly placed
's hand on the ground. Naruto in fairy mode
six path technique immediately sensed danger
approaching. He shouted loudly for
Madara to quickly stop the jutsu and jump up. Right
the moment they jumped up, countless
iron bones shot out from where they were standing.
This move is the combination of Iron Foul Bone Tao
Quyet Chi Vu. Above, there are rolling sand waves
coming, below there are piles of iron and bones
chipping away at the ground. Naruto and Madara fell into a
dilemma. He quickly
turned the jade path behind him into
a circular shield, covering himself
and Madara. The sand wave instantly
sank Naruto's jade path shield,
quicksand followed burying them under
hundreds of meters of sand. The sound of friction between the sand and
surface of the jade bridge was extremely deafening.
Madara asked if Naruto was okay, if
was not okay then he should transfer to his alternate world
. Naruto thought carefully
said, "Going to the tomb world is only 5 minutes
and will consume a lot of your
companions. Now that Obito is gone, how about
just save it for the important moment to
preserve your life. He confidently said
it's not a big problem, after two lifetimes, he
was able to condense the power of
the six paths and seek the jade. The quality of
those path pearls were dozens of
times better than before. Under the extreme
pressure of tens of thousands of tons of sand, Naruto's
path jade shield did not weaken
outside and discovered
the clue, and was able to block this sand
However, Naruto and Madara inside the
path jade were already inside
Indra stretched out his right hand, using Hoang Tuyen
Bi Luong Ban to open a black hole, the other end
of the black hole connected directly to Naruto's
jade path shield. The
iron skeleton stabbed in. Naruto was extremely
surprised. Luckily, Madara immediately activated the
world tomb, teleporting them both into the
tomb space.
only had a short
time to rest. Naruto looked solemnly at the
enemy in the sky, exclaiming
that although Indra's chakra at this time was
not as good as Kawya's peak,
the level of difficulty to deal with was completely different.
Madara said without fear, this is what
is called experienced
long distance, strong enlightenment and extremely
fighting, is the source of
Indra's strength. He asked Naruto, "Compared to the god
Osatsuki in the future, what is the actual strength difference
between Indra and that person?" Naruto
said in a deep voice, "The strength between the two
is still sky-high, but if you give
Indra enough time." Time to grow up, maybe
will be a different story. Originally intended to borrow
Indra as bait, I didn't expect
to provoke a formidable villain." Naruto couldn't
apologize to Madara, it was all because of
his decision led to the situation
is now. Madara calmly said, "It's okay
, as the last
civil war of the ninja world, if it ended
peacefully, it would be too tasteless.
The current situation deserves to be called
an outpost battle against the foreign
ginseng. To save his fellow soldiers, Madara eliminated
the tomb world. He prepared
to rely on his tomb to probe.
Indra's moves. Naruto
sincerely said that taking advantage of
Obito and Madara was his wisest
decision after being reincarnated. Sandstorm
arose again from
to attack.
...
...
was discussing countermeasures. Sasuke told
everyone that Naruto and Madara were
fighting in the Heavenly Palace
...
He told Orochimaru
to smile evilly
...
...
Sasuke couldn't help but frown
. Do you mean to revive Obito
? And what Orochimaru intended to do was to reincarnate Obito. After capturing
...
a white Jesu, Orochimaru successfully initiated
...
's reincarnation He
...
held his head, although the reincarnated land did not
feel any pain, the experience of being
crushed by iron still made him
mentally hurt. He asked Sasuke
how the battlefield was going. Sasuke
told Obito
and regretfully said that there were no specific coordinates of
's dimensions. Kawya,
I can't teleport there because
those spaces are too far away, my divine power
he is completely untouchable.
Just when everyone was disappointed, Black
Ru suddenly spoke from the ground,
"Take me with you, I will tell you
the coordinates of my mother's middle
celestial space. Hearing that, Obito frowned
and clenched his eyebrows, facing the thousand-year-old plotter
who had been confusing him for almost his entire life, even
a punctuation mark from his opponent.
also doubted the truth. Hu saw this and immediately
begged, "Now that my mother is in trouble, I
can't sit still and watch. Since mother
chose to be on your side, I will unconditionally
choose to follow her, even if
has to sacrifice my life." Obito heard
then looked deeply at Black Jesu, looked at
the serious black face of
, and finally he agreed. Just
like that, with the coordinates provided by
Hzu, Obito, Sasuke and Hzesu return to the battlefield. Naruto
...
is finally about to have the final
battle with Indra. At this time, Obito brings
with Sasuke and Hzetsu once again to
's origin space. The first thing
they need to confirm is Naruto's
current location. around, it discovered that Naruto was not here.
...
Hearing that, Obito told Hzu to concentrate on
sensing that he would open other
spaces one by one. After a while of testing,
they finally determined that Naruto
was in the desert space. who was lurking here from
...
...
...
's original space. At this time, Naruto and Madara attacked Indra from
left and right. When
was distracted, Naruto held the
sword and stabbed Indra
straight in the face.
...
...
him. Seeing that the attack was about to succeed,
but the black hole of Hoang Tuyen Bi Luong
Ban suddenly opened in front of Indra
without warning. The other end of black hole
connects straight in front of Madara.
Because Naruto rushed forward so fast, he couldn't
stop. When you realize something is not
okay, it's too late. His entire body
passed through the black hole, a sword pierced
Madara was also moving quickly towards
first. The corner of Indra's mouth raised a
curve. This move must be used like
. Madara was stabbed
with a painful expression. Then
a tomb wheel behind him went to
the place of death. His essence appeared
at his side again. But Indra took the opportunity to disappear from this desert space.
...
Naruto scratched his head and apologized to Madara, not expecting
Indra to be so cunning with the same
move, but when he used it compared to
Kaguya, the power was truly unparalleled. Not only that, Indra has understood
...
the power of yin and yang, and has also overcome
Kawya's only weakness, which is that
he is not afraid of sealing, to defeat
him, he can only
completely destroy him. The violent sandstorm
temporarily subsided due to Indra's departure. Even though
was very weak, in the last moment
Naruto had also sensed
Sasuke's chakra. He speculated that Indra's
sudden passing was definitely related to
this. And if Sasuke can appear
in the Heavenly Branch, that would
mean that Obito could potentially be
reborn. Naruto smiled and asked Madara, "Do you
think Obito will come?" Madara heard
and snorted coldly, "That guy, no matter
, is someone I chose to
train, he can't just disappear
like that. Isn't this also the reason
you chose him?" Hearing that, Naruto
gave an affirmative smile. With great difficulty,
Sasuke and Obito were able to hold off Indra.
He took this opportunity and began to
develop a plan to attack Mrs. Indra. The multiple
shadow clone technique activated,
Naruto split into tens of thousands of shadow clones,
sat down at the same time, and began to absorb
's natural energy. At this time in
the origin space, Obito had sucked both
Hzu and Sasuke into the divine power space,
then he intended to teleport to the
space of the sa mo space. But at this moment, Hoang
Tuyen Bi Luong opened in mid-air, and a quick
...
iron blade shot towards him. Obito immediately
stopped teleporting, entered a penetrating
state, and avoided that
bone-killing bar. Looking at Indra appearing in
the sky, Obito looked solemn, not
expecting to be discovered so quickly.
Indra looked at Obito's appearance and sneered
contemptuously, "Ill-earth reincarnation? The person who developed this
illuminating art is truly a born
evil person." Feeling the lingering aura
next to Obito, Indra knew that the intruder
was not just Obito alone, it was
who could not stand a grain of sand
in his eyes, he condensed a
semi-transparent white longsword
in his hand. This is the great soul-stimulating
sword, a divine weapon that can cause
damage and completely erase the soul of
the person being attacked. With a terrifying
explosion, Indra wielded his sword and rushed towards
Obito. Having witnessed the horror
of Indra skillfully dismantling his
penetration ability, Obito backed away with all his
strength, thinking in his mind. Indra
only when in contact with him for a
moment can use Tens liver to measure
his entity's intelligence, then coordinate
with Chieu Hoang Tuyen Bi Luong Ban to
attack the entity. Therefore, as long as
attacks at close range, Obito cannot easily
enter a penetrating state.
Indra saw Obito trying to back away, laughing
disdain, is this the so-called
snake bite, ten years of
fear? Unfortunately, without dong magic, your
mobility is only that much.
He sped up his pursuit, pressing close to Obito,
but Obito suddenly smiled confidently. Mr.
suddenly turned his head and revealed his power. Sasuke
holding the six paths of Chidori, using the force of his sky
suddenly appeared behind Indra. This
unexpected attack is difficult for even Indra to
defend against. One of his arms was
cut off. Obito took the opportunity to teleport
himself and Sasuke to the
desert space. The sandstorm arose again.
Obito's voice rang out from the air. Let you guys
wait for a long time. My ancestors and the
savior of the future. Along with the moving vortex
, Obito, Sasuke and Hzetsu
appeared before Naruto and Madara.
The golden spring springs open at the same time
in the sky. Indra had recovered his
arms and appeared in mid-air. This time
everyone was there. The final
all-or-nothing battle
has begun. At this time, Naruto successfully met
with Sasuke and Obito. After
chatting for a while, he told Sasuke and
everyone his purpose. He had
a way to defeat Indra, but before
they had to destroy the eye that Indra used
to launch the Heavenly Chi Ngu Trung, because his
plan had to be completed in
this desert space. Sasuke listened
and said frankly, "Indra has inherited Kawya's
immortal body, I'm afraid that eye
can also be reborn." Naruto naturally
also understands this, but he just needs to
defeat Indra before his eye
regenerates. He wanted to separate Kawya
from Indra's body, thereby weakening
the opponent. While several people were
talking, Indra's arm had recovered and
had returned to the desert space. He
had a fierce look in his eyes, his hands forming seals, under
under the influence of gravity, thousands of
meteorites suddenly descended
into this desert space. Looking at the
meteors that burned up the sky,
Naruto's eyes lit up. He immediately
performed tailed beast transformation, then condensed
a tailed beast jade in his mouth. After
shot out the tailed beast jade, Naruto formed seal
to launch the tailed beast jade shadow clone
technique. He did his best to divide the tailed beast
into thousands of pieces. Ten seconds
later, the mushroom clouds of explosion
continuously appeared in the sky. At the end of
all the meteors were stopped
at once. Indra gritted her
teeth, used Segan to lock
on Naruto, who was transforming into a tailed beast, and cast a golden
rotation to create servants. Naruto's face
was solemn, this was the move that
Toneriy used to cut the moon in half, he
didn't think about it and used the flying thunder god
to dodge to the side. The yellow sword light cut
into the ground, instantly splitting the
desert space in half. Before Naruto could make a move,
Indra used the golden rotation
to create Dai La Vong. The net-shaped
slashes had the same power as the yellow sword light
just now, all at once, with
such a large range that Naruto and everyone
could not dodge. He immediately canceled
's tailed beast transformation and turned the nine path
gems into a shield
above. Sasuke, Madara, and Hzetsu share
Obito's transience.
Slash after slash, Sasuke and everyone
slowly flew under
Naruto's shield. Looking at the jade path shield
that was gradually cracking, Naruto couldn't help but
exclaim. He knew at that time that Tonery had completely
not yet fully developed
's true power . Fortunately, these path
gems of yours are not ordinary path
gems, Indra
's sword light was ultimately unable to break through the layer.
your defense. It was time to counterattack
, Naruto told everyone to act
according to plan. Madara uses a tombstone
to attack. He appeared
right in front of Indra. But before
could attack the opponent, an electronic field emitted
from Indra's body sent him flying
out. However, Madara quickly
reappeared before Indra. Indra
saw this and immediately grabbed
Madara's arm. Huangquan Bi Liang's black hole
opened, intending to throw Madara inside,
but
Obito's space-time vortex was one step ahead, sucking Madara
in and teleporting to a safe place under
the ground. Seeing Obito surrounded and protected by Naruto's
clones below
, Indra immediately understood
Naruto's intentions. Protecting a brat with divine power, does
mean you can attack arbitrarily? I'm so
underestimated." Setím suddenly
scanned Obito's position, in
the blink of an eye, Indra's body
appeared in front of Obito. Naruto's
clones were scattered. Indra used his hand to strangle
Obito, intending to completely erase Obito.
But at this time a sudden change occurred,
Sasuke suddenly Use the force of the sky to switch
to change the position of Obito and
Naruto's body. Naruto is now surrounded
by a magical vortex
which is the Rasengan that Boruto
once used
...
...
senses the opponent's balance, reducing
Naruto's movement skills. Although
Naruto's use of this move is not as powerful
as Boruto's, it is enough to
feel that something is wrong with his body, Indra kicks Naruto out with a
...
big eye, intending to
activate the sky
The Flying Thunder God Kunai suddenly appeared
appeared before him. Naruto pierced
that Kunai, caught it and then stabbed
hard into the eye on Indra's forehead. The entire
presentation went seamlessly. The corner of
's mouth curled up. Thanks to Uzuhiko making
slow down Indra's reaction speed, Naruto
finally succeeded. Indra suddenly
suddenly squeezed Naruto's neck. He said,
"Do you think you're so funny? Shoe
arranged for me to fall into a trap, just because of one
eye." Naruto smiled confidently again, the surrounding
suddenly changed, white smoke
rose across the desert, countless grains of sand around
suddenly turned into Naruto's
clone. Each shadow clone condensed
a magic fruit, holding a
sword in his hand. When Indra left
the desert space, Naruto let the shadow
parts of his body absorb natural energy and turn
into sand. He used Flying Thunder to escape
from Indra, and at the same time his shadow clones
threw Suriken at the opponent.
Naruto calls this move Naruto Rasen
Suriken eight thousand bullets. Indra suddenly
opened his hands to defend,
but Kawya's consciousness in his body
suddenly interfered with the
execution of the technique. He was unable to act and was
swallowed by the light wave of the
explosion. Seeing this, Naruto split into
eight clones and performed the technique.
The Super Tailed Beast Loa Toan Sword
condensed from the power of the nine tailed beasts was
once again fired. At the end of the explosion,
the chakra of the nine tailed beasts was finally
pulled out of Indra's body due to
's chakra absorption. Naruto finally took
and regained his reincarnation eye. At this time, he threw
the super tailed beast Loa with all his hands Ly Sword towards
Indra. The tailed beast in Indra's body was pulled out
due to chakra resonance. Naruto instantly
transformed into a tailed beast, using his tail to catch
and take Kawya's crown. Obito looked through
Naruto's past life memories, now breathing
said long and hard, "Is that the familiar tug of war
again?" Several of them stood behind
Naruto to assist him. Indra sensed
the danger, he tried to resist, tried
to recall the Tailed Beast Chakra. Seeing that Kawya
was about to be separated from his body, Indra
suddenly burst with an incredible will to survive
. A royal
chakra storm swept across Van Phuong. Naruto and every
person who tries their best still has a tendency to
get swallowed up. But at this
moment, Hessu suddenly screamed, turning into
a dark liquid that entered from Inra's
wound. Its
forte is appropriating the consciousness
of others. It intends from within
to help Naruto and everyone interfere with Indra's
will. Indra shouted loudly, "He is
the one who will become the savior, how can
be killed by a guy like this here
? But Hzu's body
is now burning fiercely. He uses his own life
to turn into fire, thereby
burning Indra's will and chakra.
You are about to die, so your words are good."
Hessu spoke the last words in
his heart. It knows that everyone
here looks down on it, but it also
doesn't blame everyone. Who said everyone
is competing to be the savior? And
he just wants to be a good son to
his mother. The black
flame of life burned fiercely on Indra's body.
Ha Ju let out a final roar and was attacked
from the inside out, Indra could no longer
endure. Seeing
Hesu's sacrifice, Naruto gritted his teeth, he roared
loudly and then used his strength to pull
back. Kawya's body finally
completely left Indra's body.
Indra was like a kite whose string had broken and fell to
the ground. After Kawya woke up, he opened his
hands to dispel the heavenly essence. Everyone
returned to the ninja world.
Looking at Indra lying motionless on the ground,
Sasuke pulled out his knife and advanced to give
a finishing blow, but Naruto
stopped Sasuke and said in a low voice to let
take care of him. Under everyone's gaze,
Naruto stepped forward in front of Indra. At first
he just wanted to take advantage of this
man, but during the long
fight, Naruto's mood
soon changed. He frankly admitted that Indra was
the most formidable and difficult enemy that
he had fought to date. He hoped
that Indra could stay, move
forward with them, he could let the other
take the lead. Indra interrupted Naruto
who was about to continue the mind-clearing technique,
he said, he would master
and loneliness. The dead don't speak, the
loser keeps his mouth shut, and he doesn't want alms from other
people. Even though
Naruto is the reincarnation of Asura,
Indra doesn't like it, but after a
fight, he gradually recognizes Naruto. At least
he found Naruto much more pleasing to the eye
than Asura and the six paths. Hearing that, Naruto
's eyes darkened. He apologized
to the other side for taking advantage of
Indra. Indra smiled slightly, he told Naruto
there was no need to apologize, they were not born in the same
era, fate was not able to
be frank with each other. Looking at the mountains of
ninja corpses piled up due to this war,
Indra smiled sadly. Because Kaguya had left
his body, his eyes had now restored
to his own reincarnation eyes.
He clasped his hands together in front of his chest
to form a seal, the dark pupils in his eyes were
condensing the last rays of light. Naruto's
penis twitched violently, "This seal, aren't
you planning on activating that technique?" Indra
clearly told Naruto not to misunderstand. He
did that not for Naruto, not even
for the ninja sect of the six paths and Asura,
but for the future ninja world. Foreign
The method of reincarnation of natural life makes
move. As a final parting gift,
Indra revived the ninjas who had sacrificed
in this war, and those who were reincarnated by
of the defiled earth were now also
resurrected in the true sense. The four great Hokages,
Obito, Asuma and the other defiled ninjas
have finally come back to life. After
the rain of blue light ended,
the King of Hell's large mouth did not
close. A block of purple light
condensed in its mouth, after a
period of chewing, it finally turned
into two reincarnation eyes. Naruto's
pupils contracted violently, the reincarnation eye
in Indra's eye sockets had now disappeared,
's black hair had also turned white
. He smiled and said, "These eyes
were made specifically for Naruto, as a
reward for Naruto defeating him. Just
Indra used the King of Hell to recreate
the structure of his reincarnation eye into
Naruto's genes, the purpose is for Naruto to have
the perfect body to fuse these eyes."
Naruto looked at Indra with a complicated face,
whose life was like a candle in
the wind, and a
feeling of guilt that had not been there for a long time arose in his heart. Today's
scene will definitely influence and motivate
him in the future, making him think
comprehensively and grow
more mature. As he was dying, Indra had one last
disclaimer, which was the hope that
Naruto must defeat the
Osatsuki family and protect this ninja land that
he also loved." After saying that, Indra
completely closed his eyes. Naruto sat down,
solemnly took away Indra's eyes.
You will definitely be as Indra wishes,
Continue running on the path to protect this piece of
land. Next, it's time to dispel the infinite
moon poison. At this time, Naruto and Sasuke
form a seal to eliminate the infinite moon poison
...
war lets people around the
world know about the threat they will
face in the future. He stood on
loudly and shouted, the people bearing
the Ouki family name as you saw are
real. They all have the power to destroy
heaven and earth. The ninja world of
future was destroyed at their hands.
And I who was lucky enough to survive in
the future returned to this era.
All just to make that tragedy incompetent.
The ninjas below heard these words
and were all surprised. If
had said this before, people would definitely not
believe it. But after going through the
battle with Kaguya and Indra and seeing that Naruto has
such strength and foresight, it's hard for everyone
not to believe Naruto's words. The
ninjas of the villages all carry
their own feelings. However, through this war,
the concept of ninja that they had built for so long
was destroyed in a
way. Faced with the type of enemy whose every
action changes the color of heaven and earth,
no matter how hard they try, they can only
become cannon fodder. Seeing that the ninjas on
's side were in low spirits, Sasuke asked Naruto
what to do? Naruto was silent for a moment,
then took out a kunai and stabbed
into his palm. The ninjas present
immediately turned their eyes to
Naruto. Naruto slowly and in a deep voice
said, "If this Kunai doesn't pierce
my hand but rather pierces my heart or brain,
I will most likely die on the spot
in a short time. This is the
limit of an organism, an individual
strong will have weaknesses everywhere. And breaking
destroys that weakness, most ninjas have
faces. can be done easily. Even
the most ordinary jutsu will
have a suitable battlefield for them
Seeing that everyone is attracted to him,
Naruto continued, "This world is not
is not my world or the world of
people present here, but the common world
of everyone. This land has countless
attachments and worries of every
person. Faced with this inevitable
disaster, instead of waiting to die in vain,
should just take a risk and devote all our
strength to protect this only land of our
. When people want to protect something, the potential to explode is limitless.
...
Moreover, winning this war
does not rely solely on high or low strength
but requires the unanimous cooperation of the entire
ninja world. Under everyone's
enthusiastic gazes, Naruto placed his hand on his chest,
continued sincerely, "I Uzumaki Naruto
does not hesitate to play with space and time.
Crossing the river of time to return here,
has only one goal, which is to defeat
the Osatsuki clan, protect this
ninja world, even if in the end we have to fight to the end.
turned into dust." As soon as the words ended, the
ninjas who had just lost their spirit immediately
were immediately lit up by the fire of
's blood. Hearing this, the corner of Madara
's mouth curled up, internally praising Naruto for saying
well. This is the strategic vision and
talent that a leader of the
ninja world should have, unlike some
people who only know how to bow their heads and offer
beasts. Regarding future deployment, Naruto
did not rush to decide right away, but first
let the ninjas return to the village to rectify.
He took Sasuke, Madara, the Hokage
and the former members of Akasuki along with
back to the rain village. At the same time, he asked
Hasirama to build a large palace on
the outskirts of the rain village. That will be
Kawya's residence later, and also where they have
great discussions. After arranging everything, Naruto
immediately went to Orochimaru's
laboratory. He took out the
eyes of samsara that Indra had given him.
Orochimaru couldn't help but stick out his tongue when he saw it
solid, immediately began arranging
eye transplant surgery for Naruto. To increase the odds of
success, he helped Naruto implant
a pre-transplant of
Hasirama's recently cultured elite cells.
Naruto is the reincarnation of Asura, so
easily fuses with those cells. He
could feel the chakra in
's body skyrocketing again. Next is
reincarnation eye implant. During the
implantation process, Orochimaru kept
exclaiming, not expecting such a
miracle to happen in the world. These eyes can
blend perfectly with Naruto
Kun's genes. This is equivalent to
Naruto opening his own reincarnation eye.
Very quickly, Orochimaru completed the
surgery. When Naruto opened his eyes,
's eyes had turned into black samsara eyes.
The left palm also has a
black crescent moon mark.
's power skyrocketed, making him extremely impressed.
did not expect that he could hold
such power. Its abilities will
be gradually developed by Naruto during
future use. At this time, on the
piece of Ninja land, there is still an Osasuki that no one
knows about, hiding. That was
Sasuki Isiki, the person who caused Naruto and
Sasuke heavy losses in their previous lives.
Naruto's next goal is
to find Isiki's whereabouts. Because in order to
destroy Isiki, the man who killed Kurama, he
couldn't wait even a second. At
this time, Naruto summoned everyone to Kawya's palace
. He prepares to deploy
Isiki's plan to destroy
's Kara organization ahead of schedule. The
participants this time include Sasuke, Obito, Shisui and
Madara as well as the four great Hokages, former
members of Akasuki, Jiraya and
Orochimaru. Everyone sat around a
large round table. Naruto formed a
seal with both hands, activating a barrier that sealed the envelope
outer fin. Madara was a bit impatient
, telling Naruto to stop hiding things, if he had anything
to say frankly, why did he have to pretend
like that? Naruto scratched his head and said,
"This is very important, after all, against
this time there is a member with
power called Thien Ly Nhan, you can't
be careful." Having finished speaking, Naruto again
formed a seal with both hands, launching the six paths of
, the image transformed, the dim light
gradually transformed into three-dimensional images of
humans. The first to appear was a
gentle man with long braids, next
was an old man wearing glasses,
's face was full of experience, a hot and attractive blonde
girl, a blue
haired girl with a gentle and attractive beauty,
a child wearing a red shirt who looked evil by nature
and also Kawaki, Koze and the others.
other internal members of Kara
's organization are all shown. Madara frowned slightly
asked, "What are these?" The
people in front of them, regardless of their appearance,
their strange costumes, did not
look like ninjas. Hasirama's face
darkened, he knew that these people were
definitely not good people.
Naruto explained to everyone, these are
their next enemies, which are
internal members of the Kara organization.
Hearing that, Tobirama asked, "Is it internal?"
"So does that mean there are also outsiders?" Regarding
this matter, Naruto said that
external members can ignore it. Having finished speaking,
Naruto pointed to the image of a girl with
gentle beauty. This is the person
you said has the power of the supernatural eye, whose name is
because the images are three-dimensional, so they look
like a real person standing in front of everyone
. Jira's eyes turned into
sparkling hearts looking at such a beautiful
girl, how could she have gone astray
? Naruto has not yet told Jira to absolutely
not go near her. This person is beyond ability
's natural force also has the ability to mesmerize
or people's hearts, anyone who comes close to her
will be mesmerized. Hearing that,
couldn't help but frown. Does this ability
have no weaknesses? Tobirama asked
how
the past Naruto defeated her. Regarding this issue, Naruto plans to talk
later because it concerns his sons
Boruto and Kawaki. At this moment, Itachi seemed to
have discovered the key point. He
asked Naruto when he fought with group
of Kara in his previous life? When
learned it was 15 years later, Itachi guessed that
these ageless enemies could be
eliminated, including. Regarding this,
Naruto shook his head in denial because most of
above are artificial people, perhaps
were created very early. However, there are
two people who can definitely be ruled out, which are
Koze and Kawaki. These two people
are not yet born. Upon hearing the three words
artificial person, everyone
present was surprised, only Orochimaru showed
an evil smile. Finally, Naruto pointed
at the Jigon in the middle, he introduced
to everyone about Osatsuki's method of reincarnation
using Kama. This person
is the current vessel of the other Osatsuki
that he is looking for. Everyone
just now understood. Tobirama analyzed to everyone
the purpose of the Kara organization is to find
a suitable vessel for Isiki to reincarnate.
And that container is Kawaki and Koze
in the future. Right now these two people
are not yet born, it can be said that it is the best time
to defeat Isiki. Naruto nodded.
He changed the subject, his face suddenly
serious and said, "Among the many
artificial people that Amado has created, everyone
must pay special attention to A and her
brother Demon, especially that
kid, he has a passive skill that counteracts
self-serving killing intent. The opponent only needs to
imagine the killing scene in beginning, end
the fruit will immediately be reflected
back to the opponent." Everyone who heard that frowned
deeper, only Itachi's eyes
slightly stopped, in other words, attacks
without malicious intent will not be reflected
. Although the enemy is quite difficult to deal with,
its members actually
all have their own feelings. Scientist
studies What Isiki believed most was that Amado had other intentions. He even created
...
to guard against Isiki. Seeing
's appearance, Jiraya couldn't help but
smiled evilly. Orochimaru. Amado previously found
...
...
...
Jiraia's body in the deep sea and
used his cells to create Kojiasin.
Koji in the past was the guide
for his son Boruto. In this life, because
he was reincarnated into the
sea, Kojikasin probably does not exist removed the image of
...
Kojikin. After introducing
to everyone about the situation of the Kara organization, he
said that his goal was to destroy
the Kara organization, destroy Isiki and take
back Isiki's ten-tails. strong, able to hide in the
...
...
...
ninja world for decades without being
discovered. No doubt, they are also
closely monitoring every move of the
world. Itachi said straight to the point,
"We are paying attention to the enemy, I'm afraid
the enemy is also paying attention to us." The future is after the great war, so Jon
...
...
probably already knows that Naruto is from the
future. Kara's actions will be even more secretive than before, and Naruto can't help but be
...
...
stunned
didn't think about this point, a bad premonition
arose in his heart. After
some discussion, they decided to use
Victor and Boro as the breaking point. These
people all have the ambition to live forever,
always covet Hasirama's cells, only
need them to launch a lure large enough,
can lure the snake out of the cave. Hearing
that, Kakuzu suggested that Hasirama's
elite cells be sold on the black market, maybe
could lure them, thereby getting clues about
the Kara organization's headquarters. Everyone
seemed to agree, this task
will be assigned to Kakuzu, who knows
the most about the black market. Just like that, the war between
Naruto and the Kara organization began. At this
time, Naruto arranged for Kakuzu and
Orochimaru to go to the black market of the
Ninja world. What they need to do is auction
of Hasirama's elite cells, thereby luring
members of the Kara organization.
As soon as Orochimaru and the others left, the
intelligence department transmitted news that the
Kage requested to meet with Naruto. After a
period of preparation, Naruto took the five Kage to the
meeting room of the rain village. Looking at everyone's
quiet faces, Naruto probably guessed
their purpose. Next to
Chunade, Kakashi held a long list, with a serious
face he said, "Up to now
, Konoha has had more than 100 ninjas
apply to withdraw from the ninja payroll,
of which there is no shortage of capable ninjas.
Kakashi's words revealed his concern about
Konoha's future. Other large villages
also met It's the same problem. Unexpectedly,
the problem that this great war left
was more serious than imagined. However, after
this great war, the concept of ninja
that the ninjas had built for so long through
their training and missions were
destructively affected A lot of disorientation
...
...
ninjas have since lost their spirit, no longer
carrying great ambitions
but have become a group that lies dormant and ignores
in the ninja world. The current situation
is not very optimistic, but Naruto sitting in the middle
has a calm expression. Recognizing one's
smallness is also a kind of
maturity, retreating here is also a
wise choice. He told the villages to
respect the ninjas' decisions.
Those who want to withdraw, let them
withdraw. But the sharp decrease in
ninja numbers means that there are fewer people who can do
tasks. This will definitely
cause the village's income to plummet.
many categories will be forced to stop. The current
ninja system is probably no longer
suitable for the future battlefield. Naruto
as the head of the five kage
in the future can say very clearly
the inadequacies of the ninja system. Under
the current one country, one village regime, the nature of
ninjas is more like a tool.
Large villages were forced to serve the
yô nights of the countries. Running around on duty consumes
energy. This no doubt
greatly limited the growth of
ninjas. If they cannot break through this point
, it will be difficult for ninjas to achieve
. Current reform is extremely
urgent. Naruto stood up and said a shocking
sentence. Faced with an outside
threat that could easily destroy this
world, Demio's role and opinions could
be said to be useless. As soon as these words were uttered, the
eyes of the ninjas present were shocked.
Did Jaikage scold Naruto for being crazy? This
cannot be said indiscriminately. But Naruto
said something even more shocking. He told everyone
to honestly convey the current
situation to Demo, asking Demio from
from now on to coordinate resources, all
efforts to support Ninja's growth.
Only a ninja can protect like that
future world. In a
far-sighted situation, if we do not take
the right to take the initiative, we will be the
sinners of history. The future of the
world of ninjas is not the responsibility of those nights
but of all the ninjas present here
. If anything happens, let Uzumaki Naruto
take care of it. After a while of discussion,
everyone finally reached an initial
consensus. The Five Kage returned to village
preparing to negotiate with their Demio.
Based on the negotiation results,
next steps will be implemented. At this time, in an unknown
space, Jigen was discussing with
Amado about the recent events
outside. Amado calmly said, Osasuki
Kawya was revived and surrendered to a ninja
named Uzumaki Naruto. The ninjas are plotting
some big things, but currently there is
no sign that they know of
our existence. Hearing that, Jigon thought
deeply and said, "Uzumaki Naruto
always says that he was born in the future,
saying he doesn't know about
's existence is unreasonable." As an uki,
Isiki naturally knew about the existence of
the plowman, so the fact that there was someone who could
travel through time, he did not feel
strange. Based on this premise, Jigon speculates
that if Naruto is truly the reincarnated
person, then is the person who killed Naruto in
the future also him? But
when thinking about telling the plowman not to stay on
of him, Jig couldn't help but come to another
unacceptable conclusion. So does that mean
I will be the one killed
in the future? And if this myth has
happened, it means that he in
the future could not find a suitable container
. Isiki who knew nothing about the future made a reasonable guess. He
...
immediately decided to contact all
gathered internal members. He has
important things to announce. At this time
Jan has summoned all members
of the Kara organization. He asked Kara to temporarily
stop her current work and refrain from
moving around, staying motionless to
wait for Naruto's movements. But Victor
, with his greed for immortality, secretly
violated Jigen's orders. When he learned that on the
black market, Hasirama
's elite cells were being auctioned, he did not
hesitate to go to the auction site. Along with
are the belligerent clowns de ba and Boro.
You also pursue infinite rebirth.
This auction is actually a trap
carefully set up by Naruto and everyone
, the purpose is to lure members
of the Karamaco organization. Three days later at
night, the auction took place as
planned. Victor, after disguising himself, used
a sky-high price to buy Hasirama's
cells. Naruto observed everything
in the surveillance room, admiring that this old man
really had a lot of money, it was time to collect
's net. After paying, Victor
rushed
out of the hall carrying Hasirama's cell. Just as he was
pleased, the chakra alarm in
's body suddenly vibrated violently. The next
second, Naruto used flying lightning to appear
in front of him. Victor immediately
broke out in a cold sweat, what was this unimaginably huge
chakra reaction
all about. He realized something
was wrong, intended to quickly escape,
and threw the box containing the cells
Hasirama had bought to Naruto. Naruto
took it only to discover that the bottom of the box was filled with
explosive charms. After a loud explosion, Naruto
carrying a can of food bottles unharmed, blocking
's path to Victor's escape. Victor
couldn't believe his eyes. In just
to one second, that kid not only
escaped the scene of the explosion unharmed
, but also protected the box.
Naruto smiled and said, "It's nothing
you've been through this since you were
born." Obito in this majestic space
couldn't help but sneeze. Victor himself
was no match for Naruto,
no matter what jutsu he used,
Naruto easily dispelled it. Naruto raised his hand
to activate the Ten Thousand Phenomena, sucking him
back from afar. Victor desperately begged
Naruto for forgiveness. He will tell
Naruto everything he knows.
Naruto coldly said, "No need, you will
find it yourself." Towards these cruel Kara
members,
He grabbed the top of Victor's head, and in a few seconds, he
...
had all the information in Victor's
brain There, his hand
pulled, Victor's soul was pulled out
.
...
On the other side, a black vortex appeared
in front of Boro. Obito was also lured out of it
...
...
Are you the Uchi Obito in the legend
? He quickly made a seal, released
a shock wave, and acid fell
like rain, but in the end
had no effect. Seeing the shaking,
Obito's eyes could not help but freeze.
...
...
He coldly replied to Boro. He
was Uchi Obito, also the god
of Boro today. Obito
's left eye stopped, and Boro's head was immediately torn off, but a
...
second later, Boro
's head sneered and said,
"You have abilities that are difficult to deal with, not only
but Obito alone." After saying that, he formed a special seal with both
hands,
Obito stared at a certain place
on Boro's body, then said,
"So that's it. In your body there is
a black nucleus, every time you make a
seal, that nucleus will change position, that
is the key to your
's rebirth, right?" Boro heard that, his
heart shrank. He did not expect that Obito would
be able to see through the secret of his reincarnation
in just one glance. Obito slowly
advanced, smiling and not laughing at the same time, telling
Boro not to be afraid, he won't be like
that 12 year old girl, attacking
's opponent's weak point, because compared to picking
to find flaws, he prefers to smash both
's eggs and bones. Feeling danger, Boro
unleashed a free move, turned
to flee, but no matter how
he ran, Obito would immediately appear
in front of him and use overwhelming strength to
defeat him. In the end, Boro was tired both physically
and mentally, so he became discouraged and asked Obito to give him a gentle
...
death. After using Sarine to coerce
for information, Obito launched a violent
storm, completely destroying boro. At this
moment in another hallway of the hall,
Depa, the killer, was frantically
chasing people in the hall. But
at the end of the hallway suddenly sounded
cold footsteps. Depa looked at the
man wearing clothes that were not suitable for this
era, smiled teasingly, saw
's corpse all over the ground but still dared to walk straight, it seemed
was a man not afraid of death. Madara
crossed his arms over his chest, coldly and arrogantly
said, "I heard you are called a belligerent
clown." DA arrogantly condensed a
large amount of rocks to shoot towards Madara, but
Madara walked in that rain of bullets like
walking in the garden, constantly approaching
from the opposite direction. After getting close, he suddenly
burst out. Susanu grabbed Depa. Mr.
shook his head and said, "Depa's dancing was so
bad, it could only raise a little dust.
But he was very curious, Depa was a
is artificial, is it blood or machine
oil?" With Madara clenching his
fists, Depa's body was crushed in a
pitiful scream. Truly a clown fond of
fighting chaos. Madara muttered to himself and
walked through the pool of blood. Suddenly he
stopped. Only then did he realize that
had forgotten what Naruto had told him to visit.
searching for information. Just like that, the three experts within
of the Kara organization who had caused great trouble to the ninja world in their previous life
...
At this time, the three
of Naruto gathered together, exchanged
information, and Madara said
calmly, "That clown doesn't know anything.
Naruto and Obito each probed
a space-time coordinate. They
decided to take turns to see." Naruto finally
finally recognized the new Osatsuki. At this
Naruto decided to scout the two
coordinates he got from the Kara organization.
He returned to the base first, calling Kawya,
Sasuke, Obito and Madara to go with him. Kawya
used Hoang Tuyen Bi Luong Ban to open
...
Everyone immediately entered. The first thing
appeared before was a
wall with different patterns. This was the place where
had been in his previous life when
approached the
wall carved with totems. special material from their planet
...
...
. Kawya injected chakra into that
. Suddenly, an image of Isiki and Obito
...
appeared. Naruto told
they didn't need to worry, this was just a
image
...
Isiki, you lost Kurama. This time you
vowed not to let that tragedy happen again. At
Kawya continued to introduce, no
this time is actually a money base.
Osatsuki's line before they
occupied other planets. The three sets of totems
on the wall represent that this space
is owned by these three pairs of members
. Madara sees Isiki
's totem above Kawya. He guessed that
Isiki's status was once higher than Kawya's. Suddenly
Obito spoke up looking at the shape of the horn.
The first and second pair must be Momosiki
and Kinsiki in Naruto's memories. So who are
of these two destroyed couples? Regarding this
, Naruto explained that in his previous life he
learned from Amado that these totems
recorded Urasiki and that Urasiki
's superior was Osatsuki Riusiki. Hearing that, Obito's
eyes were shocked. World Destroyer
ninja's name is god, right? Have
ever fought Ryusiki
before? Naruto shook his head in denial. Not yet. From
beginning to end I never met him,
only heard his name. Kawya
looked at the destroyed totems above, sinking
into thought, her eyes revealing a bit of
compassion, explaining that Ryusiki was
a transcendent genius in their
clan. Even though he doesn't eat fruit and only relies on
his personal strength, Riusiki
's strength in the entire Osatsuki clan is not
outside the top 5. At the same time, he is also
Kawya's master on planet
Osatsuki. But since Ya broke the
family rule of secretly eating fruit, Mrs.
no longer received any news
from Riusiki. After everyone heard
Kawya's story, their faces became
serious. Naruto exclaimed that
monsters in the Osatsuki clan are really
too many. At this moment, the
roar of a wild beast suddenly echoed from far away. Everyone turned
to look at the giant container in the distance.
Naruto then remembered that this space
is also where the Kara organization keeps the ten
tails. They imprisoned the Ten-Tails and stored it
in Obito's dimension. Then they
went to another space coordinate,
which is the base of the Kara organization. But
is now against it. Not
long ago, here, Amado had rushed before
Jigon, reporting how Victor and
the others had gone against
's orders and fallen into Naruto's trap. Worried that
's hiding place had been exposed, Jig decided to leave.
After a while of searching, Naruto's group didn't
discover anything useful, so several
people returned to the rain village together. At this
moment, at the new base of the Kara organization,
Jigon is frowning, having lost three
members of his internal formation in a row and the ten-tails which were
his bloodline. He was absolutely certain that
Naruto really came from the future and knew
their information well. Currently, his vessel
is not yet available, and he cannot act
without hesitation. How to
deal with the current situation has become
a difficult problem. Amado saw
so he immediately pushed the boat forward, asking
to introduce his new work to
Jigon. Not long after, a blue-haired
girl led a boy out from the
darkness. The ones who came were Ada and
Demon. Jigon carefully observed the two
of them. Amado introduced that Ada and Demon were
once a pair of sisters with superior physical abilities.
I have transformed them into people
stronger than you are now. If according to
practice, artificial people who surpass
Jigon will be dealt with. But in
's current situation, Jigon couldn't help but
take advantage of this pair of sisters. After thinking
for a long time, Jigon officially announced that A and
Demon would from today become
members of the internal battle. Delta standing next to him was so angry that
's blood boiled. She believes that someone like Naruto
is absolutely not worth hiding
from. In the end, she did not listen to
Amado's advice, broke the wall and
left angrily. Delent really couldn't
swallow this anger. She decided to do it herself
I went to the rain village to destroy Naruto.
Naruto had just returned to the rain village when
the intelligence department reported the news. A blonde-haired woman
with a fiery figure is coming
this way. As soon as Naruto heard the description,
guessed it was Delta. In his previous life, he
fought with her. In the end, although
won, it could be said that the victory was not
glorious. This time he decided to
personally meet the other person again. A flash of yellow
light flashed, he appeared right next to
below Delta rushing forward. When Delta
discovered it, she couldn't help but feel
shocked, she quickly launched an attack.
Naruto stood still, using one hand to block
from her taijutsu. Delta was extremely angry in
's heart. As she attacked, she
roared at Naruto to stop being
so arrogant, a low-class ninja who launched
jutsu and also had to perform fake bed seals.
Naruto smiled and said, "Hin is a great
invention." Having finished speaking, he condensed a compressed mini
Rasensuriken at the tip of
his finger and threw it towards Delta. Seeing
such a small technique, Denta was so angry that
burst out laughing. Is this ridiculous magic to comfort
children? She rushed forward to absorb that
Rasensuri Ken, but the more she absorbed
, the more she realized something was wrong. Because that
Rasensuriken has absolutely no sign
of the diminishing effect.
's absorbing eye suddenly let out an alarm sound.
Delta suddenly stopped and moved back
. Along with the explosion of the
Rasensuriken, it finally created an
explosion with a destructive power equivalent to the
gem beast's tail. Delta backed away very far, looking at the
deep hole before his eyes, filled with hatred.
Such a jutsu that looked like a childish joke
was beyond her
absorption limit. Sensing a threat,
Delta separated the core device on his back from
's body and quietly flew into the air.
As long as this device is not destroyed,
she can easily be revived on a
spare body. With drone
piloted as insurance, Delta once again
attacked Naruto. Taijutsu was her
forte, but she couldn't even
move Naruto. Angered to the point of
losing her mind, she focused her gaze on
Naruto and shot out two purple beams of light.
This is Delta's strongest move.
But Naruto condensed the Black Stick in
's hand and easily blocked it. Delta almost doubts
everything she has gone through.
In the end, she was easily
destroyed by Naruto. At the distant Kara organization base,
Amado synchronized the battle images transmitted from
Eda's thousand eyes. He
exclaimed that Naruto's chakra was no
inferior to those of those high-ranking Osatsuki.
If you add Naruto's rich
fighting experience, his
fighting power is probably even better than Isiki's.
Amado has his own thoughts
because Naruto comes from the future, he guesses
that Naruto must have also come into contact
with him in the future. Now that
sees Naruto's strength, collaborating with
Naruto is probably more reliable than
collaborating with Jigon. At this time, Naruto was secretly
following
Delta's drone. This plane is the core of
Delta. At this point, it will definitely return to
its base to revive. Just follow it closely,
will definitely find
Kara's headquarters. This is why Amado
let Delta come find Naruto. He planned to
secretly reveal the location of Kara's base to
Naruto. Naruto hid his aura and soon found Kara's base. After
...
leaving behind a flying lightning god mark, he
returned to the rain village first. He told
Obito to release Isiki's ten-tails and suppress
it outside. The Ten-Tails will roar
and scream. Naruto told him not to rush, soon
will give you a taste of it
Osatsuki. The last thing Naruto needs to do
is to feed these ten-tailed Isiki, then
let one of them become
the Jinchuriki of this ten-tailed. After arranging
everything, Naruto stood up and intended to send
the magic philo to Jigon's base. Regarding
the destruction of Isiki, he couldn't wait
another second. Obito
first saw Naruto so angry, he
asked Naruto if he needed help? Naruto
said decisively, "No need, tell Obito
and the others to just watch over
the Ten-Tails." Having finished speaking, Flying Spirit
was activated, Naruto appeared
again in front of Jigon's base. A powerful stream of
chakra suddenly appeared.
Jigon in the base rested his chin in one hand,
frowned. No matter how he calculated,
did not expect Naruto to come here so
quickly. The only possibility is that there is a traitor in their
organization. Now the ten
tails are in Naruto's hands. Jigon knew
that there was no point
in him hiding, and moreover, he had found the most suitable container
. That container is
Naruto's body. Naruto strode
in front of Jon. The grievances of the previous
life and this life will finally be
resolved here. Naruto will finally
settle the debt with Isiki from his previous life
. Jen was extremely surprised and asked
why Naruto appeared here. Naruto
laughed and said that those things
didn't matter because from today Isiki
's existence would disappear forever. Hearing that,
couldn't help but laugh. From Naruto's
hatred towards him, he guessed that
in the future world he
definitely took away something important from
Naruto. While talking, Jig suddenly
raised his hand to aim at Naruto. Several
shrunken black rods were shot out. But Naruto
stood still without moving, using
to block all the black sticks with one hand. Jon saw that
was startled in his heart, this was the first time
had someone able to block
this move of his with his bare hands. Naruto teased
and told him to reveal Isiki
's true face. This Jigon container is absolutely
not your opponent. Jon tells Naruto
not to be arrogant. As he spoke, black lines
appeared on his body, he
arrogantly said that it was not Naruto
's turn to point his finger. As soon as he finished speaking,
's figure appeared behind Naruto. Naruto
was a bit surprised, the speed was really fast. Jon
delivered a strong kick to Naruto's shoulder and back.
Naruto crashed like a cannonball
into the ground. The tail in his belly reminded
him not to be subjective. Old opponent
Satsuki Isiki. Even though this Jigon's body was
not good, that year he easily crushed
both Naruto and Sasuke. Naruto stood up
and dusted himself off. He laughed and said that
Kurama now resembles future
Hinata more and more in terms of chatter.
At this moment, Jon's figure suddenly
disappeared. Naruto now has the Samsara Eye.
Figuring out the direction of movement after shrinking
of Jigon is not difficult.
When Jigon reappeared, Naruto also
simultaneously used the lightning technique to appear
behind him. He smiled and said, "Jigon's
speed seems to be just that
." Jon was surprised, once again
zoomed out to avoid Naruto's punch, but
when he raised his head, he discovered that Naruto's modern
Rasengan pearl had continued to fly
towards him. He immediately raised his hand to absorb it. Even in a
miniature state, he could still absorb
the jutsu. The Rasengan became
smaller, but Naruto did not panic because
he knew that once the opponent had absorbed
, he could no longer activate the ability to absorb
. Therefore, he deliberately maintained
Sengan, and at the same time, his virtual Chakra hand
reached behind his back, holding the black ice hockey stick
, intending to pierce Jigon. Feel it
is dangerous, Jigon urgently launches a space gate
to avoid the attack and reappears
somewhere else. But as soon as
appeared,
Naruto's strong punch hit him in the face. The fierce impact
broke many layers of obstacles
, causing Jigon to crash into the cliff. This
punch contains Naruto's nostalgia for future
Kurama. Jigen stood up,
angrily turned on the second state. Naruto
radiates lightning, actively attacking
. Taijutsu was
Jigan's forte. He did not back down but faced
directly. Two streams of light, one orange and one
white, intersected in the sky, emitting
thunder and heavy
collisions. But in
Jigon's forte in taijutsu, he is completely inferior. Every time
collided, he could feel the
pressure and screams from
Naruto's punch. Relying on lightning to activate
neural reflexes, damn Ninja. After
several collisions, Jigon's hands became numb,
's loopholes gradually appeared. Naruto's
lightning-fast kick sent Jigon flying downwards. Jigon's
body crashed into the ground, Naruto was
enveloped in lightning and directly
stepped on it. Jon's pupils shrank, immediately
activated his dojutsu to shrink
's body. On the collapsed ground, Naruto looked
around but could not see any sign of Jon. This
time, Jigen's Chakra was
perfectly hidden, but Naruto could
feel the
opponent's lustful malice. The extraordinary Thien Duc
made a movement, the extremely strong gravitational force attracted the small
Jigon towards him. With one hand, Naruto maintained
the extraordinary celestial guidance, and with the other
condensed a Rasengan jade ball.
The whole process goes
smoothly. The jade ball finally hit
straight into Jigon's stomach, the ball on
's stomach suddenly cracked. Naruto
's power far exceeds Isiki's imagination. Object
containing this Jigon finally couldn't stand
, and with white smoke rising, a
muscular body appeared within it.
Naruto looked serious,
finally waited for you. Osasuki Isiki. At this
moment, Osasuki Isiki finally
appeared. When Naruto met Isiki again,
couldn't help but clench his fists. He suppressed
his anger and asked Isiki how much time
left to dance. Isiki was in no hurry to
say that he had just confirmed that the object
contained was most suitable for him, which was
Naruto's body. Hearing these words,
Naruto couldn't help but laugh.
's figure suddenly appeared behind Isiki.
Isiki suddenly turned around and swung his fist,
the moment the two fists collided, the sky
the earth shook. After a moment of hesitation,
Isiki suddenly opened his
Mexican-shaped eyes wide. But Naruto seemed to see through
Isiki's attack. He suddenly
tilted his head to avoid Isiki's black stick.
Isiki immediately changed his punches to kicks. but
was also easily neutralized by Naruto. Isiki
had to shrink himself to avoid Naruto's
strong punch, then he reappeared
in the distance. He angrily activated the Great
Black Sky, and in the blink of an eye, countless black cubes
appeared above
Naruto's head. Naruto immediately shouted loudly to the sky,
forced an air attack from the Ten Gods. Countless
virtualized chakra fists attacked the cubes
in all directions. Looking at each cube being
blown away, Isiki shouted loudly, "No way,
Eighty Divine Air Strike is a high level
secret technique of our clan, how could a mere mortal
learn it?" Naruto said teasingly,
"If you want to learn, you can teach." Having finished speaking,
he once again activated the Eighteen Spirits
to attack Isiki. Isiki hastily dodged,
but Naruto's attack was too fast,
was hit with several punches, Isiki ended up spitting
out a mouthful of blood. He thought about it and
got angry and scolded Naruto for daring to trick him, because of that
Naruto's attack was not at all
catching the ten god air strikes, but just
slightly faster chakra punches
. Naruto awkwardly scratched
his head, he always thought this move was cool,
just didn't have time to ask Kawya
to learn it. Based on his experience fighting
Isiki in his previous life, Naruto is very familiar
with Isiki's moves. Whether
it was taijutsu or doujutsu, Isiki
couldn't find Naruto's loophole.
But the hardest thing for Isiki
is
Naruto's ability to sense malice. Therefore, he arranged black
cubes in all directions
around. These black stones, in addition to
having an extremely terrible weight,
can also shield all types of
feelings. After placing
cubes of black stone in all directions, Isiki also
threw one right above Naruto's head.
Naruto used his Nine-Tails Chakra hand to turn into
arm, trying to support it in the air.
If only considering the amount of chakra, the current you
can be said to be much stronger than Barion mode in
years, it's just that the attack is not
effective in reducing lifespan. Naruto
guessed that Isiki summoned these rocks
to prepare for a sneak attack
. Sure enough, Isiki once again
shrank himself and quietly approached Naruto.
Before fighting Isiki, Naruto
spent day and night thinking about how to defeat
the opponent. He immediately turned the jade path
into a shield that covered
's entire body. So you just need to tell
to protect your eyes. Isiki's sword secretly attacked
Naruto, but in the end it could not
penetrate Naruto's body covered by
path jade. He
angrily rushed forward with a black stick, intending to strike
on Naruto's head. Naruto blocked
Isiki's black stick with one hand. After that,
's punches made Isiki continuously step back.
Seeing that Naruto was so strong, Isiki held out
Umbrella branch to Naruto. He warns Naruto
that Osatsuki is not just him and
Kaguya, there are many people
stronger than him in the clan. As long as Naruto becomes
his vessel, he will be able to receive
recognition from their family, thereby in exchange for
peace for the earth. Naruto disdainfully
often said, "No need, the peace before
must be won by oneself, besides
it doesn't matter if any Osatsuki will attack
in the future, the important thing is that
you, Isiki, must disappear from
this world today."
Naruto's emotional fluctuations caused the sky to suddenly thunder
, lightning, and strong winds arose. The Osatsuki clan in
years ago destroyed everything he had.
Even if Osatsuki does not come to earth, he
will definitely go find the person who destroyed his
future. Seeing that the negotiation was not successful, Isiki suddenly flew into the air, he suddenly waved his hands, countless
...
...
black sticks rained down. Ground
was attacked without any dead ends. This position
is completely impossible to avoid. Naruto
struggled to hold up a jade
shield to defend against the attack. At this time
something happened, behind Naruto suddenly
opened a space gate. Isiki
rushed out from there at lightning speed and peeled
off Naruto's neck. Dark Kama lines
began to spread on Naruto's body. Naruto's confident
expression suddenly turned
panicked. After succeeding, Isiki
raised his face to the sky and laughed loudly. So even if
his body is destroyed, not long after
he can be revived thanks to Naruto's
body. But at this moment Naruto
laughed. Suddenly, Naruto was turned
into smoke by Cama and disappeared, a hole leading
underground appeared. It turns out that Naruto
had just used the jade shield to
shield himself, and at the same time left
's clone image above, while his main body remained.
soon fled underground.
Isiki's pupils shrank, not expecting that his life-long hero
would be deceived by a lowly clone
. Suddenly, the ground under
his feet collapsed, countless clones of
Naruto suddenly rushed out from the ground, each
clone carrying a large
Rasengan. This sudden change
surprised Isiki. During such a short
time of launching such a large-scale
attack, he became more and more curious about what Naruto
had gone through. The shadows
surround and attack, Isiki uses Kama
to absorb the Rasengan, and also uses
Sukuna Hikona to shrink the
Rasengan that cannot be absorbed in time. Naruto felt
so calm and leisurely because he knew that any
magic had its limits and
weak points. And
Isiki's Sukuna Hikona's weakness is Naruto's existence.
After being continuously exhausted by Naruto's
clones, Isiki
finally held his eyes in pain and knelt
to the ground. Each Rasengan hit
his body. As soon as
's Rasengan attack ended,
Naruto's 5,000 consecutive punches followed. Thousands of
clones continuously attacked, leaving Isiki
no chance to resist. Finally,
Naruto used the Rasengan to imprison
Isiki's pathetic body. Naruto and Cuu
Vi looked at each other and smiled, two fists, one large
and one small, touched each other. After a lifetime, the great
enemy has finally been avenged. This time
Naruto was finally able to protect
Kurama from Isiki. And what he needs
to do next is to take Isiki back to the rain village
and feed him to the Ten-Tails. At this time, Naruto
brought the defeated Isiki back to the rain village.
The next thing you need to do is feed
the ten-tailed Isiki. Sasuke, Obito, Madara
and Kawya joined Naruto next to the Ten
Tails. Seeing someone coming, the Ten-Tails roared fiercely, its eyes on its forehead
...
stared at the dying Isiki
on the ground. Kawya stepped forward, coldly telling
the Ten-Tails not to rush, I will now feed you
a full meal." Having said that, she picked up
Isiki and threw it into
's bloody mouth. While dying, Isiki
suddenly woke up. He looked at
Kaguya and Naruto in surprise, then belatedly said,
"So that's it, this is my plan."
you?" Isiki was extremely curious about who
destroyed Naruto's future, so
Naruto did not hesitate to risk playing as big as
. When Naruto said in a low voice
the god Sibai, Isiki's face was extremely
surprised, then laughed loudly. He could
imagine what Naruto had experienced
in the future. What a pity.
Naruto didn't meet that person, if
didn't Naruto would definitely have no chance of
being reborn. Hearing that, Naruto couldn't help but
's eyes flashed a strange light, then
he firmly said that this time he most
intended to change his destiny. Seeing that the
tail was about to swallow him, Isiki roared in despair
...
Kaguya betrayed the family, that great man
will definitely not forgive you.
Along with Isiki's roar, the Ten-Tails' large
mouth completely swallowed
Isiki. Dark red chakra immediately
covered the Ten-Tails' entire body The horrifying pressure makes
...
...
difficult for people to approach. This feeling of
oppression is much stronger than the ten
tails during the great ninja war. Ten
Tails opened his mouth wide and was about to shoot the jade beast.
Naruto suddenly made a
motion
...
came down, closing the giant body of the
Ten-Tails to the ground. Madara's eyes couldn't help but
become serious, the color of the wood
was so black, he didn't expect there to be magic.
the suppression power is stronger than that of Minh Than Mon.
Naruto let go of the seal, then confidently
said that this way the Ten-Tails would not be able to
escape. After letting the Ten-Tails
completely transform into Isiki, Kawya flew above the
Ten-Tails and opened his arms. She unleashed
Osatsuki's secret technique, refining the ten
tails into divine fruit. As for
who will eat this fruit, in the end
is of course Naruto. Before eating, Kawya
reminded Naruto about the possible
dangers of the fruit. If it is not
strong, the Ten-Tails' consciousness can swallow
as much as Naruto's consciousness, and the person
who eats the fruit will become extremely hungry.
Chakra Naruto held the
divine fruit with red veins in his hand, sinking
into thought. He remembered the battle in
the future, the ninja world had used all its
strength, but in the end there was still no
resistance. Hinata was stabbed
by tentacles and fell down. Boruto and
Himawagari also fell down in front of
him. At the end of the battle, if
Sasuke hadn't used his life to teleport
away, perhaps he
wouldn't be able to stand here today. Sasuke stepped forward to
advise Naruto not to eat anymore, even if we don't eat
the fruit, we are finally
determined to be able to win against that clan.
But Naruto clearly understood in his heart that he wanted
to win against those scary people, without
using some special tricks, it was
impossible. After a moment of hesitation,
Naruto decisively said, "Forgive me,
Sasuke, this time it's my turn to shoulder
everything." Having finished speaking, Naruto swallowed the
divine tree fruit, but as soon as he finished swallowing, he showed
a pained expression. The chakra on
's body was like constantly boiling lava, a third eye cracked in the middle of
's forehead, and at the same time
his body showed many black lines.
The seven-tails in the mental space were also entangled by
blood chains. Cu Vi Sac
with a serious face, shouted loudly to Naruto, telling
that it's very bad here. The purple flood
of the Ten-Tails' chakra filled
Naruto's consciousness into the darkness. Naruto staggered
back a few steps, at the same time saying,
"Who exactly are you? What
power is this?" Naruto shouted loudly for Sasuke
and the others to run away. As soon as
's words ended, a huge black Rasengan ball
suddenly condensed in Naruto
's hand and smashed towards Sasuke and the other
people. Sasuke and the others used
their own ways to dodge
's attack, while shouting
Naruto's name. But Naruto had completely
lost his consciousness. What
Sasuke and the others are about to face
is a Naruto full of murderous intent.
Right after Naruto ate the
tree fruit, the Nine-Tails' chakra and the
tree energy collided violently, and
Naruto's consciousness was gradually swallowed. He
loudly shouted for Sasuke and the others
to run away. But as soon as he finished speaking, his huge
black Rasengan gem smashed
towards them. In the dust and smoke of the
Rasengan, Sasuke's reincarnation eye suddenly
rotated, the distorted space
teleported everyone hundreds of
meters away. He called out loudly for Naruto to wake up, but Naruto was completely
...
possessed by the will of the divine tree.
Madara's Susanu rose up, both hands holding
the large sword Susanu slashed at Naruto, losing
control. Behind Naruto's back suddenly
appeared two giant chakra hands, just
blocking Madara's Susanu scimitar, the
scimitar began to gradually melt.
Naruto, after eating the fruit, gained
the chakra-absorbing properties of the divine tree.
Kawya opened his eyes to observe the change
in Naruto's body. At this time, the fruit is
rewriting Naruto's bloodline,
his body is gradually sukiizing. Suddenly
Dark Naruto rushed forward savagely.
Four Chakra hands simultaneously grabbed
Sasuke and the others. The dark
attraction is activated. The chakra of Sasuke and
of the others was flowing along those
chakra hands towards Naruto. At this
moment, deep in the cage where the Nine-Tails was being
tightened by bloody chains. Naruto
is actually waging a fierce battle
with the consciousness of the Ten
Tails. Naruto clenched his fists, angrily
told the Ten-Tails to release his teammates. The Ten-Tails' consciousness
condensed into a
human form in front of Naruto, eventually transforming
into the form of Jura. This is
the true face of that ten-tailed beast. But what
surprised Naruto even more was that Zura's consciousness
was also mixed with Osasuki Isiki's consciousness
. Zura suddenly bowed
her head and laughed loudly saying that Naruto had miscalculated
. The Nine-Tails was imprisoned next to him and told
Naruto to pay attention. If he wanted to gain the
power of the Ten-Tails, he could only defeat
the opponent in a situation where he did not have the strength
of the Six Paths and the power of the Nine-Tails. The
tug of war between a regular Jinchuriki
and a tailed beast is to separate the tailed beast's chakra
from the tailed beast's consciousness. Bien wins will
swallow up the opponent's chakra. As for the
tug-of-war contest with the Ten-Tails, it's the opposite
of what Naruto needs to do is separate the Ten-Tails'
consciousness from the Ten
Tails' chakra. As long as Naruto succeeds, the Nine-Tails'
consciousness will finally be able to swallow
about the Ten-Tails' consciousness, thereby becoming
the perfect Ten-Tails Jinchuriki. After hearing
...
the Nine-Tails' explanation, Naruto trembled and clenched his fists. After
his steady eyes told the Nine-Tails to wait a
moment, he would soon let the other person taste the
taste of the Ten-Tails. At this time in the outside
space,
Naruto's Chakra hands were grabbing Sasuke and the
others suddenly stopped absorbing
chakra. Sasuke guessed that this was for sure
is Naruto fighting with the Ten-Tails
in the mental space. Some
people took the opportunity to escape
Naruto's restraints. But at this time, the surrounding area suddenly
suddenly spread. Naruto, who was
out of control, suddenly shot eight
black sticks in all four directions. Naruto
formed a six-way, eight-sided speaker
formation with both hands. A dark red barrier immediately
trapped all of Sasuke and
others inside. This formation
is not only unbreakable, but will also
gradually shrink over time. Finally crushed
everything inside. Naruto continued to clasp
his hands together, several kilometers of land below the
boundary instantly turned into a
seething swamp. This is the Six Paths
Immortal Dharma of Hoang Tuyen Trieu Uyen. Sasuke
was extremely surprised when he saw that. When did that Naruto
learn so many sublime techniques
? Obito smiled helplessly,
is this the so-called
three times stronger blackening, three times weaker whitening?
With the increase in power, many
previously unusable ninjutsu
became usable. Like Madara
, after becoming a Ten-Tailed Jinchuriki
, he can also easily use advanced
ninja techniques such as the lightning sect and the blue
light release. With the barrier
constantly shrinking, the seething swamp
below was constantly rising, pressing
close to Sasuke and the others. Obito tried
to activate Camui to teleport everyone
away, but discovered that this
barrier also had the ability to seal
space. Any space
time ninjutsu within will lose
its effectiveness, including
Kawya's common heavenly branch. Some people invoked various types of
ring magic to try to break the barrier. But
even though Madara and Sasuke
's Susanu scimitars slashed until they were smoking, the barrier still
did not budge. Seeing this, Kawya called Sasuke
came to the side and said, "This palace will temporarily
awaken the god-killing power of
Indra in your veins." Having said
, she pressed her palm against
Sasuke's back. Pure Osasuki Chakra was
infused into Sasuke's body.
Indra's shadow appeared behind Sasuke. Fusing
with Kawya's power, Sasuke opened the ultimate
Six Paths of Susanu. He couldn't
believe it and exclaimed that there was
this kind of power, then pulled the bow and turned
the power into arrows. Combined with the strong
power that Obito has merged with,
Sasuke calls this move the Six Paths of Great Darkness
Thien Hac Than. Finally, they managed
to tear a crack in the barrier.
Some people escaped from the barrier, and the
damaged water stains of the barrier were immediately
repaired. Sasuke looked at
Naruto who was still struggling internally
in the barrier, his face complicated. He
finally understood
Naruto's thoughts. Naruto's purpose when using
this barrier is to seal the
body that is losing control inside. He
believed that with the abilities of Sasuke and
the others, escaping this
barrier would not be difficult. As long as
needed Sasuke and the others to leave the
barrier, he could
not worry and fight Jura inside
inside the barrier. Thinking of this, Sasuke
couldn't help but clench his fists,
screaming in his heart, Naruto must not
die. At this time, Naruto in the star world
breathed a sigh of relief, he moved his
bones, pointed at Zura and said, "Then
should settle the matter with you next."
At this time, Naruto alone faced
the reincarnation of the Ten-Tails, Jura. What he needs
to do is defeat his opponent without
's help from the Nine-Tails.
Zura's appearance has seven parts similar to Osatsuki
Isiki. Because he is the later incarnation
when the ten-tails swallowed Isiki. Naruto
divided into dozens of clones, from the beginning
used clones to probe what
believed was his familiar style.
Jura is influenced by Isiki. Seeing that
Naruto was so angry that he was gritting his teeth, he
appeared behind him, every last
tree root virtualized into the shape
of the people that the Ten-Tails had
swallowed. The clone army of the two
sides rushed towards each other. After a period of
jutsu competition, the clones of the Ten-Tails
deployed all kinds of ninjutsu and rushed to attack
Naruto's army. Naruto saw that,
bit his finger, pressed his hands on the ground,
summoned the five levels of La Sinh Mon, all
ninjutsu were blocked. At this moment, from
behind La Sinh Mon, dozens of diamond blockade threads suddenly shot out
. This
is the technique that Kusina
used in the past. The tiny chains have
binding power, especially on tailed beasts.
The clones of the ten-tails were all
imprisoned in place. But Jura also suddenly
swung the chakra chains that fused
the power of Osatsuki Isiki. The
chains of the two sides were intertwined, their
consciousnesses were like two winds tearing
apart. Zura tried to pull
Naruto's consciousness into the abyss, so he could
take over Naruto's body. Facing
the long-lost Chakra tug-of-war contest,
Naruto did not want to be outdone, after all
behind him was the safety of the entire
ninja world. Just by separating the consciousness of the Ten
Tails from the Ten-Tails' body, the
Nine-Tails' consciousness will be able to take over the entire Ten
Tails. But the situation was not as simple as
Naruto imagined. Zura dared to tug of war with Naruto
, naturally having enough confidence. When the Ten-Tails' consciousness
was pulled out to cover
Naruto's body, Naruto's mind suddenly
fell into chaos. This is the sign
is swallowed upside down by the Ten-Tails. Original words
The Ten-Tails' resentment is dozens
times stronger than the Nine-Tails in the past, plus the
all-powerful power of the original Ten-Tails
is completely
unbearable for mortals. A pool of blood when
's parents died on the night of the Nine-Tails. The tragic scene
of Hinata being impaled during
's battle with Pen and the image of the
ninja world being completely destroyed by Sibai
kept replaying in
Naruto's head. Despair and regret when
his teammates fell one after another in front of
him and he was helpless once again
filled Naruto's body. He
held his head in pain. Zura's voice echoed
in the air. He laughed and said that Naruto's
chains were nothing more than
self-deception chains. Naruto's
consciousness was gradually pulled by Jura along the
chains. He tried to resist but
was ultimately powerless. The Nine-Tails being
imprisoned screamed in pain, telling
Naruto to wake up, but
had no effect. Black
kama veins began to erode all over his body. Just
when Naruto was about to be completely swallowed,
Jira's voice suddenly rang
in his ears. "You already want to give up
so quickly? This is not like you,
Naruto." Next were the voices of
Team Seven Airuka, Hinata, Konohagakure,
Nhi Tieu Cuong, Boruto, Himawari and the
previous Hokages of Konoha, Obito,
Madara. The strength of everyone
's bond was like drops of pure water,
lighting up Naruto's heart that was about to be
swallowed by darkness. The darkness surrounding
suddenly shined brightly. After
regaining consciousness, Naruto smiled brightly. Please
apologize to the Nine-Tails behind you for making it worry.
Seeing the duck fly away from her mouth, Zura
roared that weak emotions
only bring destruction. Naruto clasped his
hands together, smiling at the same time, "This is something
that the Osatsuki people will never
understand." Multiple shadow clones
were activated. Naruto shouted loudly, putting all
of his force behind him. The situation immediately
turned in Naruto's favor.
's consciousness was inevitably
finally separated from the Ten-Tails' body. Naruto
used a sealing technique to seal it
deep in space All the
chakra of the Ten-Tails turned into liquid
and flowed into Naruto's body, finally merging
into the Nine-Tails
finally became the Nine-Tails with 10 tails.
The two looked at each other and smiled, just like that,
Naruto became the Jinchuriki of the Ten-Tails
. He reached out and touched his fist
of the Nine-Tails. At this moment, he remembered
when he broke up with the Nine-Tails in his previous life, he
cried and told him not to go but couldn't
hold back. This time he finally had the
strength to protect the Nine-Tails and everyone
the Bat Phuong Loa formation in the
world began to disintegrate So he smiled slightly, it seemed that Naruto
...
had succeeded. At this moment, Naruto
became the Ten-Tails Jinchuriki standing in the wind.
Now he seemed to be able to change
everything. The Nine-Tails' consciousness had successfully
merged and dominated the Ten-Tails. There were also signs of yin power. The yellow
...
...
...
cloak on his body turned into white
...
. Naruto became the ten-tailed Jinchuriki and stood in the wind. Obito
looked at Naruto's completely new
appearance, but they also felt
...
unfamiliar with Naruto
's appearance laugh, that's because Naruto is now
the perfect Ten-Tails Jinchuriki.
He doesn't need to use part of
's power to suppress the Ten-Tails inside like
Obito and the others before
Naruto suddenly made a seal with both hands,
launched the six paths under the abyss of rebirth along with
the light emanating from the third eye
on his forehead. The ground below was eroded by Huang
Tuyen Trieu Uyen, and
was immediately restored to its original state. Everyone
who saw this could not help but praise
. Naruto landed next to everyone
, apologizing to everyone for
losing control, saying, "Now
now the hatred of the Ten-Tails, the greed
of the Osatsuki clan and the courage of
humans, these powers that were opposite
have now become my
power. The only thing that makes you powerless
are the two horns growing on my head. Now
you could say it's getting more and more similar." Against
against the Kara organization, Naruto and the
others won
in the end with an overwhelming advantage. But the
cleanup work is not over yet, the stance and
arrangements for Amado and the Ada sisters are still
a problem. Although Naruto now looks
very similar to Osatsuki, it is still
ability to take the heart of his counter attack ability will be
effective or not. So he decided to be a little
unknown whether Demon's
careful. He asked Kawya, an orthodox
, to come with him to negotiate with Amano. What
Naruto wanted Kawagya to do was very simple.
During the negotiation process, you will not
be friendly with Aida. If you show
signs of being enchanted by Aa, Kawya will immediately
use iron and bone to destroy Aida.
So, under Kawya's escort, Naruto
met Amado in a secret room in the rainy
village. As soon as Amado arrived, he congratulated Naruto
on eliminating the big worry, Isiki.
Naruto sat down and said coldly, "That
type of person is not even worthy of being called a big
worry, it can only be said to be one less
eye-opener." Sitting on the sofa behind
Amado is crossing his long
legs. See the cold and arrogant attitude
of Naruto, she told Naruto not to
pretend. Hearing that, Kawya immediately improved the state of
enlightenment. She was worried that Naruto would be fascinated by the other person
, but Naruto coldly replied
, "Is there a place for you to talk
here?" Ada was momentarily speechless.
The Demon next to him saw Naruto talking rudely to
his sister, so he threatened
and told that if Naruto was good, he would come and touch him.
Naruto smiled and said, "Adults would
flirt with children." He soon saw through
Demon's intentions. The opponent's ability to counter
was only effective when the person
attacked with killing intent. Naruto proposed that Palace
provide a safe hiding place for Amado as
's condition, requiring Amado to work under
's shadow, and at the same time he would fulfill
's wish to revive
Amado's daughter. Amado's ability can be said to be
comparable to Orochimaru's technology
for Naruto's later conquest of
Osatsuki has an extremely important effect.
Finally, Naruto also asked Amado to remove
's abilities from Eda and Demon so that they could become
normal people living in the rain village.
Regarding safety issues, the rain village will bear
responsibility to the end. Although
's condition was very cruel, because of his daughter, Amado finally
finally compromised and agreed with
Naruto. Ada was surprised to see that Naruto was not
fascinated by her. This feeling that the dictator
doesn't love her, she
felt it for the first time. She was shaken,
couldn't help but feel that the more Naruto looked at
, the more handsome he became. At this moment Amado suddenly
shouted, "Ada Demon, it's time to sleep
." The two of them immediately stopped moving and lost consciousness. Next, Amado
...
will remove their abilities. Just like that,
Naruto and Amado reached a
cooperation agreement. After leaving the secret room,
Kawya said to Naruto, "It seems that
mind-grabbing ability doesn't work on
you." Naruto was both happy and annoyed
late. The last dragon slayer
also became a demon. This shows that your
self seems to have become the thing that
hates the most. In the past life, after the great ninja war
ended in peace, rain village
became the cradle for the crimes of the
organization Kara. Now Naruto has finally
finished making up for the
shortcomings of his previous life, bringing peace
and complete prosperity to the
rain village. At the same time, the ninja world is also
in a period of upheaval. A
moment of utmost importance has come. Naruto's
negotiations with the Demio lords
of the countries were about to begin. At this time,
the five Kage informed their
lords about reforming the
ninja regime. Naruto's request was for the
lords to allow the ninjas to no longer
need to participate in missions, but for the
ninjas to be able to focus on training to
deal with future enemies, and
major countries would provide the necessary
funds. Because of an important matter, the
lords of the five great powers came together
to hold a conference of the five great lords at
Iron Country. The
natural lords' final conclusion was to disagree because
this involved
the financial income of major countries. At this time, a
storm suddenly hit. The main arrival
was Sasuk Ke. As soon as the warriors saw the
invader, they rushed forward to block in front of the
lords. A martial artist who witnessed
Sasuke's riot at the Five Kage Summit shouted
loudly, everyone must not look
straight into his eyes, otherwise they will be beaten
a little harder. Just as the
atmosphere became tense, Sasuke suddenly became
more calm. He told everyone not to worry
, he wouldn't do anything wrong. About
of the meeting of the five great lords, Sasuke
heard it outside. He continued
saying, "In the world that is maintained
with this benefit, people can only fight
a common enemy. Like today, the five lords
side by side with
sat together, precisely because
they considered ninjas a common concern.
But the lords seem to have
overlooked a key issue. That's despite ignoring
the ninjas of the five great powers with
's current abilities in the rain village. If
Naruto has his mind, he has many
ways to put you all under his
control. But he didn't, don't you
think about why?"
Saying this, the lords all bowed their heads
in silence. Sasuke touched his reincarnation eye
and continued speaking, "Actually I
also want to resolve this in a
neater way, but if I did,
would definitely deepen
's misunderstanding." you and everyone towards Naruto." That
Naruto has been considered different by everyone around
since childhood, but
has never complained about his fate.
People who live in luxury like you
can't understand him
all their lives. Swallowing tears, eating expired instant noodles,
but giving the brightest smile to
everyone Naruto is a person like
, but the same person
saved this
ninja world more than once, becoming a hero in everyone's
hearts. In his previous life,
he lived in a way that no one could
blame and became an example
But Naruto still failed
people's expectations That future
world was finally
completely destroyed. Because of Naruto's
strong determination, God gave him
a chance to do it again. This time he
tried his best to prepare to deal with
that clan, even if it had to go against
's fire mentality and ninja way that he once believed Tough enemies in this world
...
former ninja world. Because of Naruto, in the end
and each of them became
companions who fought side by side.
If Naruto has really changed, believe that
the people present here definitely don't
have the opportunity to sit here and chat. Saying this,
Sasuke bowed his head and performed the
kowtowing ceremony in front of the lords. I sincerely
beg everyone to believe that
Naruto is really not exaggerating, that family
is real. What needs to be done now is to put
everything aside, race against time to
make the whole ninja world
stronger. In his previous life, Naruto once knelt
down in front of the Jaikage to ask him to
stop pursuing Sasuke. In this life,
Sasuke, in order to let Naruto receive the
recognition of the lords, also humbled himself
to kneel before them. The lords
were silent. After a moment of deliberation, they
one by one expressed Willingis to make
current reforms to deal with future
wars and open the door for traffic
between countries. Sasuke heard that
was extremely grateful. The matter up to this point
has finally been resolved in a perfect
way. This conference of the five great lords
laid the foundation for the development of
ninjas later. Just like that, a month
passed, the new regime was officially implemented by
. From today, all
ninjas of the five great ninja villages will stop
accepting missions. Their responsibility
is only one, which is to provide comprehensive training to
deal with the needs of
future wars. Raising an army for a thousand days, using
for an hour, the lords of
countries have all prepared themselves for
long-term investment. Funds
were quickly allocated to village rings, large
training areas sprang up like mushrooms.
Naruto, after learning of
Sasuke's actions at the meeting of the five great lords,
could not help but shed tears of emotion. Khanh
praises Sasuke for truly becoming a
ninja leader who can take on
alone. Next, you should also implement
your plan. Naruto decided to
establish a battle advisor in each
village staffed by five powerful ninjas. Those five
people are Naruto himself,
Sasuke, Hasirama, Obito and Madara. But
how does dividing the villages they
cover become a problem? Naruto's
new enemy has finally
appeared. At this time, Naruto is preparing to establish
combat advisors in the five great
Ninja nations, respectively led by Sasuke and
Naruto himself as well as Madara, Hasirama and
Obito. As soon as Naruto told
his plan, Hasirama's eyes couldn't help but brighten
, but Madara looked quite upset.
He crossed his arms over his chest and asked Naruto if
was wrong, he didn't have any free time
to play childish games with a bunch of
kids. Naruto had already guessed that Madara would
definitely object and he had already prepared his
arguments. After a bit of flattery, Madara finally
agreed with Naruto. Then
Naruto took out a box about who
blamed which village, he decided to draw lots.
The final result was that Sasuke was in charge of
Cloud Village, Madara picked the Stone Village,
Obito picked the Mist Village, Hasirama
picked the Sand Village, and Naruto picked
Konoha. Each person, for the
growth of the ninja world, begins a new
journey. Just like that, time silently
passed very quickly, 15 years
passed. Naruto, like his previous life, was
married to Hinata and also had Boruto and
Himawari. During these short
years of winning peace, you have not been negligent, your
strength is now immeasurable
deep. According to his own assessment,
is more than enough to deal with his father from 15 years ago
. His appearance is still the same as
, just between his eyebrows
adds some of the aura of a fake
strongman. Since their second year, Naruto and they began to
take on the role of military advisors
for the villages, and the ninja world
organizes a grand martial arts demonstration every year. In
villages, through challenge rounds, 100 strong ninjas will be selected to compete. The top 10
...
will finally receive
the supreme title of celestial ninja. The
number of celestial ninjas in the entire
ninja world is fixed at 10. Each time,
ninjas who enter the martial arts grand finals can challenge any
...
of the previous celestial ninjas. As long as they successfully challenge
, they will be able to replace the challenged
to receive the title of
celestial nin. Under the encouragement of this
regime, talented young ninjas,
even experienced elders
all wish to
one day win this
ninja's highest honor. On the morning of the
martial arts grand opening, Naruto went to the tea shop very early,
because this was the day that
's old friends could gather. Suddenly, a familiar
figure walked forward, Naruto felt
recognized it and gave a faint smile.
long time no see, Sasuke.
Sasuke's aura is now no longer as sharp as
before, but has become more introspective, gentle and
mature. The two were chatting
about family matters, when suddenly the
door of the tea shop was kicked open by a strong kick.
Seeing this, Sasuke shook his head, showing that it was not
strange to say that Madara had not changed after all these
years. Madara strode
in, opening his mouth to ask Hasirama if
had arrived yet. At this moment, a black
space vortex rolled up, and Obito appeared powerfully
. He looked around and smiled and said,
"Looks like I'm not the last one
." As soon as he finished speaking, Hasirama walked in through the large
door. The top ninja
once again gathered in the bar. Real strength
of people compared to more than 10 years ago has
advanced to a new level. Just like that,
amidst fake laughter, it was time for
to start the grand martial arts show. The
group of celestial ninjas led by Naruto sat in the most central
referee area, checking
the progress in strength of the ninjas over the past
years. But just as the battle below
was taking place fiercely, the sky suddenly
suddenly opened up into a pitch black Yomosu Hirasaka,
an unfamiliar Satsuki mass that had never been seen
appeared from inside. That person hovered above
, coldly scanning his eyes
below. Naruto was the first to notice,
suddenly panicked. This is a
you've never met before. He stood up, jumped
into the air and shot a small-sized pearl
tailed beast ball at that Osatsuki. But
the other party saw that and laughed scornfully,
giving him a hard time. Having finished speaking, he raised his
finger and flicked it, the tailed beast flew straight
90 degrees into the sky, finally turning into countless
points of light. Just as Naruto was about to
launch his second attack, that Osatsuki
turned into the space-time portal.
His voice before leaving echoed
in the middle. Uzumaki Naruto, mortal
involved in the power of my
clan, enjoy your last days of
victory. Pressure and
suffocating fear covered the entire
stadium, even making
people forget to scream and run away. Naruto
clenched his fists, the one who came was not the god
of consciousness or Momosiki of his previous life but
an unprecedented one. Sasuke and Obito
came to Naruto's side and asked if he was
okay. Naruto nodded in response. A new uki
, this is probably the butterfly effect caused by
he traveled through time. Osasuki usually
comes in pairs of two, so he speculates that
must have another enemy. The time has come
for the entire ninja world to enter
a period of preparation for war. At this time,
on a deserted planet, Momosiki and
Kinsiki are sitting on a broken tree
. A black
space-time portal suddenly opened behind them.
Osasuki, who had just arrived in the ninja world, slowly
walked out. Naruto finally has to
fight a new Osasuki. At this time,
Naruto and Sasuke went to
Kawya's house. With a serious look in his eyes,
described the information about Osatsuki just now to
Kawya. After hearing this, Kawia fell into thought. The
Osatsuki that Naruto describes possesses a pair of majestic black
horns and a pair of jet-black
Linegon emerald eyes. Based
on this information, Kawya speculates
that person is probably the battle
captain of planet Osatsuki named
Ossatsuki Douluo. And his teammate
is the deputy combat captain of planet
Osatsuki. His appearance is the opposite of Dou
La's, he has white horns and a pair of pure white
Linegon emerald green eyes named
Ossatsuki Hon La. Both are
high gods of the Osatsuky clan. Regarding
about what abilities they have, Kawya apologized to
saying that she didn't really know. The only
thing that can be certain is that their strength
far exceeds Momosiki's. Naruto's
face turned serious, he didn't expect that Osatsuki
had so many experts. Based on Douluo's
threat before leaving, I'm afraid that
will soon officially attack
this place. Time was urgent, Naruto told
everyone to prepare for battle and return to the
villages he was in charge of to explore. Once
experiences anything unusual, infuse
chakra into your Kunai. After setting up
, Naruto went to the suburbs alone.
Since 15 years ago, after absorbing the strong
power of the Ten-Tails including Isiki, on
he opened his third eye. And this
eye has the same ability as Isiki's cross-shaped
eye, which can
arbitrarily shrink inanimate objects and then restore them.
and stored in a namespace called
Daikokuten. Over the past few years, whenever he has
free time, Naruto has built some powerful miniature
weapons and then dumped them in
space as backup. The things inside can
be said to be complete and in astonishing quantity.
There is going to be a big war, so he starts
to prepare. At this time, in a distant
starry sky, Douluo suddenly appeared
behind Momosiki and Kinsiki. The Osatsuki family's
daily work is to plant
divine trees on different planets,
nurture the divine tree fruits, and the
ninja world is the area that Momosiki is
responsible for. This time Douluo came to
ask Momosiki to cede the next target
which is the ninja world. Due to the
force of rank, Momosiki and Kinsiki had to
obey orders and redirect to
other planets. Right after Momosiki they
left, one Yomosu Hirasaka suddenly opened
. The person who came out from inside was Douluo Osasuki's teammate
. Soul La. As soon as
La first saw Soul La coming, he smiled and said,
"That Yiki guy is right, the energy
concentrated on that planet is indeed very
attractive." It turns out that after Naruto defeated
Osatsuki Isiki earlier,
Isiki's soul wandered in the universe. After more than
10 years, he finally met Dou
La and Hon La in the family. To take revenge on
Naruto, he told Douluo and Hon La
about the events in the ninja world and
its coordinates. Just by swallowing the divine tree
formed from all the chakra of the
ninja world, becoming
Osatsuki will be one step closer. Although
Douluo and Hun Luo did not believe the words of
Isiki, a defeated person, with their
Chakra-hungry nature, they would not miss
any opportunity. Hearing news like
, even if it's not true, they
will personally check it out. That's why
suddenly descended into the world
ninja. The truth is as Isiki said,
that blue planet is indeed not
ordinary. Along with the evil laughter of
the two, they disappeared into
Yomosu Hirasaka's black hole. Naruto and they will have to
face
terrible enemies. At this time in the Ninja world,
ninjas are rushing to prepare before the
battle. Civilians are stabilizing and moving in
order into the
prepared hiding places. Naruto sat alone on
the tall tower of the rain village, feeling the
breeze passing over his no longer
tender face. Even though a great war was about to
break out, his insides were still as calm as
water. Suddenly a space-time
portal broke the silence, Naruto was immediately
alert. Soul Luo and Douluo had just
appeared, their
strange and powerful chakra had become an existence that could
be ignored. Naruto immediately informed
Minato to use Philo to bring Sasuke,
Obito as well as Madara and Hasirama.
Then the five Heavenly Rings rushed towards
where Douluo and Hon La were standing. When
found them, the two sides faced each other on
the mountain and under the mountain. Seeing this, Hon La immediately
said to Douluo with interest,
"Look, those guys are glaring
at us, especially that blond
boy, his eyes are so cruel." At first
laughed without speaking, a great battle
was about to break out, Naruto had finally
faced his strongest enemy. At this time
Naruto and they finally found the
Osatsuki invading the ninja world. La
's head and La's soul float in mid-air, be careful
to observe below. Soul La said
contemptuously, "You foul ants, your
chakra seems better than I thought."
Naruto and them knew that the only
way to communicate with Osatsuki was with their fists, so they
didn't say many useless words. Madara
and Hasirama took the lead to break the deadlock,
tomb rotation, prison side and multi-layered wood dragon
techniques are activated. Moc Long placed
soldiers in formation in the sky along with
Madara's tomb clones forming
siege. Overwhelming attacks
came. La's Head and La's Soul leisurely passed through those
...
reverse attacks. Seeing that, Naruto's eyes
narrowed slightly. He estimated that the
enemy's actions were more flexible than Isiki's. Hasirama
exclaimed in disbelief, with such a strong
attack, the opponent could
easily dodge it. Madara was very
calm, because that at least proved that
if they didn't dodge, they would be in trouble.
While talking, Hon La suddenly
launched an attack, he threw a kick
in the air, the powerful air current created by
from the kick directly attacked
towards Naruto and them. Naruto reacted
extremely quickly, immediately opening a jade path
shield, but under the strong impact of
air flow, many cracks appeared on Naruto's jade path
shield.
Everyone was extremely surprised, not expecting that
a random attack from the opponent
would be more powerful than Wi's statue.
Soul La's body rotated, continuously
kicking, the continuous
air currents completely breaking
Naruto's shield. As soon as the shield broke, Naruto
used the flying thunder god to move everyone
behind the soul la. Sasuke took
the opportunity to start Susanu. The Yang bow
was loaded with arrows, several arrows empowered with
strong six-path strength after locking on the target were
immediately shot, its speed could be said to be
leaving no room to dodge. But I only saw
La Giang's soul holding out his hands and smiling scornfully,
Susanu was synonymous with big but useless. A
dark spherical barrier bulged above
his body, blocking all
arrows outside. Seeing that attacking with
jutsu was ineffective, Naruto suddenly
opened the eyes on his forehead, activated Da Dik
Cuten, but saw Soul La move
his hands as fast as lightning, easily catching
the mallets that suddenly enlarged right
right in front of his eyes. Seeing this scene, even Naruto
had to take a look, being able to use strong
strength to block this move, enough to
prove that the opponent's fighting instinct
had surpassed even Kurama's Barion mode.
However, Naruto also has a back move, in
inconspicuous places, on those
mallets there are flying thunder god marks. In
ten-tailed mode, he suddenly used
lightning to appear in front of Hon La. The
Dao Jade ball in his palm rotated
rapidly, finally condensing
into the Rasengan Dao Jade ball. Soul La
couldn't react in time and was hit
straight to the ground. This surprise attack by Naruto
was finally effective, but
Hasirama was behind him shouting, "Good work
, Naruto!" Douluo, who was next to him, coldly
said to Hon La, "You're negligent,
you could have
dodged that attack just now." Hon La sat up, his almost
broken shoulder was quickly recovering
with heat. Naruto's sudden
appearance was something he did not
expect, but such an opportunity would not
come around again. La's soul soared out of the pile of rubble
, spread out both arms and launched
a ten-god air attack towards
Naruto. Naruto faced each other head-on, their two
attacks collided violently in
air, so that they could not stop. Obito saw that
immediately activated Susanu, firing several powerful
Suriiken towards Hon La who was
unable to move. First there was
Naruto's attack, then there was
Obito's mighty Suriken. Everyone thought that Hon La couldn't
escape, but they saw him smile
, his white
Linegon eyes suddenly flashed with dark light.
At the same time, the magic against the great god is released
dynamic. All the Suriken divine powers that were
approaching Hon La were suddenly shot back
and flew towards Obito. Obito was
surprised and quickly entered a penetrating state
to avoid the attack. Sasuke was scared, what just
happened? That guy countered
Suriiken? Obito, after carefully analyzing
, concluded that the mighty
Suriken could not be blocked or defended
, so he speculated that the nature of move
was not a counterattack but a change
of the attack's target. In
other words, using any attack with
trajectory, in front of that dojutsu will probably
bring on its own consequences. At this time, the
confrontation between Naruto and Soul La finally
ended. On the outside, it looked like both
were inconclusive, but in
Naruto understood very clearly that just now he had used
with all his might, and the opponent still
still had his strength. However, Hun La fought
for many years in the end and did not gain much of
's advantage. Dau La stood observing for
a long time and then decided to join the
battle. Being able to be the battle captain
of the Osatsuki family, in addition to having outstanding
strength, he also has an extremely clear head.
The two Osatsuki brothers stood shoulder to shoulder.
Sasuke, Obito, Madara and Hasirama also
came to Naruto's side. The great war of the year
Ninja confronting the two gods is about to break out.
How strong is Osasuki? At this time
Naruto faces new enemies, Osasuki
Douluo and Soul La. The first thing you need
to do is explore the opponent's abilities.
Along with the constant white smoke. Ten thousand
clones of Naruto appeared down.
Obito couldn't help but exclaim when he saw that. Although
Naruto is now the Jinchuriki of the Ten-Tails
, this is too exaggerated.
Naruto smiled and said, "Over the years you have
used many ways to strengthen your chakra.
Now your own chakra can
be said to be equivalent to a cross
majestic." The golden Naruto army attacked
Soul Luo and Douluo. Soul La saw this and shouted
loudly, it was not good. Even if he could defeat
100 people with one punch, he would have to fight until he exhausted
's strength. Douluo smiled disdainfully again,
he stretched out his arms, starting to condense
energy. A moment later, a hole suddenly
appeared in the sky. From there,
poured out a gray shock wave
as vast as a river and sea. Wherever
that shock wave passed, Naruto's
clones were all destroyed
after the dust dissipated,
the army of ten thousand clones left
with only 3000 people left. These 3000 people were not afraid of
dying approaching Soul La and Douluo. After
a while of exploration, Naruto has roughly
analyzed the opponent's ability.
Osasuki's left eye
has the ability to automatically dodge all
attacks when in danger. This
activated skill has an activation time of
of 3 seconds
must continuously launch two effective
attacks within 3 seconds to
cause damage to Douluo. This
cannot help but remind Naruto of the
battle with Thien Dao Pen in the past. Regarding the
power of Douluo's remaining eye,
Naruto could not detect it because his shadow
had not yet been able to probe.
completely destroyed. After a discussion
, Naruto and they decided to attack
suddenly. After Madara and Hasirama restrained
La's soul, Obito suddenly aimed at Dou
and activated his divine power. The result was not
unexpected, at the same time the divine power
exploded, Douluo automatically disappeared on the spot
without any signs. But
this result is exactly what Obito wanted.
What he needed to do was to make the opponent's
automatic dodge go into
cooldown At almost the same
time, Naruto and Sasuke charged at each other.
Sasuke unleashed his heavenly force, forcing
to pull Douluo in front of the jade path
Rasengan and six paths of Yin Lightning forming
pincer position. Seeing this, Douluo smiled and said,
"It seems you guys have understood the ability of
my left eye, do you want to suddenly kill
me?" It's just a pity that the speed of
you in front of me is like a
slow motion movie. Suddenly Naruto and Sasuke's attack
stopped. Fighting
La crossed his arms, grabbed Naruto and Sasuke's
wrists accurately,
then punched like lightning. Almost invisible
punches sent
flying. In the process of being sent flying,
Naruto activated Daiko Cuten. The
invisible jade black hockey sticks quickly
stabbed towards Douluo. But 3 seconds
had passed, and Douluo relied on his skill to be
affected and disappeared on the spot, avoiding
's attack. The first attack ended
in failure. Dau La Contempt
spoke next and it was his turn. Everyone
heard that and were on high alert, only to see
Douluo's right eye suddenly aimed at
Obito. He commented that although Obito's chakra was
not great, his ability was indeed quite
troublesome. Obito's pupils shrank,
he quickly backed away, but it was
clearly too late. The ability of
Douluo's right eye is to absolutely hit the target,
combined with the absolute avoidance of the left
eye. He shot an iron foul bone
into the sky, the iron stink bone was like a
pursuit missile, turned and flew towards
towards Obito. The speed was too fast, Obito
had no time to dodge and immediately entered a penetrating
state. But at the moment Obito
appeared in the space of divine power, along with
Douluo's iron and gray bones also appeared
in the space of divine power and stabbed
precisely through Obito's heart.
Obito's body in the real world was crushed
to pieces. People couldn't believe it
of that eye's power, even
the penetrating state of divine might cannot
be avoided. Obito hadn't even had time to say goodbye before he crumbled into a pile of dust.
...
Naruto and Sasuke were stunned at
place at the same time. La's head turned around, tilted her head
and spoke evilly. See? Killing a
person is as simple as that. Having finished speaking,
his right eye was aimed at Sasuke.
Almost without thinking, Naruto used the
Lightning Spirit to appear next to Sasuke and
quickly threw out a smoke bomb.
smoke suddenly rose up, obscuring Douluo's
view. Naruto, you have
fought many times with
Obito's mighty twin gods, and understand how to deal with
bronze magic, but hiding in smoke forever is
not the way. Sasuke couldn't believe
asked Naruto, did Obito just get killed
? Naruto's face was serious,
it seemed like that, but he always had
a strange feeling. While talking
, Douluo rushed into the smoke towards
towards Naruto and them. Naruto to protect
Sasuke was preparing to use the Flying Thunder God
to take him away. But a black shadow suddenly
forcefully entered Douluo's vision.
Obito's low voice rang out.
Sorry, I disappointed you."
Luo's head couldn't help but be stunned when he heard that. The mighty
god Suriken, who also has the ability to chase
, suddenly rushed out. Suriken without any
doubt hit Douluo, but his
ability to absolutely dodge was activated,
Douluo was forced to dodge and appeared
behind. However, the attack
did not end there, it turned out that in
's shadow Suriken also hid a second
Suriken. Suriken continued to chase Dau La. Seeing that, Dau La showed an excited smile. He moved with
...
...
at high speed, avoiding
completely, and he stopped to let
Suriken hit. enter and automatically dodge again
avoid. Naruto and Sasuke took the opportunity to
next to Obito. Seeing the flow of
chakra on Obito's body, Sasuke glanced at
and realized that Obito had activated it to escape
's fatal blow. The price to pay is
losing an eye. But fortunately, Naruto had
the power of the sun. In just a moment, he
helped Obito restore his eye. In theory
, as long as Naruto and Obito are present,
can always possess two resurrection coins.
At this time, Naruto used the force of the sun to help
Obito restore his blind eye. With
Izanagi's existence and
Naruto's positive force, Obito has achieved a state of
immortality in a sense. In just
minutes, Douluo tried to kill Obito several
times, but Obito escaped death
each time with Yanagi. At this time, Douluo finally
understood, if you can't kill Naruto,
if you can restore your eyes, you can't
kill Obito. Suddenly
white mist appeared around, Naruto
launched the hidden magic technique, causing dense mist
to cover the surroundings. No matter how powerful
magic is, it needs
to be aimed at the target before it can be activated.
Naruto wants to use fog to confuse
his opponent's eyes. Although La Head
sensed Naruto's and
's true positions, without being able to see straight,
could not complete locking on target
with synergy. I just saw him quickly
rushing into the dense fog. Naruto
reminded everyone that the enemy had arrived, and
locked his eyes forward at the same time, launching
Daikokuten. Black
cubes capable of blocking
perception fall from the sky, falling in
all four directions. Dou
La's feelings immediately disappeared. The
black cubes continuously fell.
Over the past 15 years, Naruto has stored a staggering
...
variety of items in Daikok Cuten. Cubes
this method is one of them. With
the cubes almost covering
all the places where he could stand, Douluo was blocked by
and had to retreat. At this time,
not far away, Hasirama and Madara were restraining
Soul La. When La Soul saw the
cubes suddenly pile up into mountains,
couldn't help but exclaim. Hasirama grabbed the
moment when Soul La was distracted and performed the
peak of Buddha transformation, countless wooden hands
screamed and rushed down, but Soul La only
glanced coldly, launched a counterattack against
the great god, the arms of the falling
heavenly hand bent and
turned back, finally hitting
Hasirama. Hasirama quickly flipped
backwards to escape the fate of the heavenly hand and
after landing, he bit his finger and opened
the Cuu Trong La Sinh Mon, stopping
the wooden hands that were counterattacking. Taking advantage of
's chaos,
Madara's three-headed, six-armed Susanu attacked from behind Hon La.
But Hon La suddenly turned back,
activated the dong magic of Linegon
's remaining eye, to bless the great god. In the
blink of an eye, Madara's body froze in
mid-air, the surrounding Susanu simultaneously
extinguished, even his Rinegan
turned into a state without a pearl hook.
Madara was extremely confused, what
power is this? Hon La smiled and said, "Can't move
anymore, right? This is not
a simple imprisonment. Once
is hit by my great god's magic, the chakra
on the person who has been hit will also be
imprisoned, all techniques will be stopped,
cannot be used. It can be said that this same
technique is another method
to break Obito's infinite Izanagi prize.
La's soul held a black stick and was about to pierce
through Madara's head. In an instant, a
large number of vines of Hasirama suddenly rose from the ground, tightly wrapping around Madara's soul. He was able to move again
...
...
immediately activated the tombstone to protect the body, quickly
quickly left the soul. The Osasuki family
is not only good at taijutsu, but
can also have many types of doujutsu that are difficult to deal with. The enemy
in front of them is clearly not an opponent
that they can win
one-on-one. At this time, Luo's soul escaped the glare
of the vines and with lightning speed
merged with Douluo. Madara
's plan and they wanted to disperse their opponents to destroy
one by one failed. After reuniting
with Naruto and them, the five shared
information with each other. Attacks from afar will be countered by
, while close combat runs the risk of being trapped and killed by
.
Wanting to defeat the Osatsuki brothers who have
complementary abilities is truly
a difficult problem in the
ninja world. But luckily Naruto was
fully prepared. He decided to use what
had accumulated so far to defeat
the opponent. Daikokuten was launched
after the falling black cubes
were unimaginably
huge objects. Those are the real
heavenly-armed statues of destiny.
Hasirama was a bit surprised and asked Naruto if he was going to
use that move? Naruto nodded telling
that it was time. During the 15 years of peace
of the Ninja world, Naruto and Hasirama
invented a technique together, that
is in space Daikokuten uses copper
to shrink and store a large
number of heavenly hands. Thousands of
heavenly hands unable to move surrounded
to take Douluo and Hon La. Soul La had just
fought Hasirama. His face
was serious. If these heavenly hands
could also move, it would be in big trouble.
At this moment, Naruto only smiled confidently, he
shouted into the fog. "Still not done
yet? Kurama! Blurred in the mist
are several clones of Kurama. They used
themselves as a medium to help Naruto absorb
absorbs a large amount of surrounding natural energy
. Along with Kurama's clones
being dissolved, an unimaginable amount of
natural energy
came rushing in like a tide." Sasuke saw
and smiled slightly, this move Naruto had
used in the battle in the valley at
in his previous life, it's just that Kurama
was quite small that year, both the speed of condensing the natural
energy and the limit were not
worth it. It's different now, Naruto
Kurama gathered all the natural
energy, and finally transformed into
's five-headed, 10-armed form. At this time, Hasirama
also entered Kurama. What Naruto
and they needed to do was to motivate the
thousands of heavenly hands on the field The Heavenly Hands' statue on
...
...
the ground was suddenly surrounded by green
light. Naruto provided Chakra, which
Hasirama controlled. All of the Heavenly Hands'
s were the work of Naruto and
Hasirama over the years. Thousands of
Heavenly Hands stood up at the same time with
heaven and earth shaking steps,
launched a fatal attack. At
Soul and Douluo. At the same time, eight
red barriers suddenly appeared. This was Naruto's entire
...
ninjutsu that was able to block
's space-time jutsu. Soul
's and Douluo's faces turned pale, could
use magic on a scale like
?
repeatedly launched the ultimate
Buddha. Like Itachi had said, any
technique had a weakness. Naruto
wanted to see if they fell first. The two
synergy of Douluo and Soul reached
the limit first. Luo's soul
...
...
moved against the Great Spirit to counter, while
Douluo used his ability to dodge and speed.
degrees to dodge. No matter which angle Naruto and they attack from
, the enemy can deal with
. But over time, a few wooden
hands grazed the white robe of Soul
La. Seeing that, everyone's eyes couldn't help but
brighten up. The continuous attacks
made Hon La and Douluo gradually show signs of
fatigue. Only then did they understand that with so many number
's natural hands, the main purpose
was not to attack them but to exhaust
their strength. They decided to
temporarily avoid it, but were surprised to discover that
Yomosu Hirasaka was completely unable to use
, because they were already in Naruto's entire
position. The two of them roared
, but the ants used
low-class tricks. They tried to break through
first, but each time they were engulfed by countless wooden
tables. Finally, after a
time of exhaustion, Hon La and Douluo kneeled to the ground, holding
in pain. Sasuke, Obito and
Madara saw this, immediately launched a
attack from afar, no longer able to counter the great god,
their moves were able to take effect
. Just like that, under the
mutual cooperation of Naruto and them, they finally
sealed Soul Luo and Douluo in the six paths
of heavenly love. Osasuki's consciousness
finally descended into the
ninja world. At this time, Naruto and they had successfully sealed Douluo and Soul Luo. But
...
Douluo's words before being sealed
made Naruto anxious.
He warned Naruto, "Treasure the last seven
beautiful days, that great man
will turn this place to dust." When
Naruto told Kawya everything,
Kawya with a solemn face confirmed
to Naruto that the person Douluo was talking about was probably
the divine Osatsuki. Naruto heard
and was stunned on the spot, because according to the timeline
of his previous life, the divine consciousness would have at least
still nearly 20 years away from arriving.
Could it all be the wing effect?
butterflies caused by your reincarnation changed history
? Of course, Naruto is
different now. The strength of the entire ninja world
has also changed heaven and earth. However,
's divine consciousness was
's biggest nightmare in his previous life. That despair has
eaten deep into the bones. Knowing that divine consciousness was about to
descend, Naruto was both scared and
excited. But to eliminate fear,
there is no better way than facing
it. Whatever comes will come. Naruto
threw off his cloak declaring the entire
ninja world to enter the highest
state of war. This news quickly caused
the entire ninja world to be immersed in a
tense atmosphere. Evacuation of
non-combatants has
begun. During the previous 15 years of peace,
Naruto and they had built thousands of fortified
underground stations around the
ninja world and stocked them with enough living supplies.
It's all about today. Very
fast, 6 days have passed, only
has one more day left until the divine consciousness arrives.
Kawya summoned Naruto and them and gave
Naruto the chakradan she had condensed.
Naruto looked at Kawya with a complicated expression,
then firmly told Kawaguya, "Please
rest assured, they will definitely win."
Having finished speaking, Naruto and they began to plan out
strategies. To make a surprise attack, Naruto
decided to go into battle first, and
himself went to probe the opponent's
information. The remaining people will hide
in Obito's magical space. After
mapping out the strategy, Itachi came
next to Naruto. He once told Naruto,
never try to shoulder
everything alone, but trust your teammates.
This time he also entrusted the second half of sentence
to Naruto as he tried to shoulder everything
, don't forget that behind
there are always teammates who trust him.
Everyone cheer for Naruto, please
won a beautiful match. All of us
will use our lives to support
for you. Naruto
's experienced mood has been emotional for a long time.
He smiled confidently and shouted, "Just leave it to
me." The next day, a
space-time gate suddenly tore
apart the quiet sky, a huge
omen covering heaven and earth. Osatsuki's consciousness
finally appeared, feeling
the huge life force in the
ninja world, he revealed a fierce smile. As long as
eats the divine tree fruit formed from here,
he will definitely truly enter the
realm of the gods. When he scanned the top of the
mountain behind him, he discovered that there was a person
sitting cross-legged there. That person wore
an orange shirt and blond hair. The calm
breath mixed with
Naruto's nature made his consciousness extremely uncomfortable.
Because there has never been anyone who hasn't
run away in panic after meeting him. He was always cocky, even though
realized the defeat of Douluo and
Soul La, he still didn't think it was right,
because even if Soul Luo and Douluo joined forces
it wouldn't be as good as his one hand. No matter how strong the
villagers here are, in his
eyes they are just ants a little
bigger. I only saw the consciousness swinging its right hand
to create a silver white ball, depending on
the hand intended to deal with Naruto. But even
even with his random attacks, the
amount of chakra concentrated in that ball was
no less than the Ten-Tails' tailed beast gem.
Naruto sat still without moving.
As the sphere approached, he activated
Sukuna, Hikona shrank it, and
his figure also disappeared. The consciousness
had not yet clearly understood the situation, behind
it felt an unimaginable pressure
coming. Without
thinking, he raised his left hand to block. Naruto launched a left palm from
in the air and
launched sukuna Hikona again, this returned
back to you. The ball that had just shrunk
suddenly enlarged and smashed towards the god
's consciousness. Before being dropped, consciousness
muttered without fear, "Is it
's ability from Isiki?" With a loud
explosion, silver light spread, causing an earth-shattering
explosion. During the explosion, the god
was unharmed and slowly rose up.
Seeing Naruto's three eyes and the
pair of Osatsuki's signature horns on his forehead,
he understood the reason for the failure of Soul
La and La Head. But compared to
Naruto's abilities, he was more curious as to why Naruto
seemed to have already met him. Although before
when his consciousness came, Naruto had
been standing still, but when the nightmare
of his previous life actually reappeared before
's eyes, his insides became calm.
The resentment and hatred of the previous life and this
life will end at this time. The final
battle between the last two
has finally begun. Naruto finally
meets Osatsuki's consciousness. After a short
fight, the divine consciousness used the eye on
's forehead to lock onto Naruto, then he couldn't
help but laugh out loud. It turned out that the stray dog
from his previous life had returned from time to time, wanting to
go against the heavens and change his destiny? In response to the
taunts of his enemies, Naruto appeared quite
calm. What you need to do is try to
probe the opponent's abilities. But
the divine consciousness doesn't have free time to
play with Naruto here. His white eye
suddenly turned into a shining black
tenan, a pillar of golden light pierced
through the sky, turning into a sword
of golden light. Naruto, you have
fought with Osatsuki Toneri, know
that this move is the golden rotation
of birth servant, it is a move that has been twice as young as
moons. Naruto immediately activated
the Ten-Tails' six paths chakra level and used
the Ten-Tails' fiery hands to tightly grasp
the blade. The pressure is unparalleled
caused Naruto to be pushed thousands of meters underground
. Although dangerous,
he was ultimately able to prevent
further destruction of the planet. Jade Path
Rasengan condensed in his hand. Naruto
used his flying lightning spirit to appear behind
's back. Divine consciousness was a bit surprised, does this guy
have the ability to activate space, time
, and space without eyes? It turns out that when
Naruto first encountered him,
left a mark on him. One,
's consciousness is that it doesn't know clearly about the spirit embryo, and two,
is contemptuous of the enemy, so it doesn't detect the
mark of the sword of patience on the corner of the shirt. The
Rasengan jade attacked, but the expected
hit did not happen,
an invisible wall blocked Naruto's
attack. Divine Consciousness
said in a deep voice, Osasuki counterattacked, the energy of
's Rasengan was reflected, exploding
on Naruto's body. Before being swallowed by the
heat wave, Naruto used
Flying Spirit to leave the explosion area. He
used Rinegan Luc Cau Ngoc to carefully
observe, finally seeing clearly the tricks of
's consciousness. Only now did he understand
why, in the battle with consciousness in
of his previous life, all of the
ninja's attacks were neutralized. At this time, an invisible
wall is blocking
's consciousness. That year, Naruto lost the power
of the six paths, Sasuke lost his Rinegan, so he could not
discover the truth about that invisible
wall of consciousness. Now, under
the observation of
Naruto's green pearl Rinegan, it could be seen that the essence of that
wall was a shell resembling
a large bell. Suddenly, the divine consciousness
flew high, waving its sleeves, thousands of
iron bones fell like rain. Naruto
turned into golden light, floating in
the gaps of the rain of bones.
Seeing this, the divine consciousness immediately increased the dosage,
the rain of bones swept across a large area of land.
more and as time goes by,
not only does not weaken but also tends to
become stronger and stronger. Naruto gritted
his teeth, combined with the iron foul bone that Kawagya considered
a great move, in that his consciousness was almost
unlimited, so if he kept dodging
like this, sooner or later he would be hit.
Naruto suddenly stopped, raised his head
to launch sukuna Hikona, the falling iron
foul bones were immediately
reduced into nano particles and stored
in daikuten space. Divine consciousness was a bit
surprised, he seemed to have
seen this move somewhere. A small character like
Isiki naturally does not catch the eye of
's consciousness, even though the memories of thousands of
years are quite vague. When the rain of bones
stopped, Naruto suddenly aimed at
's divine consciousness. Daikokuten was launched
in the blink of an eye. The iron foul bones
released from Daikou Kuten after
reverted to their original size shot towards
toward the divine consciousness, but were eventually stopped
's golden bell shell. The Divine Consciousness sneered
outside by
contemptuously, lower-class creatures always like to play
these wrestling games. As he spoke, he
used yin and yang to erase the flying thunder god
mark on the corner of his shirt. Naruto's heart was
heavy. From the beginning of the fight, even though
was not in a disadvantageous position, he
had to face the reality, that
the defensive power of his consciousness was much stronger than
imagined. His consciousness rose
even higher, then raised his hands to the sky
to activate tens x liver, heavenly sports
. He admitted that Naruto was not an
ant, he could be considered a grasshopper.
The sky was instantly covered in
darkness, a meteorite larger in scale
than the moon was quickly approaching
close to the earth. Everyone in the majestic
space saw this scene, everyone
was stunned. Every one of them has
saw great scenes, but faced
with this scene, they still felt pressure
and despair. If that pill
falls, this world will end.
Hasirama's eyes were deep, this meteorite
was tens of thousands of times larger than
Madara's meteorite throne. Gathering the strength
of all of them might be able to
forcefully stop it, but if it was just
Naruto alone, I'm afraid it would be difficult. He asked Obito
to take everyone out and work together to fight
against the consciousness. But Madara told
Hasirama not to be impatient, just wait for
Naruto's signal. At this time, Naruto beside
not only clenched his fists, but in
's eyes, in addition to surprise, there was also enthusiasm.
Naruto is finally about to duel with
Osatsuki's consciousness. At this time, consciousness
used Tegan to summon a large meteorite
. Facing this celestial body several times larger than the face of the moon, Naruto's eyes were serious. If this meteorite is allowed to fall to
...
...
the ground, this planet will be destroyed. He
clasped his hands together, his chakra burned fiercely
, and at the same time opened his eyes wide on his forehead,
activated super sukuna Hikona. Under
's influence, meteorites falling from
outer space are continuously
shrunk. After activating the doujutsu,
Naruto jumped up, held
under the meteorite with both palms, and launched the super
heavy rock technique. Meteor
instantly lost its weight
thousands of times. Naruto used
the Ten-Tails' chakra to block with his hand and condensed in
the mouth of a super-level tailed beast jade. All
of this happened within
a few short seconds under the eyes of consciousness.
Faced with the devastating attack,
Naruto reflexively thought of a way to deal with
. With a landslide,
a celestial body several times larger than the moon broke
into countless pieces, leading
long tails of fire to fall all over the world.
gender. Fire flared up everywhere, the ground
was immediately engulfed in
painful wails. Fortunately, civilians have entered all
underground fortresses thousands of meters deep, and
the damage caused to the ground can
only be repaired after the war. And Naruto
...
's series of actions were beyond the imagination of the god
. He praised Naruto for doing well. But
the second pill, what do you plan to do?
As soon as the words ended, another meteor
continued flying. Different from the previous time, this time
's consciousness flew above meteorite
and used Tensegan's thrust to push
the meteorite. Gravity combined with repulsion,
even Naruto cannot stop
alone. He had difficulty catching
Meteor while sending a signal to Obito
and them. A black vortex tore through space.
Obito, Madara, Hasirama and Sasuke forcefully
emerged from space. The five people combined
and used their most powerful
destructive moves, finally
able to stop the second bullet. Divine consciousness
looked at the new people appearing below,
mumbled with gloomy eyes, "The human beast
is more interesting than I thought." As he spoke, the gap on
's forehead slowly opened, revealing Jin Sarigan.
Naruto reminded everyone to pay attention, the
opponent was about to use all his strength. Opening
Jineson will certainly have a sky-defying
doujutsu that is equal to or
even surpasses the
sky-dwelling magic that is cast. Naruto immediately used the shield
made from the jade sphere to cover everyone
tightly. The Divine Consciousness
smiled coldly, raised his hand to launch the Unclaw Claw,
broke the barrier to seek the jade path. Naruto and
they were completely exposed to the blade
of the dojutsu. Divine magic, celestial fire
clear destiny is activated. This is a
technique that treats the opponent's existence as a
oil lamp, while their body, soul, and
chakra are all considered lamp oil. When
Even if the light runs out, the person who is hit will
even their soul will be burned between
heaven and earth and the burned chakra will be
transferred to consciousness. Naruto and them
were exposed to the gaze of divine consciousness,
were hit together, silver flames rose
above their heads as high as the clouds.
The chakra mantle on Naruto's body began to
melt, turning into dark yellow
oily wax. In an instant, the chakra mantle could
no longer be maintained and went out.
Naruto returned to his normal state with
's head burned. When he turned back,
Sasuke and they had already turned into dust.
Confusion and despair appeared on
Naruto's confused face. How is this Eastern magic
possible? The Divine Consciousness was very pleased
with
Naruto's near-death reaction. After Naruto is completely
burned, all of his chakra will be
converted into divine consciousness chakra. Not
long later, Naruto had turned into a
pile of dust. This is proof that
the heavenly fire has completely burned
the target. But at this moment, the
waking spirit frowned slightly, because the
pile of dust seemed to lack the color of the
soul. It turns out that while Naruto used
to shield everyone,
used shadow clones and transformation techniques to
replace them. As for their bodies,
in that moment escaped into the space
of Obito's divine power. Naruto, through
the memories passed down from the destroyed shadow clone
, learned information about
of the heavenly fire. He still
still scared and introduced himself to everyone. If
were to return unprotected to
's consciousness, he would probably find himself dead.
What should I do? How to deal
with that jutsu? At this time, Sasuke relied on
the information provided by Naruto and quickly
found the breakthrough point. The
burning of that jutsu is sequential, starting from
chakra, then the body, then the
soul. In other words, having enough chakra to
could theoretically prolong the burning time of
. And speaking of infinite chakra, the first
thing Naruto thinks of is the
fairy technique. He told Obito to take everyone to
Mount Mioboku, then split into tens of thousands of
clones and let each clone
sit cross-legged, absorbing natural energy.
The natural energy of Mount Mioboku is
extremely dense, it can be said that it can't be used up
and can't be used up. As long as he has
the amount of natural energy absorbed by this shadow
body as a source, he can
continuously use chakra senjutsu to replenish
his own chakra. After preparing
, Naruto stood up and intended to return to the
ninja world. When Obito and they planned to go with
him, Naruto told them to stay at
Mioboku mountain, anyway, once
hit that technique, they were dead. With deep eyes
he mused, sorry everyone, this time let
take care of everything. Divine consciousness has always been
a rock weighing down
in Naruto's heart. If you can't
overcome this obstacle, you won't
be able to face these next
enemies well. Seeing that Naruto had made up his mind, everyone
didn't say much anymore. Thousands of words and thousands of thoughts
turn into one sentence, take care. Naruto
shouted loudly, then
used the Flying Thunder God to return to the ninja world.
One man and one god confront each other.
Naruto's final battle
finally begins. Naruto finally
defeated god Satsuki. At this time, Naruto
returned to the ninja world alone. Regarding
's Heavenly Fire Ming Menh move,
has a countermeasure. The god was a bit
surprised to see that Naruto even dared to appear
in front of him. He once again used the
eyes on his forehead to focus on Naruto, releasing
the fiery fate. A red flame
flared up above Naruto's head. But below
with that terrifying burning power, the golden
chakra mantle outside his body showed no
signs of dissipating. I have no
talent to understand how he knew that
to deal with this jutsu, Naruto actually
had prepared 100,000 power banks of
senjutsu at Mount Mioboku. However,
God also vaguely observed the nature of
from the phenomenon. He knew that Naruto must be
using some method to absorb
chakra from outside. Half of the
chakra burned by the Heavenly Fire
will be transformed into god's chakra. The
greedy god decided to burn all of Naruto's
chakra to absorb all of
. Therefore, he chose to let Naruto burn
in the heavenly fire without using
any other attacks.
Naruto was on guard feeling strange, suddenly
realized that the god's chakra was increasing
at an amazing speed. At this time,
Naruto realized that his chakra was
burned, and some of it would be transferred to the gods.
He immediately impatiently rushed to attack
the god with taijutsu. At first I was
calm, but suddenly my face
changed. The red flame above Naruto's head, although
did not touch his body, spread
to the golden defense
outside. The god's defense layer was
burned, and in the blink of an eye it was burned away. Afraid
of being burned by fire, the god quickly
escaped from the layer of leaves that bored the spirit. Naruto's
eyes couldn't help but light up, "So
you're also afraid of this fire. You're right
if you think about it." Heavenly Fire Minh Menh takes
Chakra as fuel, as long as it is chakra
it can of course be burned. Naruto
smiled devilishly, began shaking his head,
used the fire on his head to attack the god.
God saw that and quickly opened
distance from Naruto. Naruto chased iron
after him, and the two of them fought endlessly.
Originally, I could have used Hoang Tuyen Bi
Luong Ban left here, silently waiting for
Naruto to be burned so he would win.
But I didn't choose to do that, because
if he did, he wouldn't be able to receive
chakra feedback from Naruto. If you want him to
give up a huge amount of chakra like
Naruto's,
won't be able to beat him to death. The evil god suddenly opened his eyes wide on
's forehead, destroying the heavenly fire on
Naruto's body.
Naruto's smart strategy combined with his greed
caused this move to immediately reveal
's weakness. He was so angry that he laughed, calling
Naruto a damn wild fox, which
was more difficult to deal with than he imagined.
Naruto also admitted that God is a hundred times more difficult to deal with
than Isiki in the past. In his
previous life, he had not yet had time to find out
what his opponent's abilities were, but he was
destroyed. And this time, even though he used every
way to become stronger, it was still extremely difficult to
win against the opponent.
So, since Naruto was reborn, he
and the Nine-Tails were prepared. It's
time to use the final trump card.
Naruto raised his hand and shot eight black rods
in all four directions, a red barrier rose
up, at the same time he clasped his hands together, causing
the Ten-Tails and Six Paths of Barion to activate
. The remaining tens of thousands of shadow clones at
Mount Mioboku disappeared at the same time. Bright
light radiated from Naruto
's body, causing him to raise his hand to cover his eyes. When he
looked back at Naruto, Naruto had transformed
into a completely new form. The
layer of red chakra cloak covered his body,
the brilliant tails behind him intersected
shining. Naruto in Barion
ten-tailed mode, his eyes as deep as an ancient well,
without any emotional fluctuations.
God looked at Naruto's appearance with some
surprise, why could a human
be able to make a god like him feel
heart pounding? What type of chakra
is this? What is that look? previous life,
Naruto used his nine-tailed Barion mode to
defeat Isiki. The only weakness of
this status is that the duration is too
short. But the current Naruto in
's body is a complete Ten-Tails, and this time
what is burned is not only the chakra of the
Nine-Tails but also his own huge
chakra after countless trainings.
Barion mode is used on this
platform, its power is no exaggeration
saying that it is dozens of times
stronger than before. Seeing only a flash of
red light, Naruto appeared before
the god's face with
unbelievable speed. The god reacted extremely quickly, swinging his
fist, carrying wind and thunder, aiming
straight at Naruto's face. Naruto raised his hand to block
's fist. He couldn't help but
be surprised, continuing to launch powerful
punches that were
aimed at Naruto's weak point. But Naruto's
arms perfectly blocked all of
's taijutsu attacks. All sorts of terrifying sonic booms rang out in the air
...
.
The more he fought, the more frightened he became, with his taijutsu
which he was always proud of, how could a
ordinary person be able to fend off
, not even having a chance? Whether God
admits it or not, Naruto in front of
is already an existence
equal to him. He couldn't understand why
Naruto was able to increase
's power to this level in the blink of an eye. While
he was distracted, Naruto punched
straight into the god's stomach. The god
's body cringed, this power penetrating
's bones, how could this be possible? The two immediately
engaged in a fierce taijutsu
duel. The god was both surprised and
angry. Without a claw, he grabbed
straight into Naruto's throat, intending to crush
's head. Naruto's lightning-fast hand grabbed
's wrist, but his claws
God's other hand rushed forward.
Naruto's body leaned back as far as possible, avoiding this fatal claw
. The god smiled evilly
again, his claws that were swinging out suddenly
suddenly lowered, finally grabbing
Naruto's shoulder. With a cracking sound,
Naruto's right arm was torn off.
The intense pain from the broken arm
came, Naruto frowned slightly, and used
's head to stab straight at the god. The last two
were thrown back. Naruto raised his hand, used
Van Tuong Thien to suck up
's broken arm on the ground, then pressed it straight on
's shoulder. With a puff of white smoke,
's arms were reconnected. Seeing this, I praised
that Naruto's attack was very
sharp, but unfortunately it had no effect. As a
person who has eaten the fruit of the divine tree, his life
power is limitless. As soon as he finished speaking, god
suddenly showed a painful expression, then
spat out a mouthful of blood. His face
was scared and uncertain, "What is this? I am
an immortal, why does the
appearance of a dying person appear? Could it be that the
truth about that boy's state
is that Naruto smiled a smile he hadn't
seen in a long time, and finally realized it?
That's right, your vitality
has decreased below the threshold of an immortal
. At this moment, the Nine-Tails sent
a warning. There was no more
chakra left, it told Naruto to quickly put
on his palm, the
pair on his back gathered into his hand,
condensed into a Rasengan. The last
Rasengan turned red,
on his lap Naruto's raised hand
kept growing, growing, then
until it filled
's sight.
If I could swallow this ball of chakra,
would definitely become an immortal again.
...
...
Kawya's rabbit morphology. He opened
his mouth wide like a basin of blood, intending to swallow about
all of Naruto. Naruto forcefully stuffed the Rasengan
in his hand into the god's mouth. The two of you just
like that and don't care. Naruto
's eyes said firmly, "If you just let
run away, maybe I really can't stop you."
It's a pity you're too greedy. God
Satsuki, the amount of chakra that Naruto's Rasengan
gathers is far beyond my
statue's imagination because it not only includes
the chakra of the ten-tailed Barion mode but also
the natural energy that tens of thousands of
of Naruto's bodies have collected. Feeling
the extraordinary chakra ball in
Naruto's hand, he was scared and asked Naruto who
was? Naruto coldly replied, "My
name is Uzumaki Naruto, the future Seventh Hokage
and also the lowly creature that
you once despised." Having finished speaking, he
let out a roar, channeling all the remaining
chakra of his barion mode into that
rasengan and pushing it forward.
The god's fangs were broken
one by one, his body was compressed
by the senengan, sinking into the abyss with no
escape. He screamed, "A hall
god like me lost today to a
ordinary person." Naruto said with a serious
face, "Your mistake was to underestimate us
too much." With a
loud bang, the god finally turned into
countless spots of light flying across the sky. Just like
, Naruto finally defeated the
strongest enemy of his previous life. At this
moment, he breathed a sigh of relief, showing a
bright smile that he hadn't seen in a long time. After
you can finally say goodbye to the
past and continue moving forward. Naruto
fell exhausted to the ground, a
space-time portal suddenly opened below
. Sasuke took a step forward, supporting
Naruto. After landing, the two
touched hands and smiled. Next to times
appearances are Obito and the others
. Looking at the completely changed terrain
all around, they couldn't
imagine how fierce this battle
was. Just as everyone was
immersed in the joy of victory, Naruto
suddenly fell down and fell into a coma.
Looking at Naruto's state,
Sasuke's face was serious. This is the price
you have to pay when using Barion mode.
No matter how Sasuke and the others called,
Naruto did not react. At this time,
in a white space, Naruto
and the Nine-Tails were sitting cross-legged next to each other.
The two old friends had already prepared for
the final dissolution. After touching
hands, Naruto expressed his deep gratitude
to the Nine-Tails. There is no
party in the world that doesn't end. After a moment of farewell,
of Naruto and the Nine-Tails began to emit
white smoke, and slowly rose
into the air. Naruto thought to himself, next
can finally sleep
well, it's just a shame that he can't say
goodbye to everyone properly. And
my biggest regret is not being able to eat
another bowl of Ichiraku noodles. Carrying those
thoughts, Naruto gradually disappeared
between heaven and earth. Suddenly, a block of golden
light appeared in front of him.
It was an extremely warm and
huge mass of chakra. Naruto couldn't help but reached out
to touch it. The surrounding area suddenly emitted
brilliant yellow light. Right now in the real
world, Naruto's body is surrounded by everyone
. In the center are the celestial
rings and Kawya. Everyone present
held hands, using all their
strength to transmit their chakra to Kawya, while
Kawya's hands were placed on Naruto's body,
launching the Su Sinh Divine Tree Technique.
This is an ultimate healing technique that has
the ability to transfer life force. Both
Naruto and the Nine-Tails can sense it
regained his condensed form
, and at the same time his consciousness
stopped rising. Finally, he suddenly woke up in the real world
. And Kawya, in order to save
Naruto, ended up turning into a little
girl. Just like that, with everyone's generous
help, Naruto finally
avoided the end of
Barion's regime. His best friend's wife, children and
teammates all surrounded him,
's eyes were full of favor and admiration. At this point,
Naruto's side story asks
to pause.